This is a modern-English version of After London; Or, Wild England, originally written by Jefferies, Richard. It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.





AFTER LONDON

or Wild England

by Richard Jefferies

Image of book spine Image of book cover Image of title page



Contents




Part I
The Relapse into Barbarism


CHAPTER I
THE GREAT FOREST


The old men say their fathers told them that soon after the fields were left to themselves a change began to be visible. It became green everywhere in the first spring, after London ended, so that all the country looked alike.

The old men say their fathers told them that shortly after the fields were left alone, a change started to appear. It turned green everywhere in the first spring after London ended, making all the countryside look the same.

The meadows were green, and so was the rising wheat which had been sown, but which neither had nor would receive any further care. Such arable fields as had not been sown, but where the last stubble had been ploughed up, were overrun with couch-grass, and where the short stubble had not been ploughed, the weeds hid it. So that there was no place which was not more or less green; the footpaths were the greenest of all, for such is the nature of grass where it has once been trodden on, and by-and-by, as the summer came on, the former roads were thinly covered with the grass that had spread out from the margin.

The meadows were lush, and so was the growing wheat that had been planted, but it wasn’t getting any additional care. The fields that hadn’t been planted, where the leftover stubble had been turned over, were overrun with couch grass, and in areas where the short stubble hadn’t been plowed, the weeds concealed it. So every spot was somewhat green; the footpaths were the greenest of all, since that’s how grass behaves when it’s been walked on, and eventually, as summer arrived, the old paths were lightly covered with grass that had spread from the edges.

In the autumn, as the meadows were not mown, the grass withered as it stood, falling this way and that, as the wind had blown it; the seeds dropped, and the bennets became a greyish-white, or, where the docks and sorrel were thick, a brownish-red. The wheat, after it had ripened, there being no one to reap it, also remained standing, and was eaten by clouds of sparrows, rooks, and pigeons, which flocked to it and were undisturbed, feasting at their pleasure. As the winter came on, the crops were beaten down by the storms, soaked with rain, and trodden upon by herds of animals.

In the fall, since the meadows weren't cut, the grass dried out where it stood, bending this way and that as the wind blew; the seeds fell, and the grasses turned a dull grayish-white, or, where docks and sorrel grew thick, a brownish-red. The wheat, having ripened with no one to harvest it, also remained standing and was eaten by swarms of sparrows, rooks, and pigeons, which gathered and fed freely without any disturbances. As winter approached, the crops were flattened by storms, drenched with rain, and trampled by herds of animals.

Next summer the prostrate straw of the preceding year was concealed by the young green wheat and barley that sprang up from the grain sown by dropping from the ears, and by quantities of docks, thistles, oxeye daisies, and similar plants. This matted mass grew up through the bleached straw. Charlock, too, hid the rotting roots in the fields under a blaze of yellow flower. The young spring meadow-grass could scarcely push its way up through the long dead grass and bennets of the year previous, but docks and thistles, sorrel, wild carrots, and nettles, found no such difficulty.

Next summer, the flat straw from the previous year was covered by the young green wheat and barley that sprouted from the seeds left behind, along with lots of docks, thistles, oxeye daisies, and other similar plants. This tangled mass grew through the dried straw. Charlock also concealed the decaying roots in the fields with a burst of yellow flowers. The young spring meadow grass struggled to grow through the long-dead grass and bennets from the year before, but docks, thistles, sorrel, wild carrots, and nettles had no trouble at all.

Footpaths were concealed by the second year, but roads could be traced, though as green as the sward, and were still the best for walking, because the tangled wheat and weeds, and, in the meadows, the long grass, caught the feet of those who tried to pass through. Year by year the original crops of wheat, barley, oats, and beans asserted their presence by shooting up, but in gradually diminished force, as nettles and coarser plants, such as the wild parsnips, spread out into the fields from the ditches and choked them.

Footpaths were hidden by the second year, but you could still see the roads, even though they were as green as the grass, and they remained the best for walking because the overgrown wheat and weeds, along with the tall grass in the meadows, snagged the feet of anyone trying to get through. Each year, the original crops of wheat, barley, oats, and beans made their presence known by growing up, but their numbers gradually declined as nettles and tougher plants, like wild parsnips, spread into the fields from the ditches and choked them.

Aquatic grasses from the furrows and water-carriers extended in the meadows, and, with the rushes, helped to destroy or take the place of the former sweet herbage. Meanwhile, the brambles, which grew very fast, had pushed forward their prickly runners farther and farther from the hedges till they had now reached ten or fifteen yards. The briars had followed, and the hedges had widened to three or four times their first breadth, the fields being equally contracted. Starting from all sides at once, these brambles and briars in the course of about twenty years met in the centre of the largest fields.

Aquatic grasses from the ditches and water channels spread across the fields, and together with the rushes, they replaced the previous sweet grass. At the same time, the brambles grew quickly, extending their thorny runners further and further from the hedges until they reached ten to fifteen yards away. The briars followed suit, and the hedges grew to three or four times their original width, while the fields shrank equally. In about twenty years, these brambles and briars met in the middle of the largest fields, emerging from all sides at once.

Hawthorn bushes sprang up among them, and, protected by the briars and thorns from grazing animals, the suckers of elm-trees rose and flourished. Sapling ashes, oaks, sycamores, and horse-chestnuts, lifted their heads. Of old time the cattle would have eaten off the seed leaves with the grass so soon as they were out of the ground, but now most of the acorns that were dropped by birds, and the keys that were wafted by the wind, twirling as they floated, took root and grew into trees. By this time the brambles and briars had choked up and blocked the former roads, which were as impassable as the fields.

Hawthorn bushes grew among them, and, protected by the thorns and briars from grazing animals, the shoots of elm trees thrived. Young ashes, oaks, sycamores, and horse chestnuts stood tall. In the past, cattle would have eaten the seed leaves along with the grass as soon as they sprouted, but now most acorns dropped by birds and the helicopter seeds carried by the wind, swirling as they floated, took root and grew into trees. By this time, the brambles and thorns had overgrown and blocked the old roads, making them as impassable as the fields.

No fields, indeed, remained, for where the ground was dry, the thorns, briars, brambles, and saplings already mentioned filled the space, and these thickets and the young trees had converted most part of the country into an immense forest. Where the ground was naturally moist, and the drains had become choked with willow roots, which, when confined in tubes, grow into a mass like the brush of a fox, sedges and flags and rushes covered it. Thorn bushes were there, too, but not so tall; they were hung with lichen. Besides the flags and reeds, vast quantities of the tallest cow-parsnips or "gicks" rose five or six feet high, and the willow herb with its stout stem, almost as woody as a shrub, filled every approach.

No fields were left at all, because where the ground was dry, the thorns, briars, brambles, and young trees already mentioned had taken over, turning most of the area into a huge forest. In the naturally moist spots, the drains had become clogged with willow roots, which, when confined in tubes, grow into a mass that looks like a fox's brush, and were covered with sedges, flags, and rushes. There were thorn bushes there, too, but not as tall; they were covered in lichen. Along with the flags and reeds, a lot of the tallest cow-parsnips or "gicks" shot up five or six feet high, and the willow herb with its thick stem, almost as woody as a shrub, filled every path.

By the thirtieth year there was not one single open place, the hills only excepted, where a man could walk, unless he followed the tracks of wild creatures or cut himself a path. The ditches, of course, had long since become full of leaves and dead branches, so that the water which should have run off down them stagnated, and presently spread out into the hollow places and by the corner of what had once been fields, forming marshes where the horsetails, flags, and sedges hid the water.

By the thirtieth year, there wasn’t a single open space, except for the hills, where a person could walk unless they followed the trails of wild animals or made their own path. The ditches had long been filled with leaves and dead branches, causing the water that should have drained away to become stagnant and spread into low areas and the edges of what used to be fields, creating marshes where horsetails, flags, and sedges concealed the water.

As no care was taken with the brooks, the hatches upon them gradually rotted, and the force of the winter rains carried away the weak timbers, flooding the lower grounds, which became swamps of larger size. The dams, too, were drilled by water-rats, and the streams percolating through, slowly increased the size of these tunnels till the structure burst, and the current swept on and added to the floods below. Mill-dams stood longer, but, as the ponds silted up, the current flowed round and even through the mill-houses, which, going by degrees to ruin, were in some cases undermined till they fell.

As no care was taken with the streams, the barriers on them gradually rotted, and the force of the winter rains washed away the weak wood, flooding the lower areas, which turned into larger swamps. The dams were also chewed through by water rats, and the streams seeping through slowly enlarged these tunnels until the structures collapsed, sending the current rushing on and contributing to the floods downstream. The mill dams lasted longer, but as the ponds filled with silt, the current flowed around and even through the millhouses, which slowly fell into decay and, in some cases, were undermined until they collapsed.

Everywhere the lower lands adjacent to the streams had become marshes, some of them extending for miles in a winding line, and occasionally spreading out to a mile in breadth. This was particularly the case where brooks and streams of some volume joined the rivers, which were also blocked and obstructed in their turn, and the two, overflowing, covered the country around; for the rivers brought down trees and branches, timbers floated from the shore, and all kinds of similar materials, which grounded in the shallows or caught against snags, and formed huge piles where there had been weirs.

Everywhere, the lower lands next to the streams had turned into marshes, some stretching for miles in a winding path, and occasionally expanding to a mile wide. This was especially true where larger brooks and streams joined the rivers, which were also blocked and hindered in return. The two overflowing together submerged the surrounding area; the rivers carried down trees and branches, timbers drifted in from the shore, and all sorts of similar debris, which got stuck in the shallows or caught on obstacles, creating huge piles where there used to be weirs.

Sometimes, after great rains, these piles swept away the timbers of the weir, driven by the irresistible power of the water, and then in its course the flood, carrying the balks before it like battering rams, cracked and split the bridges of solid stone which the ancients had built. These and the iron bridges likewise were overthrown, and presently quite disappeared, for the very foundations were covered with the sand and gravel silted up.

Sometimes, after heavy rains, these piles moved the timbers of the dam, pushed along by the unstoppable force of the water. Then, as the flood flowed, it carried the beams like battering rams, cracking and breaking apart the solid stone bridges built by the ancients. Both these and the iron bridges were eventually destroyed and disappeared entirely, as their very foundations were buried under sand and gravel that had settled.

Thus, too, the sites of many villages and towns that anciently existed along the rivers, or on the lower lands adjoining, were concealed by the water and the mud it brought with it. The sedges and reeds that arose completed the work and left nothing visible, so that the mighty buildings of olden days were by these means utterly buried. And, as has been proved by those who have dug for treasures, in our time the very foundations are deep beneath the earth, and not to be got at for the water that oozes into the shafts that they have tried to sink through the sand and mud banks.

Thus, the locations of many villages and towns that once existed along the rivers or on the lower lands nearby were hidden by the water and the mud it carried. The grasses and reeds that grew there finished the job and left nothing visible, so the great buildings of ancient times were completely buried. And as those who have searched for treasures have shown, even in our time, the very foundations are buried deep beneath the earth and can't be reached because of the water that seeps into the shafts they've tried to dig through the sand and mud.

From an elevation, therefore, there was nothing visible but endless forest and marsh. On the level ground and plains the view was limited to a short distance, because of the thickets and the saplings which had now become young trees. The downs only were still partially open, yet it was not convenient to walk upon them except in the tracks of animals, because of the long grass which, being no more regularly grazed upon by sheep, as was once the case, grew thick and tangled. Furze, too, and heath covered the slopes, and in places vast quantities of fern. There had always been copses of fir and beech and nut-tree covers, and these increased and spread, while bramble, briar, and hawthorn extended around them.

From a higher point, all that could be seen was endless forest and marsh. On the flat ground and plains, the view was limited to a short distance because of the bushes and young trees that had grown. The hills were only partially open, but it was difficult to walk on them except along animal paths because of the long grass, which had grown thick and tangled since sheep no longer grazed there as they used to. Gorse and heath covered the slopes, with large quantities of ferns in some areas. There had always been patches of fir, beech, and nut trees, and these had increased and spread, while brambles, briars, and hawthorn grew around them.

By degrees the trees of the vale seemed as it were to invade and march up the hills, and, as we see in our time, in many places the downs are hidden altogether with a stunted kind of forest. But all the above happened in the time of the first generation. Besides these things a great physical change took place; but before I speak of that, it will be best to relate what effects were produced upon animals and men.

By degrees, the trees in the valley appeared to spread and climb up the hills, and, just like we see today, in many places the open downs are completely covered with a scrubby type of forest. But all of this occurred during the time of the first generation. In addition to these changes, a significant physical transformation took place; but before I discuss that, it’s best to describe what effects it had on animals and humans.

In the first years after the fields were left to themselves, the fallen and over-ripe corn crops became the resort of innumerable mice. They swarmed to an incredible degree, not only devouring the grain upon the straw that had never been cut, but clearing out every single ear in the wheat-ricks that were standing about the country. Nothing remained in these ricks but straw, pierced with tunnels and runs, the home and breeding-place of mice, which thence poured forth into the fields. Such grain as had been left in barns and granaries, in mills, and in warehouses of the deserted towns, disappeared in the same manner.

In the first few years after the fields were abandoned, the fallen and overripe corn crops became a haven for countless mice. They multiplied rapidly, not only devouring the grain on the unharvested straw but also clearing out every single ear in the wheat stacks scattered across the countryside. All that was left in these stacks were straw, riddled with tunnels and runs, serving as the home and breeding ground for mice, which then spilled out into the fields. Any grain that remained in barns, granaries, mills, or warehouses of the deserted towns vanished in the same way.

When men tried to raise crops in small gardens and enclosures for their sustenance, these legions of mice rushed in and destroyed the produce of their labour. Nothing could keep them out, and if a score were killed, a hundred more supplied their place. These mice were preyed upon by kestrel hawks, owls, and weasels; but at first they made little or no appreciable difference. In a few years, however, the weasels, having such a superabundance of food, trebled in numbers, and in the same way the hawks, owls, and foxes increased. There was then some relief, but even now at intervals districts are invaded, and the granaries and the standing corn suffer from these depredations.

When people began to grow crops in small gardens and fenced areas for their food, large numbers of mice rushed in and destroyed what they had worked hard to produce. Nothing could keep them out, and for every twenty that were killed, a hundred more took their place. These mice were hunted by kestrel hawks, owls, and weasels, but initially, their presence made little to no noticeable difference. However, after a few years, the weasels, benefiting from an overabundance of food, tripled in number, and the same happened with the hawks, owls, and foxes. There was some relief then, but even now, some areas are periodically invaded, and the granaries and standing crops still suffer from these attacks.

This does not happen every year, but only at intervals, for it is noticed that mice abound very much more in some seasons than others. The extraordinary multiplication of these creatures was the means of providing food for the cats that had been abandoned in the towns, and came forth into the country in droves. Feeding on the mice, they became, in a very short time, quite wild, and their descendants now roam the forest.

This doesn't happen every year, but only at certain times, as it's observed that mice are much more plentiful in some seasons than in others. The remarkable increase in these creatures provided food for the cats that had been left behind in the towns, which came out into the countryside in large groups. By feeding on the mice, they quickly became quite wild, and their offspring now roam the forest.

In our houses we still have several varieties of the domestic cat, such as the tortoise-shell, which is the most prized, but when the above-mentioned cats became wild, after a while the several varieties disappeared, and left but one wild kind. Those which are now so often seen in the forest, and which do so much mischief about houses and enclosures, are almost all greyish, some being striped, and they are also much longer in the body than the tame. A few are jet black; their skins are then preferred by hunters.

In our homes, we still have various types of domestic cats, like the tortoiseshell, which is the most valued. However, when the previously mentioned cats went wild, the different types gradually vanished, leaving only one wild species. The cats commonly spotted in the forests now, causing trouble around houses and yards, are mostly grayish, with some being striped, and they are also significantly longer than domestic cats. A few are solid black; hunters prefer their fur.

Though the forest cat retires from the sight of man as much as possible, yet it is extremely fierce in defence of its young, and instances have been known where travellers in the woods have been attacked upon unwittingly approaching their dens. Dropping from the boughs of a tree upon the shoulders, the creature flies at the face, inflicting deep scratches and bites, exceedingly painful, and sometimes dangerous, from the tendency to fester. But such cases are rare, and the reason the forest cat is so detested is because it preys upon fowls and poultry, mounting with ease the trees or places where they roost.

Though the forest cat avoids humans as much as it can, it is extremely fierce when defending its young, and there have been instances where travelers in the woods have been attacked after unwittingly approaching their dens. Dropping from the branches of a tree onto a person’s shoulders, the creature lunges at the face, leaving deep scratches and bites that are very painful and sometimes dangerous due to the risk of infection. However, such instances are rare, and the main reason the forest cat is so disliked is because it preys on chickens and other poultry, easily climbing the trees or other places where they roost.

Almost worse than the mice were the rats, which came out of the old cities in such vast numbers that the people who survived and saw them are related to have fled in fear. This terror, however, did not last so long as the evil of the mice, for the rats, probably not finding sufficient food when together, scattered abroad, and were destroyed singly by the cats and dogs, who slew them by thousands, far more than they could afterwards eat, so that the carcases were left to decay. It is said that, overcome with hunger, these armies of rats in some cases fell upon each other, and fed on their own kindred. They are still numerous, but do not appear to do the same amount of damage as is occasionally caused by the mice, when the latter invade the cultivated lands.

Almost worse than the mice were the rats, which came out of the old cities in such huge numbers that the survivors who saw them reportedly fled in fear. However, this terror didn’t last as long as the problem with the mice, because the rats, probably not finding enough food when they were together, spread out and were killed one by one by the cats and dogs, which slaughtered them by the thousands, far more than they could eat later, leaving the carcasses to rot. It's said that, driven by hunger, these swarms of rats sometimes turned on each other and fed on their own kind. They are still plentiful, but they don’t seem to cause as much damage as the mice do when the latter invade the cultivated fields.

The dogs, of course, like the cats, were forced by starvation into the fields, where they perished in incredible numbers. Of many species of dogs which are stated to have been plentiful among the ancients, we have now nothing but the name. The poodle is extinct, the Maltese terrier, the Pomeranian, the Italian greyhound, and, it is believed, great numbers of crosses and mongrels have utterly disappeared. There was none to feed them, and they could not find food for themselves, nor could they stand the rigour of the winter when exposed to the frost in the open air.

The dogs, just like the cats, were driven to the fields by hunger, where they died in staggering numbers. Many breeds of dogs that were once common in ancient times are now only remembered by their names. The poodle is gone, the Maltese terrier, the Pomeranian, the Italian greyhound, and it’s believed that many mixed breeds and mutts have completely vanished. There was no one to feed them, and they couldn’t find food on their own, nor could they withstand the harshness of winter when exposed to the cold outdoors.

Some kinds, more hardy and fitted by nature for the chase, became wild, and their descendants are now found in the woods. Of these, there are three sorts which keep apart from each other, and are thought not to interbreed. The most numerous are the black. The black wood-dog is short and stoutly made, with shaggy hair, sometimes marked with white patches.

Some species, more resilient and adapted for hunting, became wild, and their descendants are now found in the forests. Among these, there are three types that stay separate from one another and are believed not to interbreed. The most common are the black ones. The black woodland dog is short and sturdy, with shaggy fur, sometimes marked with white patches.

There can be no doubt that it is the descendant of the ancient sheep-dog, for it is known that the sheep-dog was of that character, and it is said that those who used to keep sheep soon found their dogs abandon the fold, and join the wild troops that fell upon the sheep. The black wood-dogs hunt in packs of ten or more (as many as forty have been counted), and are the pest of the farmer, for, unless his flocks are protected at night within stockades or enclosures, they are certain to be attacked. Not satisfied with killing enough to satisfy hunger, these dogs tear and mangle for sheer delight of blood, and will destroy twenty times as many as they can eat, leaving the miserably torn carcases on the field. Nor are the sheep always safe by day if the wood-dogs happen to be hungry. The shepherd is, therefore, usually accompanied by two or three mastiffs, of whose great size and strength the others stand in awe. At night, and when in large packs, starving in the snow, not even the mastiffs can check them.

There’s no doubt that it’s a descendant of the ancient sheepdog, as it’s known that the sheepdog had that kind of character. It’s said that those who kept sheep soon noticed their dogs leaving the flock to join the wild packs preying on the sheep. The black wood dogs hunt in packs of ten or more (with some packs numbering up to forty), and they’re a real problem for farmers. If the flocks aren’t protected at night within stockades or enclosures, they are guaranteed to be attacked. Not content with killing just enough to eat, these dogs tear apart and mutilate for the sheer thrill of it, often destroying twenty times what they can consume and leaving the horribly torn carcasses on the field. Plus, the sheep aren’t always safe during the day if the wood dogs are hungry. Because of this, shepherds usually have two or three mastiffs with them, whose size and strength intimidate the other dogs. At night, when in large packs and starving in the snow, even the mastiffs can’t hold them back.

No wood-dog, of any kind, has ever been known to attack man, and the hunter in the forest hears their bark in every direction without fear. It is, nevertheless, best to retire out of their way when charging sheep in packs, for they then seem seized with a blind fury, and some who have endeavoured to fight them have been thrown down and seriously mauled. But this has been in the blindness of their rush; no instance has ever been known of their purposely attacking man.

No wild dog, of any kind, has ever been known to attack a human, and hunters in the woods hear their barks coming from all directions without fear. However, it’s still wise to get out of their way when they’re rounding up sheep in packs, as they can become frenzied, and some who have tried to confront them have been knocked down and seriously injured. But this is due to their reckless charge; there has never been a case of them intentionally attacking a person.

These black wood-dogs will also chase and finally pull down cattle, if they can get within the enclosures, and even horses have fallen victims to their untiring thirst for blood. Not even the wild cattle can always escape, despite their strength, and they have been known to run down stags, though not their usual quarry.

These black wood dogs will also chase and eventually take down cattle if they can get into the enclosures, and even horses have fallen prey to their relentless thirst for blood. Not even the wild cattle can always get away, despite their strength, and they have been known to run down stags, even though that’s not their usual target.

The next kind of wild wood-dog is the yellow, a smaller animal, with smooth hair inclining to a yellow colour, which lives principally upon game, chasing all, from the hare to the stag. It is as swift, or nearly as swift, as the greyhound, and possesses greater endurance. In coursing the hare, it not uncommonly happens that these dogs start from the brake and take the hare, when nearly exhausted, from the hunter's hounds. They will in the same way follow a stag, which has been almost run down by the hunters, and bring him to bay, though in this case they lose their booty, dispersing through fear of man, when the hunters come up in a body.

The next type of wild wood dog is the yellow one, which is smaller and has smooth fur that leans towards a yellow color. It mainly hunts game, chasing everything from hares to stags. It is as fast, or almost as fast, as a greyhound and has better stamina. When chasing hares, it's common for these dogs to spring from the underbrush and catch a hare just as it's about to be exhausted by the hunter's hounds. They can also follow a stag that’s almost been caught by the hunters and trap it, although in this case, they usually lose their prize and scatter in fear when the hunters arrive in force.

But such is their love of the chase, that they are known to assemble from their lairs at the distant sound of the horn, and, as the hunters ride through the woods, they often see the yellow dogs flitting along side by side with them through bush and fern. These animals sometimes hunt singly, sometimes in couples, and as the season advances, and winter approaches, in packs of eight or twelve. They never attack sheep or cattle, and avoid man, except when they perceive he is engaged in the chase. There is little doubt that they are the descendants of the dogs which the ancients called lurchers, crossed, perhaps, with the greyhound, and possibly other breeds. When the various species of dogs were thrown on their own resources, those only withstood the exposure and hardships which were naturally hardy, and possessed natural aptitude for the chase.

But their love of the hunt is so strong that they are known to gather at the distant sound of the horn, and as the hunters ride through the woods, they often see the yellow dogs running alongside them through the underbrush and ferns. These animals sometimes hunt alone, sometimes in pairs, and as the season goes on and winter approaches, in packs of eight or twelve. They never attack sheep or cattle and steer clear of humans, except when they notice that a person is involved in the hunt. There’s little doubt that they are descendants of the dogs that the ancients called lurchers, possibly mixed with greyhounds and other breeds. When different dog breeds were left to fend for themselves, only those that were naturally resilient and had a natural talent for hunting survived the tough conditions.

The third species of wood-dog is the white. They are low on the legs, of a dingy white colour, and much smaller than the other two. They neither attack cattle nor game, though fond of hunting rabbits. This dog is, in fact, a scavenger, living upon the carcases of dead sheep and animals, which are found picked clean in the night. For this purpose it haunts the neighbourhood of habitations, and prowls in the evening over heaps of refuse, scampering away at the least alarm, for it is extremely timid.

The third type of wood-dog is the white one. They have short legs, a dirty white color, and are much smaller than the other two. They don’t bother cattle or game, but they do enjoy hunting rabbits. This dog is essentially a scavenger, feeding on the carcasses of dead sheep and animals, which are found picked clean by morning. To find food, it hangs around homes and sneaks around piles of trash in the evening, darting away at the slightest noise because they are very timid.

It is perfectly harmless, for even the poultry do not dread it, and it will not face a tame cat, if by chance the two meet. It is rarely met with far from habitations, though it will accompany an army on the march. It may be said to remain in one district. The black and yellow dogs, on the contrary, roam about the forest without apparent home. One day the hunter sees signs of their presence, and perhaps may, for a month afterwards, not so much as hear a bark.

It’s completely harmless; even the chickens aren’t afraid of it, and it won’t confront a pet cat if they happen to cross paths. It’s rarely found far from human dwellings, though it will follow an army on the move. You could say it stays in one area. The black and yellow dogs, on the other hand, wander freely through the forest without any visible home. One day, a hunter might see evidence of their presence, and then not hear a bark for the next month.

This uncertainty in the case of the black dog is the bane of the shepherds; for, not seeing or hearing anything of the enemy for months altogether, in spite of former experience their vigilance relaxes, and suddenly, while they sleep, their flocks are scattered. We still have, among tame dogs, the mastiff, terrier, spaniel, deerhound, and greyhound, all of which are as faithful to man as ever.

This uncertainty about the black dog is a real hassle for the shepherds; after not seeing or hearing anything from the enemy for months, their watchfulness drops, and suddenly, while they're sleeping, their flocks get scattered. We still have among domestic dogs the mastiff, terrier, spaniel, deerhound, and greyhound, all of which are just as loyal to humans as ever.


CHAPTER II
WILD ANIMALS


When the ancients departed, great numbers of their cattle perished. It was not so much the want of food as the inability to endure exposure that caused their death; a few winters are related to have so reduced them that they died by hundreds, many mangled by dogs. The hardiest that remained became perfectly wild, and the wood cattle are now more difficult to approach than deer.

When the ancients left, many of their cattle died. It wasn't just a lack of food but their inability to withstand the harsh conditions that led to their deaths; stories say that a few winters drastically reduced their numbers, killing them by the hundreds, with many being attacked by dogs. The toughest ones that survived turned completely wild, and the wild cattle are now harder to approach than deer.

There are two kinds, the white and the black. The white (sometimes dun) are believed to be the survivors of the domestic roan-and-white, for the cattle in our enclosures at the present day are of that colour. The black are smaller, and are doubtless little changed from their state in the olden times, except that they are wild. These latter are timid, unless accompanied by a calf, and are rarely known to turn upon their pursuers. But the white are fierce at all times; they will not, indeed, attack man, but will scarcely run from him, and it is not always safe to cross their haunts.

There are two types: the white and the black. The white (sometimes called dun) are thought to be the descendants of the domestic roan-and-white, as the cattle we see in our pastures today share that color. The black ones are smaller and likely haven't changed much since ancient times, apart from being wild. They are usually timid unless they have a calf with them, and they rarely attack their pursuers. In contrast, the white ones are fierce at all times; they won't actually attack humans, but they won't typically run away either, and it can be risky to enter their territory.

The bulls are savage beyond measure at certain seasons of the year. If they see men at a distance, they retire; if they come unexpectedly face to face, they attack. This characteristic enables those who travel through districts known to be haunted by white cattle to provide against an encounter, for, by occasionally blowing a horn, the herd that may be in the vicinity is dispersed. There are not often more than twenty in a herd. The hides of the dun are highly prized, both for their intrinsic value, and as proofs of skill and courage, so much so that you shall hardly buy a skin for all the money you may offer; and the horns are likewise trophies. The white or dun bull is the monarch of our forests.

The bulls are incredibly aggressive at certain times of the year. If they spot people from afar, they back off; if they come face to face unexpectedly, they charge. This behavior allows those traveling through areas known to have white cattle to take precautions, as blowing a horn occasionally can scatter any nearby herd. There are usually no more than twenty in a herd. The hides of the dun are highly sought after, both for their value and as symbols of skill and bravery, so much so that you can hardly buy a skin no matter how much money you offer; and the horns are also seen as trophies. The white or dun bull is the king of our forests.

Four kinds of wild pigs are found. The most numerous, or at least the most often seen, as it lies about our enclosures, is the common thorn-hog. It is the largest of the wild pigs, long-bodied and flat-sided, in colour much the hue of the mud in which it wallows. To the agriculturist it is the greatest pest, destroying or damaging all kinds of crops, and routing up the gardens. It is with difficulty kept out by palisading, for if there be a weak place in the wooden framework, the strong snout of the animal is sure to undermine and work a passage through.

Four types of wild pigs can be found. The most common one, or at least the one we see the most around our enclosures, is the common thorn-hog. It's the largest of the wild pigs, with a long body and flat sides, and its color closely matches the mud it likes to roll in. For farmers, it's the biggest nuisance, ruining or damaging all sorts of crops and tearing up gardens. It’s tough to keep them out with fences, because if there’s a weak spot in the wooden structure, the animal's strong snout will definitely find a way to break through.

As there are always so many of these pigs round about inhabited places and cultivated fields, constant care is required, for they instantly discover an opening. From their habit of haunting the thickets and bush which come up to the verge of the enclosures, they have obtained the name of thorn-hogs. Some reach an immense size, and they are very prolific, so that it is impossible to destroy them. The boars are fierce at a particular season, but never attack unless provoked to do so. But when driven to bay they are the most dangerous of the boars, on account of their vast size and weight. They are of a sluggish disposition, and will not rise from their lairs unless forced to do so.

As there are always so many of these pigs around populated areas and farmland, constant care is needed because they quickly find any gaps. Due to their tendency to lurk in the bushes and thickets that edge the enclosures, they’ve earned the nickname thorn-hogs. Some grow to a massive size, and they reproduce so much that it’s impossible to get rid of them. The boars can be aggressive during certain times of the year, but they only attack if they feel threatened. However, when cornered, they are the most dangerous type of boar due to their large size and weight. They tend to be slow-moving and won’t get up from their bedding unless they have to.

The next kind is the white hog, which has much the same habits as the former, except that it is usually found in moist places, near lakes and rivers, and is often called the marsh-pig. The third kind is perfectly black, much smaller in size, and very active, affording by far the best sport, and also the best food when killed. As they are found on the hills where the ground is somewhat more open, horses can follow freely, and the chase becomes exciting. By some it is called the hill-hog, from the locality it frequents. The small tusks of the black boar are used for many ornamental purposes.

The next type is the white hog, which has similar habits to the previous one, except that it’s usually found in wet areas, near lakes and rivers, and is often referred to as the marsh-pig. The third type is completely black, much smaller, and very active, providing the best sport and also the best meat when hunted. Since they are found on the hills where the ground is a bit more open, horses can follow easily, making the chase exciting. Some people call it the hill-hog because of the area it inhabits. The small tusks of the black boar are used for many decorative purposes.

These three species are considered to be the descendants of the various domestic pigs of the ancients, but the fourth, or grey, is thought to be the true wild boar. It is seldom seen, but is most common in the south-western forests, where, from the quantity of fern, it is called the fern-pig. This kind is believed to represent the true wild boar, which was extinct, or merged in the domestic hog among the ancients, except in that neighbourhood where the strain remained.

These three species are thought to be descendants of the various domestic pigs from ancient times, while the fourth one, the grey, is believed to be the true wild boar. It’s rarely spotted, but it’s most common in the southwestern forests, where it’s referred to as the fern-pig due to the abundance of ferns. This type is believed to represent the actual wild boar, which either went extinct or mixed with domestic hogs among the ancients, except in the area where the original strain survived.

With wild times, the wild habits have returned, and the grey boar is at once the most difficult of access, and the most ready to encounter either dogs or men. Although the first, or thorn-hog, does the most damage to the agriculturist because of its numbers, and its habit of haunting the neighbourhood of enclosures, the others are equally injurious if they chance to enter the cultivated fields.

With wild times, the wild habits have come back, and the gray boar is both the hardest to approach and the most willing to confront either dogs or people. While the first, or thorn-hog, causes the most damage to farmers because of its numbers and tendency to hang around fences, the others can also be equally harmful if they happen to wander into the cultivated fields.

The three principal kinds of wild sheep are the horned, the thyme, and the meadow. The thyme sheep are the smallest, and haunt the highest hills in the south, where, feeding on the sweet herbage of the ridges, their flesh is said to acquire a flavour of wild thyme. They move in small flocks of not more than thirty, and are the most difficult to approach, being far more wary than deer, so continuously are they hunted by the wood-dogs. The horned are larger, and move in greater numbers; as many as two hundred are sometimes seen together.

The three main types of wild sheep are the horned, the thyme, and the meadow. The thyme sheep are the smallest and live in the highest hills in the south. They feed on the sweet grass of the ridges, and it's said their meat takes on a flavor of wild thyme. They travel in small groups of no more than thirty and are the hardest to get close to, as they are much more cautious than deer due to constant hunting by the wood-dogs. The horned sheep are larger and gather in bigger numbers; sometimes, you can see as many as two hundred together.

They are found on the lower slopes and plains, and in the woods. The meadow sheep have long shaggy wool, which is made into various articles of clothing, but they are not numerous. They haunt river sides, and the shores of lakes and ponds. None of these are easily got at, on account of the wood-dogs; but the rams of the horned kind are reputed to sometimes turn upon the pursuing pack, and butt them to death. In the extremity of their terror whole flocks of wild sheep have been driven over precipices and into quagmires and torrents.

They are found on the lower hills and plains, as well as in the woods. The meadow sheep have long, shaggy wool that is made into various types of clothing, but they aren't very common. They tend to hang around riverbanks, lakes, and ponds. None of these are easy to catch because of the wood-dogs; however, horned rams are said to occasionally charge back at the attacking pack and but them to death. In their extreme fear, entire flocks of wild sheep have been driven over cliffs and into swamps and raging waters.

Besides these, there are several other species whose haunt is local. On the islands, especially, different kinds are found. The wood-dogs will occasionally, in calm weather, swim out to an island and kill every sheep upon it.

Besides these, there are several other species that are found locally. On the islands, in particular, various types can be observed. The wood-dogs will sometimes, during calm weather, swim out to an island and kill every sheep on it.

From the horses that were in use among the ancients the two wild species now found are known to have descended, a fact confirmed by their evident resemblance to the horses we still retain. The largest wild horse is almost black, or inclined to a dark colour, somewhat less in size than our present waggon horses, but of the same heavy make. It is, however, much swifter, on account of having enjoyed liberty for so long. It is called the bush-horse, being generally distributed among thickets and meadow-like lands adjoining water.

The two wild horse species we have today are known to have descended from the horses used in ancient times, a fact supported by their clear resemblance to the horses we still have. The largest wild horse is almost black or tends to be a dark color, slightly smaller than our current wagon horses but built similarly. However, it's much faster because it has enjoyed freedom for so long. It's called the bush horse and is typically found in thickets and meadow-like areas near water.

The other species is called the hill-pony, from its habitat, the hills, and is rather less in size than our riding-horse. This latter is short and thick-set, so much so as not to be easily ridden by short persons without high stirrups. Neither of these wild horses are numerous, but neither are they uncommon. They keep entirely separate from each other. As many as thirty mares are sometimes seen together, but there are districts where the traveller will not observe one for weeks.

The other species is known as the hill pony, named for its habitat in the hills, and it's somewhat smaller than our riding horse. This riding horse is short and stocky, making it difficult for shorter people to ride without high stirrups. Neither of these wild horses are plentiful, but they aren't rare either. They stay completely separate from each other. Sometimes, you might see up to thirty mares together, but there are areas where travelers might not spot a single one for weeks.

Tradition says that in the olden times there were horses of a slender build whose speed outstripped the wind, but of the breed of these famous racers not one is left. Whether they were too delicate to withstand exposure, or whether the wild dogs hunted them down is uncertain, but they are quite gone. Did but one exist, how eagerly it would be sought out, for in these days it would be worth its weight in gold, unless, indeed, as some affirm, such speed only endured for a mile or two.

Tradition says that in ancient times there were horses with a slender build that could run faster than the wind, but none of that famous breed remain. It's unclear whether they were too fragile to survive in the wild or if wild dogs hunted them down, but they’re completely gone. If even one were to exist now, it would be sought after eagerly, as it would be worth its weight in gold, unless, as some claim, their speed only lasted for a mile or two.

It is not necessary, having written thus far of the animals, that anything be said of the birds of the woods, which every one knows were not always wild, and which can, indeed, be compared with such poultry as are kept in our enclosures. Such are the bush-hens, the wood-turkeys, the galenæ, the peacocks, the white duck and the white goose, all of which, though now wild as the hawk, are well known to have been once tame.

It’s not necessary, having talked about the animals so far, to mention the birds of the woods, which everyone knows were not always wild and can actually be compared to the poultry that we keep in our yards. These include bush-hens, wood-turkeys, galenæ, peacocks, white ducks, and white geese, all of which, although now as wild as hawks, were once domesticated.

There were deer, red and fallow, in numerous parks and chases of very old time, and these, having got loose, and having such immense tracts to roam over unmolested, went on increasing till now they are beyond computation, and I have myself seen a thousand head together. Within these forty years, as I learn, the roe-deer, too, have come down from the extreme north, so that there are now three sorts in the woods. Before them the pine-marten came from the same direction, and, though they are not yet common, it is believed they are increasing. For the first few years after the change took place there seemed a danger lest the foreign wild beasts that had been confined as curiosities in menageries should multiply and remain in the woods. But this did not happen.

There were red and fallow deer in many parks and old hunting grounds for a long time, and after getting loose, they roamed freely over vast areas and continued to multiply until now they're countless; I've even seen a thousand of them together. In the past forty years, I've learned that roe deer have come down from the far north, so now there are three types in the woods. The pine marten also arrived from the same area, and although they aren't common yet, they're believed to be on the rise. In the first few years after the change occurred, there was concern that the exotic wild animals that had been kept in menageries would reproduce and stay in the woods. However, that didn't happen.

Some few lions, tigers, bears, and other animals did indeed escape, together with many less furious creatures, and it is related that they roamed about the fields for a long time. They were seldom met with, having such an extent of country to wander over, and after a while entirely disappeared. If any progeny were born, the winter frosts must have destroyed it, and the same fate awaited the monstrous serpents which had been collected for exhibition. Only one such animal now exists which is known to owe its origin to those which escaped from the dens of the ancients. It is the beaver, whose dams are now occasionally found upon the streams by those who traverse the woods. Some of the aquatic birds, too, which frequent the lakes, are thought to have been originally derived from those which were formerly kept as curiosities.

Some lions, tigers, bears, and other animals did escape, along with many less fierce creatures, and it’s said they roamed the fields for a long time. They were rarely seen, given the vast area they could wander, and eventually disappeared completely. If any offspring were born, the winter cold must have killed them, and the same fate likely awaited the giant snakes that had been gathered for display. Only one such animal still exists, known to have descended from those that escaped from the ancient enclosures. It's the beaver, whose dams can sometimes be found along streams by those exploring the woods. Some of the waterfowl that visit the lakes are also believed to have originally come from those kept as curiosities.

In the castle yard at Longtover may still be seen the bones of an elephant which was found dying in the woods near that spot.

In the castle yard at Longtover, you can still see the bones of an elephant that was found dying in the woods nearby.


CHAPTER III
MEN OF THE WOODS


So far as this, all that I have stated has been clear, and there can be no doubt that what has been thus handed down from mouth to mouth is for the most part correct. When I pass from trees and animals to men, however, the thing is different, for nothing is certain and everything confused. None of the accounts agree, nor can they be altogether reconciled with present facts or with reasonable supposition; yet it is not so long since but a few memories, added one to the other, can bridge the time, and, though not many, there are some written notes still to be found. I must attribute the discrepancy to the wars and hatreds which sprang up and divided the people, so that one would not listen to what the others wished to say, and the truth was lost.

So far, everything I've mentioned has been clear, and there's no doubt that what has been passed down orally is mostly accurate. However, when I shift from discussing trees and animals to people, the situation changes; nothing is certain and everything is confusing. None of the accounts match up, and they can't fully align with current facts or reasonable assumptions. Yet, it hasn't been long—just a few memories strung together—and some written notes still exist. I think the differences arise from the wars and animosities that developed and divided the people, making it so that individuals refused to hear what others had to say, causing the truth to be lost.

Besides which, in the conflagration which consumed the towns, most of the records were destroyed, and are no longer to be referred to. And it may be that even when they were proceeding, the causes of the change were not understood. Therefore, what I am now about to describe is not to be regarded as the ultimate truth, but as the nearest to which I could attain after comparing the various traditions. Some say, then, that the first beginning of the change was because the sea silted up the entrances to the ancient ports, and stopped the vast commerce which was once carried on. It is certainly true that many of the ports are silted up, and are now useless as such, but whether the silting up preceded the disappearance of the population, or whether the disappearance of the population, and the consequent neglect caused the silting, I cannot venture to positively assert.

Besides that, during the fire that destroyed the towns, most of the records were lost and can no longer be referenced. It’s possible that even while they were still functioning, the reasons for the changes weren’t fully understood. Therefore, what I’m about to describe shouldn’t be seen as the ultimate truth, but as the closest I could get after comparing different traditions. Some say that the initial cause of the change was the sea silt filling in the entrances to the ancient ports, which halted the extensive trade that used to take place. It’s definitely true that many of the ports are now filled with silt and no longer serve their purpose, but whether the silting happened before the population disappeared or if the population’s decline and the resulting neglect caused the silting, I can’t say for sure.

For there are signs that the level of the sea has sunk in some places, and signs that it has become higher in others, so that the judicious historian will simply state the facts, and refrain from colouring them with his own theory as Silvester has done. Others again maintain that the supply of food from over the ocean suddenly stopping caused great disorders, and that the people crowded on board all the ships to escape starvation, and sailed away, and were no more heard of.

For there are signs that the sea level has dropped in some areas and risen in others, so a wise historian will just present the facts without adding their own interpretation, like Silvester did. Others argue that the sudden halt in food supplies from across the ocean led to major chaos, causing people to rush onto all the ships to escape starvation, and they sailed off, never to be heard from again.

It has, too, been said that the earth, from some attractive power exercised by the passage of an enormous dark body through space, became tilted or inclined to its orbit more than before, and that this, while it lasted, altered the flow of the magnetic currents, which, in an imperceptible manner, influence the minds of men. Hitherto the stream of human life had directed itself to the westward, but when this reversal of magnetism occurred, a general desire arose to return to the east. And those whose business is theology have pointed out that the wickedness of those times surpassed understanding, and that a change and sweeping away of the human evil that had accumulated was necessary, and was effected by supernatural means. The relation of this must be left to them, since it is not the province of the philosopher to meddle with such matters.

It has also been said that the Earth, due to some attractive force from an immense dark object moving through space, became tilted or slanted in its orbit more than before. This change, while it lasted, affected the flow of magnetic currents, which, in a subtle way, influence people's minds. Until then, the direction of human life had been toward the west, but when this reversal of magnetism happened, a widespread desire emerged to return east. Those who study theology have pointed out that the wickedness of that time was beyond comprehension and that a change was needed to eliminate the human evil that had built up, which was brought about by supernatural means. The details of this must be left to them, as it's not the philosopher's role to interfere with such matters.

All that seems certain is, that when the event took place, the immense crowds collected in cities were most affected, and that the richer and upper classes made use of their money to escape. Those left behind were mainly the lower and most ignorant, so far as the arts were concerned; those that dwelt in distant and outlying places; and those who lived by agriculture. These last at that date had fallen to such distress that they could not hire vessels to transport themselves. The exact number of those left behind cannot, of course, be told, but it is on record that when the fields were first neglected (as I have already described), a man might ride a hundred miles and not meet another. They were not only few, but scattered, and had not drawn together and formed towns as at present.

All that seems certain is that when the event happened, the huge crowds in the cities were the most affected, and the wealthy and upper classes used their money to escape. Those left behind were mainly the lower and less educated, at least when it came to the arts; those living in remote and rural areas; and those who worked in agriculture. At that time, these agricultural workers were in such distress that they couldn’t afford to hire boats to transport themselves. The exact number of those left behind is impossible to determine, but it's noted that when the fields were first neglected (as I've already mentioned), a person could travel a hundred miles and not see anyone else. They were not just few, but scattered, and had not come together to form towns like we have now.

Of what became of the vast multitudes that left the country, nothing has ever been heard, and no communication has been received from them. For this reason I cannot conceal my opinion that they must have sailed either to the westward or to the southward where the greatest extent of ocean is understood to exist, and not to the eastward as Silvester would have it in his work upon the "Unknown Orb", the dark body travelling in space to which I have alluded. None of our vessels in the present day dare venture into those immense tracts of sea, nor, indeed, out of sight of land, unless they know they shall see it again so soon as they have reached and surmounted the ridge of the horizon. Had they only crossed to the mainland or continent again, we should most likely have heard of their passage across the countries there.

Of what happened to the huge numbers of people who left the country, nothing has ever been known, and no messages have come from them. Because of this, I can’t hide my belief that they must have traveled either west or south, where the vast ocean is believed to be, and not east as Silvester suggests in his work on the "Unknown Orb," the mysterious object moving through space that I mentioned. Nowadays, none of our ships dare to venture into those vast stretches of sea, nor even out of sight of land, unless they are sure they’ll see it again as soon as they reach the edge of the horizon. If they had simply crossed back to the mainland or continent, we would probably have heard about their journey through those lands by now.

It is true that ships rarely come over, and only to two ports, and that the men on them say (so far as can be understood) that their country is equally deserted now, and has likewise lost its population. But still, as men talk unto men, and we pass intelligence across great breadths of land, it is almost certain that, had they travelled that way, some echo of their footsteps would yet sound back to us. Regarding this theory, therefore, as untenable, I put forward as a suggestion that the ancients really sailed to the west or to the south.

It's true that ships rarely come here, and only to two ports, and the people on them say (as far as we can understand) that their country is also deserted now and has lost its population. However, since people communicate with each other and we share information across vast distances, it's almost certain that if they had traveled that way, some trace of their journey would still reach us. Considering this idea, I propose that the ancients actually sailed west or south.

As, for the most part, those who were left behind were ignorant, rude, and unlettered, it consequently happened that many of the marvellous things which the ancients did, and the secrets of their science, are known to us by name only, and, indeed, hardly by name. It has happened to us in our turn as it happened to the ancients. For they were aware that in times before their own the art of making glass malleable had been discovered, so that it could be beaten into shape like copper. But the manner in which it was accomplished was entirely unknown to them; the fact was on record, but the cause lost. So now we know that those who to us are the ancients had a way of making diamonds and precious stones out of black and lustreless charcoal, a fact which approaches the incredible. Still, we do not doubt it, though we cannot imagine by what means it was carried out.

As most of the people who were left behind were ignorant, rude, and uneducated, many of the incredible things the ancients did and the secrets of their knowledge are now known to us only by name and, honestly, barely even that. We find ourselves in a similar situation as the ancients did. They knew that long before their time, someone had figured out how to make glass flexible enough to be shaped like copper. However, they had no idea how it was done; the fact was documented, but the method was lost. Similarly, we know that what we consider the ancients had a way of turning black and dull charcoal into diamonds and precious stones, which seems almost unbelievable. Yet, we don’t doubt it, even though we can’t fathom how it was achieved.

They also sent intelligence to the utmost parts of the earth along wires which were not tubular, but solid, and therefore could not transmit sound, and yet the person who received the message could hear and recognise the voice of the sender a thousand miles away. With certain machines worked by fire, they traversed the land swift as the swallow glides through the sky, but of these things not a relic remains to us. What metal-work or wheels or bars of iron were left, and might have given us a clue, were all broken up and melted down for use in other ways when metal became scarce.

They also sent messages to the farthest corners of the earth through solid wires that couldn't transmit sound, yet the person receiving the message could hear and recognize the sender's voice from a thousand miles away. With certain fire-powered machines, they moved across the land as quickly as a swallow glides through the sky, but no trace of these things remains. Any metalwork, wheels, or iron bars that could have provided clues were all broken down and melted for other uses when metal became scarce.

Mounds of earth are said to still exist in the woods, which originally formed the roads for these machines, but they are now so low, and so covered with thickets, that nothing can be learnt from them; and, indeed, though I have heard of their existence, I have never seen one. Great holes were made through the very hills for the passage of the iron chariot, but they are now blocked by the falling roofs, nor dare any one explore such parts as may yet be open. Where are the wonderful structures with which the men of those days were lifted to the skies, rising above the clouds? These marvellous things are to us little more than fables of the giants and of the old gods that walked upon the earth, which were fables even to those whom we call the ancients.

Mounds of dirt are said to still be in the woods, which originally formed the paths for these machines, but they’re now too low and covered with brush, making it impossible to learn anything from them; and honestly, even though I’ve heard about them, I’ve never seen one. Huge holes were dug through the hills for the passage of the iron chariot, but they’re now blocked by collapsing roofs, and no one dares to explore the areas that might still be open. Where are the amazing structures that allowed people back then to rise to the skies, towering above the clouds? These incredible things are to us little more than legends of giants and ancient gods who once walked the earth, which were already myths to those we refer to as the ancients.

Indeed, we have fuller knowledge of those extremely ancient times than of the people who immediately preceded us, and the Romans and the Greeks are more familiar to us than the men who rode in the iron chariots and mounted to the skies. The reason why so many arts and sciences were lost was because, as I have previously said, the most of those who were left in the country were ignorant, rude, and unlettered. They had seen the iron chariots, but did not understand the method of their construction, and could not hand down the knowledge they did not themselves possess. The magic wires of intelligence passed through their villages, but they did not know how to work them.

Indeed, we have a better understanding of those very ancient times than of the people who came right before us, and the Romans and Greeks are more familiar to us than those who rode in iron chariots and flew into the sky. The reason so many arts and sciences were lost is that, as I mentioned before, most of those who remained in the country were uneducated, crude, and illiterate. They had seen the iron chariots but didn't understand how they were built and couldn't pass on the knowledge they didn't have. The amazing threads of knowledge passed through their villages, but they didn't know how to use them.

The cunning artificers of the cities all departed, and everything fell quickly into barbarism; nor could it be wondered at, for the few and scattered people of those days had enough to do to preserve their lives. Communication between one place and another was absolutely cut off, and if one perchance did recollect something that might have been of use, he could not confer with another who knew the other part, and thus between them reconstruct the machine. In the second generation even these disjointed memories died out.

The clever craftsmen of the cities all left, and everything quickly devolved into chaos; it was no surprise, as the few scattered people of that time were busy just trying to survive. Communication between different areas was completely lost, and if someone happened to remember something that could have been helpful, they couldn't discuss it with someone else who knew the other piece, making it impossible to put the machine back together. By the second generation, even these fragmented memories faded away.

At first it is supposed that those who remained behind existed upon the grain in the warehouses, and what they could thresh by the flail from the crops left neglected in the fields. But as the provisions in the warehouses were consumed or spoiled, they hunted the animals, lately tame and as yet but half wild. As these grew less in number and difficult to overtake, they set to work again to till the ground, and cleared away small portions of the earth, encumbered already with brambles and thistles. Some grew corn, and some took charge of sheep. Thus, in time, places far apart from each other were settled, and towns were built; towns, indeed, we call them to distinguish them from the champaign, but they are not worthy of the name in comparison with the mighty cities of old time.

At first, it was thought that those who stayed behind lived off the grain in the warehouses and whatever they could thresh from the crops that had been left abandoned in the fields. But as the supplies in the warehouses ran out or went bad, they started hunting the animals that had recently been domesticated and were still partially wild. As these animals became scarcer and harder to catch, they went back to farming, clearing small patches of land that were already overgrown with weeds and thorns. Some grew grain, while others took care of sheep. Over time, areas far apart from each other became settled, and towns were established; we call them towns to differentiate them from the open countryside, but they aren't really deserving of the name compared to the great cities of ancient times.

There are many that have not more than fifty houses in the enclosure, and perhaps no other station within a day's journey, and the largest are but villages, reckoning by antiquity. For the most part they have their own government, or had till recently, and thus there grew up many provinces and kingdoms in the compass of what was originally but one. Thus separated and divided, there came also to be many races where in the first place was one people. Now, in briefly recounting the principal divisions of men, I will commence with those who are everywhere considered the lowest. These are the Bushmen, who live wholly in the woods.

There are many places with no more than fifty houses in the area, and maybe no other settlement within a day's travel, and the largest are just villages, based on their history. For the most part, they have their own governments, or at least did until recently, and as a result, many provinces and kingdoms emerged from what was originally just one. Being separated and divided, various races developed where there was once one people. Now, briefly summarizing the main groups of people, I will start with those who are generally seen as the lowest. These are the Bushmen, who live entirely in the woods.

Even among the ancients, when every man, woman, and child could exercise those arts which are now the special mark of nobility, i.e. reading and writing, there was a degraded class of persons who refused to avail themselves of the benefits of civilization. They obtained their food by begging, wandering along the highways, crouching around fires which they lit in the open, clad in rags, and exhibiting countenances from which every trace of self-respect had disappeared. These were the ancestors of the present men of the bushes.

Even in ancient times, when everyone—men, women, and children—could practice the skills that we now associate with nobility, like reading and writing, there was a downcast group of people who chose to ignore the advantages of civilization. They got their food by begging, drifting along the roads, huddling around fires they made outside, dressed in rags, and showing faces completely lacking in self-respect. These individuals are the ancestors of today's outcasts living in the wilderness.

They took naturally to the neglected fields, and forming "camps" as they call their tribes, or rather families, wandered to and fro, easily subsisting upon roots and trapped game. So they live to this day, having become extremely dexterous in snaring every species of bird and animal, and the fishes of the streams. These latter they sometimes poison with a drug or a plant (it is not known which), the knowledge of which has been preserved among them since the days of the ancients. The poison kills the fishes, and brings them to the surface, when they can be collected by hundreds, but does not injure them for eating.

They adapted easily to the abandoned fields, forming "camps" as they refer to their groups, or rather families, and roamed around, living off roots and trapped animals. They still live this way today, having become very skilled at catching all kinds of birds and animals, as well as fish from the streams. Sometimes, they use a drug or a plant to poison the fish (it’s unclear which), a technique they've preserved since ancient times. The poison kills the fish, bringing them to the surface, where they can be collected by the hundreds, but it doesn’t harm them for eating.

Like the black wood-dogs, the Bushmen often in fits of savage frenzy destroy thrice as much as they can devour, trapping deer in wickerwork hedges, or pitfalls, and cutting the miserable animals in pieces, for mere thirst of blood. The oxen and cattle in the enclosures are occasionally in the same manner fearfully mutilated by these wretches, sometimes for amusement, and sometimes in vengeance for injuries done to them. Bushmen have no settled home, cultivate no kind of corn or vegetable, keep no animals, not even dogs, have no houses or huts, no boats or canoes, nothing that requires the least intelligence or energy to construct.

Like the black wood-dogs, the Bushmen often, in moments of savage frenzy, destroy far more than they can consume, trapping deer in woven fences or pits, and cutting the unfortunate animals into pieces, driven by a sheer thirst for blood. The oxen and cattle in the enclosures are sometimes brutally mutilated by these people, either for fun or as revenge for perceived wrongs. Bushmen have no permanent homes, do not grow any crops or vegetables, keep no animals, not even dogs, and have no houses or huts, boats or canoes—nothing that requires even the slightest intelligence or effort to create.

Roaming to and fro without any apparent aim or object, or any particular route, they fix their camp for a few days wherever it suits their fancy, and again move on, no man knows why or whither. It is this uncertainty of movement which makes them so dangerous. To-day there may not be the least sign of any within miles of an enclosure. In the night a "camp" may pass, slaughtering such cattle as may have remained without the palisade, or killing the unfortunate shepherd who has not got within the walls, and in the morning they may be nowhere to be seen, having disappeared like vermin. Face to face the Bushman is never to be feared; a whole "camp" or tribal family will scatter if a traveler stumbles into their midst. It is from behind a tree or under cover of night that he deals his murderous blow.

Roaming back and forth without any clear aim, goal, or specific path, they set up camp for a few days wherever they feel like it, and then move on, with no one knowing why or where they’re heading. This unpredictability makes them so dangerous. Today, there might not be any sign of them for miles around an enclosure. At night, a “camp” might come through, slaughtering cattle that have strayed outside the palisade or killing the unfortunate shepherd who hasn’t made it within the walls. By morning, they could be completely gone, vanishing like pests. The Bushman isn’t feared face to face; an entire “camp” or tribal family will scatter if a traveler accidentally walks into their midst. It’s from behind a tree or under the cover of night that he strikes his lethal blow.

A "camp" may consist of ten or twenty individuals, sometimes, perhaps, of forty, or even fifty, of various ages, and is ruled by the eldest, who is also the parent. He is absolute master of his "camp", but has no power or recognition beyond it, so that how many leaders there may be among them it is not possible even to guess. Nor is the master known to them as king, or duke, nor has he any title, but is simply the oldest or founder of the family. The "camp" has no law, no established custom; events happen, and even the master cannot be said to reign. When he becomes feeble, they simply leave him to die.

A "camp" can have ten or twenty people, sometimes maybe even forty or fifty, of different ages, and is led by the oldest member, who is usually a parent. He has complete control over his "camp," but has no authority or recognition outside of it, so it’s hard to say how many leaders there might be among them. The leader isn’t called a king or duke, and he doesn’t have any title; he’s just the oldest or the founding member of the family. The "camp" doesn’t have any laws or established customs; things just happen, and even the leader can’t really be said to rule. When he becomes weak, they simply leave him to die.

They are depraved, and without shame, clad in sheep-skins chiefly, if clad at all, or in such clothes as they have stolen. They have no ceremonies whatever. The number of these "camps" must be considerable, and yet the Bushman is seldom seen, nor do we very often hear of their depredations, which is accounted for by the extent of country they wander over. It is in severe winters that the chief danger occurs; they then suffer from hunger and cold, and are driven to the neighbourhood of the enclosures to steal. So dexterous are they in slipping through the bushes, and slinking among the reeds and osiers, that they will pass within a few yards without discovering their presence, and the signs of their passage can be detected only by the experienced hunter, and not always by him.

They are corrupt and unashamed, usually dressed in sheep skins, if they wear anything at all, or in clothes they’ve stolen. They don’t have any rituals. The number of these "camps" must be significant, yet the Bushman is rarely seen, and we don’t often hear about their thefts, which can be explained by the vast areas they roam. The main danger arises during harsh winters when they suffer from hunger and cold, pushing them to the outskirts to steal. They are so skilled at slipping through the bushes and sneaking among the reeds and willows that they can pass within a few yards without being noticed, and only an experienced hunter can detect signs of their passing, and not always even he can.

It is observed that whatever mischief the Bushman commits, he never sets fire to any ricks or buildings; the reason is because his nature is to slink from the scene of his depredations, and flame at once attracts people to the spot. Twice the occurrence of a remarkably severe winter has caused the Bushmen to flock together and act in an approach to concert in attacking the enclosures. The Bushmen of the north, who were even more savage and brutal, then came down, and were with difficulty repulsed from the walled cities. In ordinary times we see very little of them. They are the thieves, the human vermin of the woods.

It’s noticeable that no matter what trouble the Bushman causes, he never sets fire to any haystacks or buildings; the reason is that he prefers to sneak away from the scene of his crimes, and fire draws attention to the area. There have been two instances of an exceptionally harsh winter that forced the Bushmen to gather and work together to attack fenced areas. The Bushmen from the north, who were even more ruthless and violent, then came down and were only just pushed back from the fortified towns. In normal times, we see very little of them. They are the thieves, the pests of the forest.

Under the name of gipsies, those who are now often called Romany and Zingari were well known to the ancients. Indeed, they boast that their ancestry goes back so much farther than the oldest we can claim, that the ancients themselves were but modern to them. Even in that age of highest civilization, which immediately preceded the present, they say (and there is no doubt of it) that they preserved the blood of their race pure and untainted, that they never dwelt under permanent roofs, nor bowed their knees to the prevalent religion. They remained apart, and still continue after civilization has disappeared, exactly the same as they were before it commenced.

Under the name of gypsies, those who are now often called Romany and Zingari were well known to the ancients. In fact, they claim that their ancestry goes back much farther than the oldest lineages we can trace, making the ancients seem modern by comparison. Even during the peak of civilization that came before the present, they assert (and there’s no doubt about it) that they kept their bloodline pure and untainted, that they never lived under permanent roofs, nor did they submit to the prevailing religion. They remained separate, and continue to be just as they were before civilization began, even after it has faded away.

Since the change their numbers have greatly increased, and were they not always at war with each other, it is possible that they might go far to sweep the house people from the land. But there are so many tribes, each with its king, queen, or duke, that their power is divided, and their force melts away. The ruler of the Bushman families is always a man, but among the gipsies a woman, and even a young girl, often exercises supreme authority, but must be of the sacred blood. These kings and dukes are absolute autocrats within their tribe, and can order by a nod the destruction of those who offend them. Habits of simplest obedience being enjoined on the tribe from earliest childhood, such executions are rare, but the right to command them is not for a moment questioned.

Since the change, their numbers have greatly increased, and if they weren't always at war with each other, they could potentially drive the settled people off the land. However, there are so many tribes, each with its own king, queen, or duke, that their power is divided, and their strength dissipates. The leader of the Bushman families is always a man, but among the gypsies, a woman, and even a young girl, often holds supreme authority, as long as she comes from the sacred bloodline. These kings and dukes are absolute rulers within their tribe and can command the destruction of those who offend them with just a nod. While the tribe is instilled with the habit of simple obedience from a young age, such executions are rare; however, their right to order them is never questioned.

Of the sorcerers, and particularly the sorceresses, among them, all have heard, and, indeed, the places where they dwell seem full of mystery and magic. They live in tents, and though they constantly remove from district to district, one tribe never clashes with or crosses another, because all have their especial routes, upon which no intrusion is ever made. Some agriculture is practiced, and flocks and herds are kept, but the work is entirely done by the women. The men are always on horseback, or sleeping in their tents.

Of the sorcerers, especially the sorceresses, everyone has heard about them, and the places where they live feel full of mystery and magic. They reside in tents, and even though they frequently move from one area to another, one tribe never conflicts with or intrudes upon another, as each has its own specific paths that are never crossed. Some farming is done, and they keep livestock, but all the work is handled by the women. The men are often on horseback or resting in their tents.

Each tribe has its central camping-place, to which they return at intervals after perhaps wandering for months, a certain number of persons being left at home to defend it. These camps are often situated in inaccessible positions, and well protected by stockades. The territory which is acknowledged to belong to such a camp is extremely limited; its mere environs only are considered the actual property of the tribe, and a second can pitch its tents with a few hundred yards. These stockades, in fact, are more like store-houses than residences; each is a mere rendezvous.

Each tribe has its main campsite, where they return periodically after wandering for months, leaving a certain number of people behind to guard it. These camps are often in hard-to-reach locations and well-protected by fences. The territory recognized as belonging to a camp is very small; only the immediate area is seen as the tribe's actual property, and another tribe can set up its tents just a few hundred yards away. In fact, these fences are more like storage places than living spaces; each one is just a meeting point.

The gipsies are everywhere, but their stockades are most numerous in the south, along the sides of the green hills and plains, and especially round Stonehenge, where, on the great open plains, among the huge boulders, placed ages since in circles, they perform strange ceremonies and incantations. They attack every traveller, and every caravan or train of waggons which they feel strong enough to master, but they do not murder the solitary sleeping hunter or shepherd like the Bushmen. They will, indeed, steal from him, but do not kill, except in fight. Once, now and then, they have found their way into towns, when terrible massacres have followed, for, when excited, the savage knows not how to restrain himself.

The gypsies are everywhere, but their camps are most common in the south, along the green hills and plains, especially around Stonehenge. There, on the vast open fields, among the massive boulders arranged in circles long ago, they hold strange ceremonies and incantations. They target every traveler, and every caravan or train of wagons they feel strong enough to overpower, but they don't kill solitary sleeping hunters or shepherds like the Bushmen do. They will indeed steal from them, but they don't kill unless it's in a fight. Occasionally, they have made their way into towns, leading to terrible massacres because, when provoked, the savage can't control himself.

Vengeance is their idol. If any community has injured or affronted them, they never cease endeavouring to retaliate, and will wipe it out in fire and blood generations afterwards. There are towns which have thus been suddenly harried when the citizens had forgotten that any cause of enmity existed. Vengeance is their religion and their social law, which guides all their actions among themselves. It is for this reason that they are continually at war, duke with duke, and king with king. A deadly feud, too, has set Bushman and gipsy at each other's throat, far beyond the memory of man. The Romany looks on the Bushman as a dog, and slaughters him as such. In turn, the despised human dog slinks in the darkness of the night into the Romany's tent, and stabs his daughter or his wife, for such is the meanness and cowardice of the Bushman that he would always rather kill a woman than a man.

Vengeance is their idol. If any community has harmed or insulted them, they never stop trying to get back at them, and they'll wipe it out in fire and blood even generations later. There are towns that have been suddenly attacked when the citizens thought they had forgotten any reason for hostility. Vengeance is their religion and their social law, which directs all their actions among themselves. This is why they are constantly at war, duke against duke and king against king. A bitter feud has also set the Bushman and the gypsy against each other, far beyond living memory. The Romany sees the Bushman as a dog and kills him as such. In turn, the despised human dog sneaks in the darkness of the night into the Romany's tent and stabs his daughter or his wife, for such is the meanness and cowardice of the Bushman that he would always prefer to kill a woman rather than a man.

There is also a third class of men who are not true gipsies, but have something of their character, though the gipsies will not allow that they were originally half-breeds. Their habits are much the same, except that they are foot men and rarely use horses, and are therefore called the foot gipsies. The gipsy horse is really a pony. Once only have the Romany combined to attack the house people, driven, like the Bushmen, by an exceedingly severe winter, against which they had no provision.

There’s also a third group of people who aren’t true gypsies but share some of their traits, although the gypsies refuse to acknowledge that they are partially mixed. Their lifestyles are quite similar, except that they travel on foot and rarely ride horses, so they are referred to as foot gypsies. The gypsy horse is actually a pony. The Romany have only united once to assault the settled folk, driven, like the Bushmen, by an exceptionally harsh winter for which they had no supplies.

But, then, instead of massing their forces and throwing their irresistible numbers upon one city or territory, all they would agree to do was that, upon a certain day, each tribe should invade the land nearest to it. The result was that they were, though with trouble, repulsed. Until lately, no leader ventured to follow the gipsies to their strongholds, for they were reputed invincible behind their stockades. By infesting the woods and lying in ambush they rendered communication between city and city difficult and dangerous, except to bodies of armed men, and every waggon had to be defended by troops.

But instead of uniting their forces and launching a massive attack on one city or territory, all they agreed to do was that on a specific day, each tribe would invade the nearest land. As a result, they were, despite some challenges, pushed back. Until recently, no leader dared to pursue the gypsies to their strongholds, as they were believed to be unbeatable behind their fortifications. By lurking in the woods and setting up ambushes, they made communication between cities difficult and dangerous, except for groups of armed men, and every wagon had to be protected by troops.

The gipsies, as they roam, make little secret of their presence (unless, of course, intent upon mischief), but light their fires by day and night fearlessly. The Bushmen never light a fire by day, lest the ascending smoke, which cannot be concealed, should betray their whereabouts. Their fires are lit at night in hollows or places well surrounded with thickets, and, that the flame may not be seen, they will build screens of fir boughs or fern. When they have obtained a good supply of hot wood coals, no more sticks are thrown on, but these are covered with turf, and thus kept in long enough for their purposes. Much of their meat they devour raw, and thus do not need a fire so frequently as others.

The gypsies, as they travel, don’t hide their presence (unless they’re planning something sneaky) and light their fires freely both day and night. The Bushmen, on the other hand, never light a fire during the day, as the rising smoke could give away their location. They only light their fires at night in dips or areas surrounded by thick bushes, and to keep the flames hidden, they build screens out of fir branches or ferns. Once they have a good amount of hot coals, they stop adding firewood and cover the coals with dirt to keep them hot for a long time. They eat a lot of their meat raw, so they don’t need to start a fire as often as others do.


CHAPTER IV
THE INVADERS


Those who live by agriculture or in towns, and are descended from the remnant of the ancients, are divided, as I have previously said, into numerous provinces, kingdoms, and republics. In the middle part of the country the cities are almost all upon the shores of the Lake, or within a short distance of the water, and there is therefore more traffic and communication between them by means of vessels than is the case with inland towns, whose trade must be carried on by caravans and waggons. These not only move slowly, but are subject to be interrupted by the Romany and by the banditti, or persons who, for moral or political crimes, have been banished from their homes.

Those who live off farming or in cities, and are descendants of the ancient peoples, are divided, as I mentioned before, into many provinces, kingdoms, and republics. In the central part of the country, almost all the cities are near the shores of the Lake or just a short distance away, so there’s more trade and communication between them by boats than there is with inland towns, whose trade relies on caravans and wagons. These not only travel slowly but can also be disrupted by Romany and bandits, or those who have been exiled from their homes for moral or political reasons.

It is in the cities that cluster around the great central lake that all the life and civilization of our day are found; but there also begin those wars and social convulsions which cause so much suffering. When was the Peninsula at peace? and when was there not some mischief and change brewing in the republics? When was there not a danger from the northern mainland?

It’s in the cities that gather around the big central lake that all the life and culture of our time are found; but it’s also here that wars and social upheavals start, causing so much pain. When was the Peninsula ever at peace? And when was there not some trouble and change brewing in the republics? When was there not a threat from the northern mainland?

Until recent years there was little knowledge of, and scarcely any direct commerce or intercourse between, the central part and the districts either of the extreme west or the north, and it is only now that the north and east are becoming open to us; for at the back of the narrow circle or cultivated land, the belt about the Lake, there extend immense forests in every direction, through which, till very lately, no practicable way had been cut. Even in the more civilized central part it is not to this day easy to travel, for at the barriers, as you approach the territories of every prince, they demand your business and your papers; nor even if you establish the fact that you are innocent of designs against the State, shall you hardly enter without satisfying the greed of the officials.

Until recent years, there was little understanding of, and hardly any direct trade or interaction between, the central region and the areas in the far west or north, and it is only now that the north and east are becoming accessible to us. Behind the narrow band of arable land around the Lake, vast forests stretch in every direction, through which, until very recently, no feasible path had been established. Even in the more developed central area, traveling is still not easy today, because at the borders, as you approach the territories of each ruler, they want to know your purpose and see your documents; and even if you prove that you have no intentions against the State, you will likely still need to appease the greed of the officials to gain entry.

A fine is thus exacted at the gate of every province and kingdom, and again at the gateways of the towns. The difference of the coinage, such as it is, causes also great loss and trouble, for the money of one kingdom (though passing current by command in that territory) is not received at its nominal value in the next on account of the alloy it contains. It is, indeed, in many kingdoms impossible to obtain sterling money. Gold there is little or none anywhere, but silver is the standard of exchange, and copper, bronze, and brass, sometimes tin, are the metals with which the greater number of the people transact their business.

A fee is charged at the entrance of every province and kingdom, and again at the entrances of the towns. The differences in currency create significant loss and hassle, as the money from one kingdom (even if it's accepted by law in that area) is not valued the same in another due to the quality of the metal. In fact, in many kingdoms, it's nearly impossible to get real sterling money. Gold is rare or non-existent in many places, but silver serves as the standard currency, while copper, bronze, and brass, and sometimes tin, are the metals most people use for their transactions.

Justice is corrupt, for where there is a king or a prince it depends on the caprice of a tyrant, and where there is a republic upon the shout of the crowd, so that many, if they think they may be put on trial, rather than face the risk at once escape into the woods. The League, though based ostensibly on principles the most exalted and beneficial to humanity, is known to be perverted. The members sworn to honour and the highest virtue are swayed by vile motives, political hatreds, and private passions, and even by money.

Justice is corrupt because when there’s a king or a prince, it relies on the whims of a tyrant, and in a republic, it's driven by the loudest voices in the crowd. As a result, many people choose to flee to the woods rather than risk being put on trial. The League, although it claims to be built on the most noble and beneficial principles for humanity, is widely recognized as corrupt. The members, who pledge to uphold honor and the highest virtues, are influenced by selfish motives, political rivalries, personal grudges, and even money.

Men for ever trample upon men, each pushing to the front; nor is there safety in remaining in retirement, since such are accused of biding their time and of occult designs. Though the population of these cities all counted together is not equal to the population that once dwelt in a single second-rate city of the ancients, yet how much greater are the bitterness and the struggle!

Men constantly step over each other, each trying to get ahead; and there's no safety in staying out of the spotlight, as those who do are blamed for waiting and having hidden agendas. Even though the total population of these cities today is less than that of a single second-rate city from ancient times, the bitterness and struggle are so much greater!

Yet not content with the bloodshed they themselves cause, the tyrants have called in the aid of mercenary soldiers to assist them. And, to complete the disgrace, those republics which proclaim themselves the very home of patriotic virtues, have resorted to the same means. Thus we see English cities kept in awe by troops of Welshmen, Irish, and even the western Scots, who swarm in the council-chambers of the republics, and, opening the doors of the houses, help themselves to what they will. This, too, in the face of the notorious fact that these nations have sworn to be avenged upon us, that their vessels sail about the Lake committing direful acts of piracy, and that twice already vast armies have swept along threatening to entirely overwhelm the whole commonwealth.

Yet, not satisfied with the bloodshed they cause themselves, the tyrants have brought in mercenary soldiers to help them. And, to add to the disgrace, those republics that declare themselves the true home of patriotic values have done the same. So we see English cities kept in check by troops of Welshmen, Irish, and even western Scots, who flood the council chambers of the republics and, barging into the houses, take what they want. This, despite the well-known fact that these nations have vowed to get revenge on us, that their ships roam the Lake committing terrible acts of piracy, and that twice already large armies have marched through, threatening to completely overwhelm the entire commonwealth.

What infatuation to admit bands of these same men into the very strongholds and the heart of the land! As if upon the approach of their countrymen they would remain true to the oaths they have sworn for pay, and not rather admit them with open arms. No blame can, upon a just consideration, be attributed to either of these nations that endeavour to oppress us. For, as they point out, the ancients from whom we are descended held them in subjection many hundred years, and took from them all their liberties.

What madness to allow groups of these same men into the very strongholds and the heart of the land! As if, when their fellow countrymen come close, they would stay loyal to the oaths they've sworn for money, not welcome them with open arms. No blame can fairly be placed on either of these nations that are trying to oppress us. After all, as they point out, our ancestors controlled them for many hundreds of years and took away all their freedoms.

Thus the Welsh, or, as they call themselves, the Cymry, say that the whole island was once theirs, and is theirs still by right of inheritance. They were the original people who possessed it ages before the arrival of those whom we call the ancients. Though they were driven into the mountains of the far distant west, they never forgot their language, ceased their customs, or gave up their aspirations to recover their own. This is now their aim, and until recently it seemed as if they were about to accomplish it. For they held all that country anciently called Cornwall, having crossed over the Severn, and marched down the southern shore. The rich land of Devon, part of Dorset (all, indeed, that is inhabited), and the most part of Somerset, acknowledged their rule. Worcester and Hereford and Gloucester were theirs; I mean, of course, those parts that are not forest.

Thus the Welsh, or as they call themselves, the Cymry, claim that the whole island was once theirs and still rightfully belongs to them. They were the original inhabitants long before the arrival of those we refer to as the ancients. Although they were pushed into the mountains of the far west, they never forgot their language, abandoned their customs, or gave up their dreams of reclaiming their land. This remains their goal, and until recently, it seemed like they were about to achieve it. They held all the territory historically known as Cornwall, having crossed the Severn and moved down the southern coast. The fertile land of Devon, part of Dorset (in fact, all of the inhabited areas), and most of Somerset recognized their authority. Worcester, Hereford, and Gloucester were also under their control; I mean, of course, the areas that aren't covered by forest.

Their outposts were pushed forward to the centre of Leicestershire, and came down towards Oxford. But thereabouts they met with the forces of which I will shortly speak. Then their vessels every summer sailing from the Severn, came into the Lake, and, landing wherever there was an opportunity, they destroyed all things and carried off the spoil. Is it necessary to say more to demonstrate the madness which possesses those princes and republics which, in order to support their own tyranny, have invited bands of these men into their very palaces and forts?

Their outposts advanced to the center of Leicestershire and moved down toward Oxford. However, there they encountered the forces I will discuss shortly. Every summer, their ships sailed from the Severn into the Lake, landing wherever they could, destroying everything, and taking away the loot. Is it really necessary to say more to show the insanity of those rulers and governments that, to maintain their own tyranny, bring these groups into their palaces and forts?

As they approached near what was once Oxford and is now Sypolis, the armies of the Cymry came into collision with another of our invaders, and thus their forward course to the south was checked. The Irish, who had hitherto abetted them, turned round to defend their own usurpations. They, too, say that in conquering and despoiling my countrymen they are fulfilling a divine vengeance. Their land of Ireland had been for centuries ground down with an iron tyranny by our ancestors, who closed their lips with a muzzle, and led them about with a bridle, as their poets say. But now the hateful Saxons (for thus both they and the Welsh designate us) are broken, and delivered over to them for their spoil.

As they got closer to what used to be Oxford and is now Sypolis, the Cymry armies clashed with another group of invaders, halting their advance to the south. The Irish, who had previously supported them, turned to defend their own takeovers. They also claim that by conquering and plundering my people, they are enacting divine revenge. For centuries, their land of Ireland was oppressed by our ancestors, who silenced them and controlled them tightly, as their poets describe. But now the despised Saxons (as both they and the Welsh call us) are defeated and handed over to them as spoils.

It is not possible to deny many of the statements that they make, but that should not prevent us from battling with might and main against the threatened subjection. What crime can be greater than the admission of such foreigners as the guards of our cities? Now the Irish have their principal rendezvous and capital near to the ancient city of Chester, which is upon the ocean, and at the very top and angle of Wales. This is their great settlement, their magazine and rallying-place, and thence their expeditions have proceeded. It is a convenient port, and well opposite their native land, from which reinforcements continually arrive, but the Welsh have ever looked upon their possession of it with jealousy.

It’s hard to deny many of the things they say, but that shouldn’t stop us from fiercely resisting the looming takeover. What could be worse than letting foreigners guard our cities? Right now, the Irish have their main base and capital close to the ancient city of Chester, which is on the ocean and at the far tip of Wales. This is their major settlement, their storage point, and their meeting ground, and from here their missions have launched. It’s a useful port and directly across from their homeland, where reinforcements keep coming in, but the Welsh have always been jealous of their control over it.

At the period when the Cymry had nearly penetrated to Sypolis or Oxford, the Irish, on their part, had overrun all the cultivated and inhabited country in a south and south-easterly line from Chester, through Rutland to Norfolk and Suffolk, and even as far as Luton. They would have spread to the north, but in that direction they were met by the Scots, who had all Northumbria. When the Welsh came near Sypolis, the Irish awoke to the position of affairs.

At the time when the Welsh had almost reached Sypolis or Oxford, the Irish had taken over all the farmland and populated areas in a south and southeast direction from Chester, across Rutland to Norfolk and Suffolk, and even as far as Luton. They might have expanded north, but there they encountered the Scots, who had control of all of Northumbria. When the Welsh approached Sypolis, the Irish became aware of what was happening.

Sypolis is the largest and most important city upon the northern shore of the Lake, and it is situated at the entrance to the neck of land that stretches out to the straits. If the Welsh were once well posted there, the Irish could never hope to find their way to the rich and cultivated south, for it is just below Sypolis that the Lake contracts, and forms a strait in one place but a furlong wide. The two forces thus came into collision, and while they fought and destroyed each other, Sypolis was saved. After which, finding they were evenly matched, the Irish withdrew two days' march northwards, and the Cymry as far westwards.

Sypolis is the biggest and most important city on the northern shore of the Lake, located at the entrance to the strip of land that leads to the straits. If the Welsh had been well established there, the Irish would never have been able to reach the rich and fertile south, because it's just below Sypolis that the Lake narrows, forming a strait that's only about a furlong wide. The two groups ended up clashing, and while they fought and wiped each other out, Sypolis remained unharmed. After realizing they were evenly matched, the Irish retreated two days' march to the north, and the Cymry moved as far west as they could.

But now the Irish, sailing round the outside of Wales, came likewise up through the Red Rocks, and so into the Lake, and in their turn landing, harassed the cities. Often Welsh and Irish vessels, intending to attack the same place, have discerned each other approaching, and, turning from their proposed action, have flown at each other's throats. The Scots have not harassed us in the south much, being too far distant, and those that wander hither come for pay, taking service as guards. They are, indeed, the finest of men, and the hardiest to battle with. I had forgotten to mention that it is possible the Irish might have pushed back the Welsh, had not the kingdom of York suddenly reviving, by means which shall be related, valiantly thrust out its masters, and fell upon their rear.

But now the Irish, sailing around the outside of Wales, came up through the Red Rocks and into the Lake, and when they landed, they attacked the cities. Welsh and Irish ships, intending to raid the same place, have often spotted each other approaching and, instead of sticking to their original plans, have turned on each other. The Scots haven't troubled us much in the south since they're too far away, and those who come here do so for pay, taking jobs as guards. They are, indeed, the finest men and the toughest in battle. I forgot to mention that the Irish might have pushed back the Welsh if the kingdom of York hadn't suddenly revived and, through means that will be explained, valiantly driven out its rulers and attacked their rear.

But still these nations are always upon the verge and margin of our world, and wait but an opportunity to rush in upon it. Our countrymen groan under their yoke, and I say again that infamy should be the portion of those rulers among us who have filled their fortified places with mercenaries derived from such sources.

But these nations are always on the edge of our world, just waiting for a chance to invade it. Our fellow countrymen suffer under their control, and I say again that shame should be the fate of those leaders among us who have filled their strongholds with hired soldiers from such backgrounds.

The land, too, is weak, because of the multitude of bondsmen. In the provinces and kingdoms round about the Lake there is hardly a town where the slaves do not outnumber the free as ten to one. The laws are framed for the object of reducing the greater part of the people to servitude. For every offence the punishment is slavery, and the offences are daily artificially increased, that the wealth of the few in human beings may grow with them. If a man in his hunger steal a loaf, he becomes a slave; that is, it is proclaimed he must make good to the State the injury he has done it, and must work out his trespass. This is not assessed as the value of the loaf, nor supposed to be confined to the individual from whom it was taken.

The land is also weakened by the large number of slaves. In the provinces and kingdoms around the lake, there’s barely a town where the slaves don’t outnumber the free people by ten to one. The laws are designed to force the majority of people into servitude. For every offense, the punishment is slavery, and offenses are routinely inflated so that the wealth of a few grows along with the number of enslaved individuals. If a person steals a loaf of bread out of hunger

The theft is said to damage the State at large, because it corrupts the morality of the commonwealth; it is as if the thief had stolen a loaf, not from one, but from every member of the State. Restitution must, therefore, be made to all, and the value of the loaf returned in labour a thousandfold. The thief is the bondsman of the State. But as the State cannot employ him, he is leased out to those who will pay into the treasury of the prince the money equivalent to the labour he is capable of performing. Thus, under cover of the highest morality, the greatest iniquity is perpetrated. For the theft of a loaf, the man is reduced to a slave; then his wife and children, unable to support themselves, become a charge to the State, that is, they beg in the public ways.

The theft is believed to harm the entire State because it undermines the morality of the community; it’s as if the thief stole a loaf, not just from one person, but from every member of the State. Therefore, restitution must be made to everyone, and the value of the loaf should be repaid in labor a thousand times over. The thief becomes the servant of the State. However, since the State cannot employ him, he is rented out to those who will pay into the prince's treasury the equivalent of the labor he can do. Thus, under the guise of high morality, the greatest injustice occurs. For stealing a loaf, the man is turned into a slave; then his wife and children, unable to take care of themselves, become a burden to the State, meaning they end up begging on the streets.

This, too, forsooth, corrupts morality, and they likewise are seized and leased out to any who like to take them. Nor can he or they ever become free again, for they must repay to their proprietor the sum he gave for them, and how can that be done, since they receive no wages? For striking another, a man may be in the same way, as they term it, forfeited to the State, and be sold to the highest bidder. A stout brass wire is then twisted around his left wrist loosely, and the ends soldered together. Then a bar of iron being put through, a half turn is given to it, which forces the wire sharply against the arm, causing it to fit tightly, often painfully, and forms a smaller ring at the outside. By this smaller ring a score of bondsmen may be seen strung together with a rope.

This also corrupts morality, and they are similarly seized and rented out to anyone who wants them. They can never be free again because they must pay back the amount their owner gave for them, and how can that happen since they receive no wages? For hurting someone, a man can also be, as they say, forfeited to the State and sold to the highest bidder. A sturdy brass wire is then loosely twisted around his left wrist, and the ends are soldered together. Then a bar of iron is inserted, and a half turn is given to it, which forces the wire tightly against the arm, often painfully, and forms a smaller ring on the outside. Through this smaller ring, a number of bondsmen can be seen strung together with a rope.

To speak disrespectfully of the prince or his council, or of the nobles, or of religion, to go out of the precincts without permission, to trade without license, to omit to salute the great, all these and a thousand others are crimes deserving of the brazen bracelet. Were a man to study all day what he must do, and what he must not do, to escape servitude, it would not be possible for him to stir one step without becoming forfeit! And yet they hypocritically say that these things are done for the sake of public morality, and that there are not slaves (not permitting the word to be used), and no man was ever sold.

To speak disrespectfully about the prince or his council, or about the nobles or religion, to leave the designated area without permission, to trade without a license, or to fail to greet those in power—these and countless other offenses are worthy of punishment. If someone were to spend all day figuring out what they can and can't do to avoid servitude, it wouldn't be possible for them to take even a single step without risking punishment! And yet, they insincerely claim that these rules are enforced for the sake of public morality, insisting that there are no slaves (not allowing the term to be used), and that no one has ever been sold.

It is, indeed, true that no man is sold in open market, he is leased instead; and, by a refined hypocrisy, the owner of slaves cannot sell them to another owner, but he can place them in the hands of the notary, presenting them with their freedom, so far as he is concerned. The notary, upon payment of a fine from the purchaser, transfers them to him, and the larger part of the fine goes to the prince. Debt alone under their laws must crowd the land with slaves, for, as wages are scarcely known, a child from its birth is often declared to be in debt. For its nourishment is drawn from its mother, and the wretched mother is the wife of a retainer who is fed by his lord. To such a degree is this tyranny carried! If any owe a penny, his doom is sealed; he becomes a bondsman, and thus the estates of the nobles are full of men who work during their whole lives for the profit of others. Thus, too, the woods are filled with banditti, for those who find an opportunity never fail to escape, notwithstanding the hunt that is invariably made for them, and the cruel punishment that awaits recapture. And numbers, foreseeing that they must become bondsmen, before they are proclaimed forfeit steal away by night, and live as they may in the forests.

It’s true that no man is sold in an open market; instead, he’s leased. And with a touch of hypocrisy, a slave owner can't directly sell them to someone else, but they can put them in the hands of a notary, presenting them with their freedom, at least as far as they're concerned. The notary, once the purchaser pays a fee, transfers them, with most of that fee going to the prince. Debt alone, under their laws, must overpopulate the land with slaves because wages are hardly known—often, a child from birth is declared to be in debt. They rely on their mother for nourishment, and that unfortunate mother is often the wife of a servant who’s supported by his lord. The extent of this oppression is staggering! If someone owes even a penny, they’re doomed; they become a bondsman, filling the estates of the nobles with people who work their entire lives for the benefit of others. Similarly, the forests are filled with outlaws, as those who see a chance to escape rarely miss the opportunity, despite the relentless pursuit and harsh punishment that awaits if caught. Many, anticipating that they’ll become bondsmen, slip away at night and try to survive however they can in the woods.

How, then, does any man remain free? Only by the favour of the nobles, and only that he may amass wealth for them. The merchants, and those who have license to trade by land or water, are all protected by some noble house, to whom they pay heavily for permission to live in their own houses. The principal tyrant is supported by the nobles, that they in their turn may tyrannise over the merchants, and they again over all the workmen of their shops and bazaars.

How, then, does anyone stay free? Only by the support of the nobles, and only so they can gather wealth for them. The merchants and those allowed to trade on land or water are all backed by some noble house, to which they pay a hefty price for the right to live in their own homes. The main tyrant is upheld by the nobles so they can, in turn, dominate the merchants, who then exert control over all the workers in their shops and markets.

Over their own servants (for thus they call the slaves, that the word itself may not be used), who work upon their estates, the nobles are absolute masters, and may even hang them upon the nearest tree. And here I cannot but remark how strange it is, first, that any man can remain a slave rather than die; and secondly, how much stranger it is that any other man, himself a slave, can be found to hunt down or to hang his fellow; yet the tyrants never lack executioners. Their castles are crowded with retainers who wreak their wills upon the defenceless. These retainers do not wear the brazen bracelet; they are free. Are there, then, no beggars? Yes, they sit at every corner, and about the gates of the cities, asking for alms.

Over their own servants (since that's what they call the slaves to avoid saying the word itself), who work on their estates, the nobles are total masters and can even hang them from the nearest tree. And I can't help but point out how strange it is, first, that any man would choose to remain a slave rather than die; and secondly, how much stranger it is that another man, who is also a slave, would be found to hunt down or hang his fellow; yet the tyrants always have executioners at hand. Their castles are filled with retainers who enforce their will on the defenseless. These retainers don’t wear the brazen bracelet; they are free. Are there no beggars? Yes, they sit at every corner and around the city gates, asking for alms.

Though begging makes a man forfeit to the State, it is only when he has thews and sinews, and can work. The diseased and aged, the helpless and feeble, may break the law, and starve by the roadside, because it profits no one to make them his slaves. And all these things are done in the name of morality, and for the good of the human race, as they constantly announce in their councils and parliaments.

Though begging makes a person lose their rights, it only applies when they are able-bodied and capable of working. The sick, elderly, helpless, and weak can break the law and starve on the streets because it doesn't benefit anyone to make them slaves. All of this is justified in the name of morality and for the good of humanity, as is frequently stated in their councils and parliaments.

There are two reasons why the mercenaries have been called in; first, because the princes found the great nobles so powerful, and can keep them in check only by the aid of these foreigners; and secondly, because the number of the outlaws in the woods has become so great that the nobles themselves are afraid lest their slaves should revolt, and, with the aid of the outlaws, overcome them.

There are two reasons why the mercenaries have been brought in; first, the princes realized that the great nobles are so powerful that they can only control them with the help of these foreigners; and secondly, the number of outlaws in the woods has become so large that the nobles themselves are worried their servants might rebel and, with the outlaws' help, overpower them.

Now the mark of a noble is that he can read and write. When the ancients were scattered, the remnant that was left behind was, for the most part, the ignorant and the poor. But among them there was here and there a man who possessed some little education and force of mind. At first there was no order; but after thirty years or so, after a generation, some order grew up, and these men, then become aged, were naturally chosen as leaders. They had, indeed, no actual power then, no guards or armies; but the common folk, who had no knowledge, came to them for decision of their disputes, for advice what to do, for the pronouncement of some form of marriage, for the keeping of some note of property, and to be united against a mutual danger.

Now, being noble means being able to read and write. When the ancients scattered, the remnants left behind were mostly the uneducated and the poor. However, among them, there were a few individuals with some education and strong minds. Initially, there was no structure, but after about thirty years, or a generation, some order began to form, and these men, who had now grown old, were naturally chosen as leaders. They didn't have any real power back then—no guards or armies—but the common people, who lacked knowledge, turned to them for resolving disputes, seeking advice, for officiating marriages, for keeping track of property, and for uniting against common threats.

These men in turn taught their children to read and write, wishing that some part of the wisdom of the ancients might be preserved. They themselves wrote down what they knew, and these manuscripts, transmitted to their children, were saved with care. Some of them remain to this day. These children, growing to manhood, took more upon them, and assumed higher authority as the past was forgotten, and the original equality of all men lost in antiquity. The small enclosed farms of their fathers became enlarged to estates, the estates became towns, and thus, by degrees, the order of the nobility was formed. As they intermarried only among themselves, they preserved a certain individuality. At this day a noble is at once known, no matter how coarsely he may be dressed, or how brutal his habits, by his delicacy of feature, his air of command, even by his softness of skin and fineness of hair.

These men, in turn, taught their children to read and write, hoping to preserve some of the wisdom of the ancients. They documented what they knew, and these manuscripts, passed down to their children, were carefully preserved. Some still exist today. As these children grew into adulthood, they took on more responsibilities and gained higher authority as the past faded away, and the original equality among all men was lost to history. The small, enclosed farms of their fathers expanded into estates, which eventually turned into towns, gradually forming the order of the nobility. By marrying within their own ranks, they maintained a distinct identity. Nowadays, a noble can be recognized instantly, regardless of how poorly he is dressed or how rough his behavior might be, by his delicate features, commanding presence, and even by the softness of his skin and the fine quality of his hair.

Still the art of reading and writing is scrupulously imparted to all their legitimate offspring, and scrupulously confined to them alone. It is true that they do not use it except on rare occasions when necessity demands, being wholly given over to the chase, to war, and politics, but they retain the knowledge. Indeed, were a noble to be known not to be able to read and write, the prince would at once degrade him, and the sentence would be upheld by the entire caste. No other but the nobles are permitted to acquire these arts; if any attempt to do so, they are enslaved and punished. But none do attempt; of what avail would it be to them?

Still, the skills of reading and writing are carefully taught to all their legitimate offspring and strictly limited to them alone. It's true that they rarely use these skills, only when absolutely necessary, as they are completely focused on hunting, warfare, and politics, but they do keep the knowledge. In fact, if a noble is found to be unable to read or write, the prince would immediately degrade him, and the entire class would support that decision. Only nobles are allowed to learn these skills; if anyone else tries, they are enslaved and punished. But no one attempts it; what good would it do them?

All knowledge is thus retained in the possession of the nobles; they do not use it, but the physicians, for instance, who are famous, are so because by favour of some baron, they have learned receipts in the ancient manuscripts which have been mentioned. One virtue, and one only, adorns this exclusive caste; they are courageous to the verge of madness. I had almost omitted to state that the merchants know how to read and write, having special license and permits to do so, without which they may not correspond. There are few books, and still fewer to read them; and these all in manuscript, for though the way to print is not lost, it is not employed since no one wants books.

All knowledge is kept in the hands of the nobles; they don’t use it, but famous physicians, for example, become well-known because, thanks to some baron, they've learned recipes from the old manuscripts mentioned earlier. This exclusive group has just one virtue: they are brave to the point of madness. I almost forgot to mention that merchants are able to read and write, as they have special licenses and permits to do so; without those, they cannot communicate. There are very few books, and even fewer people who can read them, and all of these are manuscripts. Although the method of printing isn’t lost, it isn’t used because no one wants books.


CHAPTER V
THE LAKE


There now only remains the geography of our country to be treated of before the history is commenced. Now the most striking difference between the country as we know it and as it was known to the ancients is the existence of the great Lake in the centre of the island. From the Red Rocks (by the Severn) hither, the most direct route a galley can follow is considered to be about 200 miles in length, and it is a journey which often takes a week even for a vessel well manned, because the course, as it turns round the islands, faces so many points of the compass, and therefore the oarsmen are sure to have to labour in the teeth of the wind, no matter which way it blows.

There’s just one more thing to cover about our country’s geography before we dive into the history. The biggest difference between how the country is today and how it was known to ancient people is the big lake in the center of the island. From the Red Rocks by the Severn, the most straightforward path a ship can take is about 200 miles long, and it often takes a week to complete, even for a well-equipped vessel. This is because the route, which winds around the islands, faces many different directions, so the oarsmen have to work against the wind no matter which way it’s blowing.

Many parts are still unexplored, and scarce anything known of their extent, even by repute. Until Felix Aquila's time, the greater portion, indeed, had not even a name. Each community was well acquainted with the bay before its own city, and with the route to the next, but beyond that they were ignorant, and had no desire to learn. Yet the Lake cannot really be so long and broad as it seems, for the country could not contain it. The length is increased, almost trebled, by the islands and shoals, which will not permit of navigation in a straight line. For the most part, too, they follow the southern shore of the mainland, which is protected by a fringe of islets and banks from the storms which sweep over the open waters.

Many areas are still unexplored, and there's hardly any understanding of their size, even by word of mouth. Up until Felix Aquila's time, most of them didn't even have names. Each community knew the bay near their own city and the way to the next one, but beyond that, they were unaware and didn't care to find out. However, the Lake can't really be as long and wide as it appears, because the land wouldn't be able to hold it. Its length is nearly tripled by the islands and shallows, which prevent direct navigation. For the most part, they also hug the southern shore of the mainland, which is shielded by a line of small islands and banks from the storms that hit the open waters.

Thus rowing along round the gulfs and promontories, their voyage is thrice prolonged, but rendered nearly safe from the waves, which rise with incredible celerity before the gales. The slow ships of commerce, indeed, are often days in traversing the distance between one port and another, for they wait for the wind to blow abaft, and being heavy, deeply laden, built broad and flat-bottomed for shallows, and bluff at the bows, they drift like logs of timber. In canoes the hunters, indeed, sometimes pass swiftly from one place to another, venturing farther out to sea than the ships. They could pass yet more quickly were it not for the inquisition of the authorities at every city and port, who not only levy dues and fees for the treasury of the prince, and for their own rapacious desires, but demand whence the vessel comes, to whom she belongs, and whither she is bound, so that no ship can travel rapidly unless so armed as to shake off these inquisitors.

As they row around the bays and cliffs, their journey takes much longer, but it's almost safe from the waves that rise incredibly fast in the wind. Commercial ships often take days to cover the distance between ports because they wait for the wind to be at their back. These ships are heavy, heavily loaded, broad and flat-bottomed for shallow waters, and have blunt bows, causing them to drift like logs. In canoes, hunters can quickly move from place to place, even venturing farther out to sea than the ships. They could travel even faster if it weren't for the scrutiny from officials at every city and port, who not only impose taxes and fees for the prince's treasury and their own greedy interests but also ask where the ship is coming from, who owns it, and where it's headed. Because of this, no ship can travel quickly unless it is equipped to deal with these inspectors.

The canoes, therefore, travel at night and in calm weather many miles away from the shore, and thus escape, or slip by daylight among the reedy shallows, sheltered by the flags and willows from view. The ships of commerce haul up to the shore towards evening, and the crews, disembarking, light their fires and cook their food. There are, however, one or two gaps, as it were, in their usual course which they cannot pass in this leisurely manner; where the shore is exposed and rocky, or too shallow, and where they must reluctantly put forth, and sail from one horn of the land to the other.

The canoes, then, travel at night and in calm weather many miles from the shore, allowing them to slip by daylight among the reedy shallows, hidden from view by the flags and willows. The commercial ships pull up to the shore in the evening, and the crews disembark, light their fires, and cook their meals. However, there are one or two spots in their usual route that they can't navigate leisurely; where the shore is exposed and rocky or too shallow, and where they must reluctantly push on and sail from one point of land to the other.

The Lake is also divided into two unequal portions by the straits of White Horse, where vessels are often weather-bound, and cannot make way against the wind, which sets a current through the narrow channel. There is no tide; the sweet waters do not ebb and flow; but while I thus discourse, I have forgotten to state how they came to fill the middle of the country. Now, the philosopher Silvester, and those who seek after marvels, say that the passage of the dark body through space caused an immense volume of fresh water to fall in the shape of rain, and also that the growth of the forests distilled rain from the clouds. Let us leave these speculations to dreamers, and recount what is known to be.

The Lake is split into two uneven parts by the straits of White Horse, where ships can get stuck due to bad weather and struggle against the wind, which creates a current in the narrow channel. There are no tides; the freshwater doesn't rise and fall. But while I'm talking about this, I forgot to mention how the water filled the center of the land. According to the philosopher Silvester and others in search of wonders, the movement of a dark body through space caused a massive amount of fresh water to fall as rain, and the growth of the forests also contributed by distilling rain from the clouds. Let's set aside these theories for dreamers and focus on what we know to be true.

For there is no tradition among the common people, who are extremely tenacious of such things, of any great rainfall, nor is there any mention of floods in the ancient manuscripts, nor is there any larger fall of rain now than was formerly the case. But the Lake itself tells us how it was formed, or as nearly as we shall ever know, and these facts were established by the expeditions lately sent out.

For the common people, who hold on to traditions tightly, there’s no history of heavy rainfall, and there’s no mention of floods in the ancient texts. Also, there’s no significant increase in rainfall now compared to the past. However, the Lake itself reveals how it was formed, or at least as much as we’ll ever know, and these facts were confirmed by the recent expeditions.

At the eastern extremity the Lake narrows, and finally is lost in the vast marshes which cover the site of the ancient London. Through these, no doubt, in the days of the old world there flowed the river Thames. By changes of the sea level and the sand that was brought up there must have grown great banks, which obstructed the stream. I have formerly mentioned the vast quantities of timber, the wreckage of towns and bridges which was carried down by the various rivers, and by none more so than by the Thames. These added to the accumulation, which increased the faster because the foundations of the ancient bridges held it like piles driven in for the purpose. And before this the river had become partially choked from the cloacæ of the ancient city which poured into it through enormous subterranean aqueducts and drains.

At the eastern end, the lake narrows and eventually disappears into the vast marshes that cover what was once ancient London. Through these marshes, the River Thames must have flowed in ancient times. Changes in sea level and shifting sands likely created large banks that blocked the waterway. I've previously mentioned the huge amounts of timber and debris from towns and bridges that were carried down by various rivers, especially the Thames. This debris contributed to the buildup, which increased even more because the foundations of the ancient bridges acted like piles to hold it in place. Additionally, the river had become partly clogged by the waste from the old city, which funneled into it through massive underground aqueducts and drains.

After a time all these shallows and banks became well matted together by the growth of weeds, of willows, and flags, while the tide, ebbing lower at each drawing back, left still more mud and sand. Now it is believed that when this had gone on for a time, the waters of the river, unable to find a channel, began to overflow up into the deserted streets, and especially to fill the underground passages and drains, of which the number and extent was beyond all the power of words to describe. These, by the force of the water, were burst up, and the houses fell in.

After a while, all these shallow areas and banks became thickly covered with weeds, willows, and reeds, while the tide, receding further each time, left even more mud and sand. It’s now believed that after some time, the river's waters, unable to find a clear path, started to overflow into the empty streets, especially flooding the underground passages and drains, which were far more numerous and extensive than anyone could ever say. The force of the water broke through them, causing the houses to collapse.

For this marvellous city, of which such legends are related, was after all only of brick, and when the ivy grew over and trees and shrubs sprang up, and, lastly, the waters underneath burst in, this huge metropolis was soon overthrown. At this day all those parts which were built upon low ground are marshes and swamps. Those houses that were upon high ground were, of course, like the other towns, ransacked of all they contained by the remnant that was left; the iron, too, was extracted. Trees growing up by them in time cracked the walls, and they fell in. Trees and bushes covered them; ivy and nettles concealed the crumbling masses of brick.

For this amazing city, about which so many legends exist, was ultimately just made of brick, and when ivy grew over it and trees and shrubs took root, followed by the waters rising, this massive metropolis was quickly destroyed. Today, all the areas built on low ground are swamps and marshes. The houses on higher ground were, like those in other towns, looted of everything they had by the remaining survivors; even the iron was taken. Over time, trees grew next to them, cracking the walls until they collapsed. Trees and bushes covered the ruins, and ivy and nettles hid the crumbling brick debris.

The same was the case with the lesser cities and towns whose sites are known in the woods. For though many of our present towns bear the ancient names, they do not stand upon the ancient sites, but are two or three, and sometimes ten miles distant. The founders carried with them the name of their original residence.

The same goes for the smaller cities and towns that are located in the woods. Even though many of our current towns share the ancient names, they aren’t located on the original sites; they’re actually two or three, or sometimes ten miles away. The founders took the names of their original homes with them.

Thus the low-lying parts of the mighty city of London became swamps, and the higher grounds were clad with bushes. The very largest of the buildings fell in, and there was nothing visible but trees and hawthorns on the upper lands, and willows, flags, reeds, and rushes on the lower. These crumbling ruins still more choked the stream, and almost, if not quite, turned it back. If any water ooze past, it is not perceptible, and there is no channel through to the salt ocean. It is a vast stagnant swamp, which no man dare enter, since death would be his inevitable fate.

Thus, the low-lying areas of the great city of London became swamps, while the higher grounds were covered with bushes. The largest buildings crumbled, leaving only trees and hawthorns on the higher land, and willows, flags, reeds, and rushes on the lower ground. These collapsing ruins further blocked the stream, nearly stopping it completely. If any water trickles through, it’s barely noticeable, and there’s no path to the salty ocean. It’s a vast stagnant swamp that no one dares enter, as certain death would be their fate.

There exhales from this oozy mass so fatal a vapour that no animal can endure it. The black water bears a greenish-brown floating scum, which for ever bubbles up from the putrid mud of the bottom. When the wind collects the miasma, and, as it were, presses it together, it becomes visible as a low cloud which hangs over the place. The cloud does not advance beyond the limit of the marsh, seeming to stay there by some constant attraction; and well it is for us that it does not, since at such times when the vapour is thickest, the very wildfowl leave the reeds, and fly from the poison. There are no fishes, neither can eels exist in the mud, nor even newts. It is dead.

There is a toxic vapor coming from this slimy mass that no animal can stand. The black water has a greenish-brown scum floating on top, constantly bubbling up from the rotten mud below. When the wind gathers the poisonous gas and compresses it, it turns into a visible low cloud that hovers over the area. This cloud doesn’t move beyond the edges of the marsh, as if it's held there by some invisible force; and it’s a good thing it doesn’t, because when the vapor is thickest, even the wild birds leave the reeds and flee from the poison. There are no fish, eels can’t survive in the mud, and even newts are absent. It is lifeless.

The flags and reeds are coated with slime and noisome to the touch; there is one place where even these do not grow, and where there is nothing but an oily liquid, green and rank. It is plain there are no fishes in the water, for herons do not go thither, nor the kingfishers, not one of which approaches the spot. They say the sun is sometimes hidden by the vapour when it is thickest, but I do not see how any can tell this, since they could not enter the cloud, as to breathe it when collected by the wind is immediately fatal. For all the rottenness of a thousand years and of many hundred millions of human beings is there festering under the stagnant water, which has sunk down into and penetrated the earth, and floated up to the surface the contents of the buried cloacæ.

The flags and reeds are covered in slime and unpleasant to the touch; there’s one spot where even they won’t grow, and it’s only filled with a greasy, foul-smelling liquid. It’s obvious there are no fish in the water because herons and kingfishers avoid it completely. People say the sun sometimes gets blocked by the thick vapor, but I don’t see how anyone can claim that since entering the cloud is impossible; breathing it in when the wind picks it up is instantly deadly. All the decay from a thousand years and hundreds of millions of people is festering under the stagnant water, which has seeped into the earth, bringing up the contents of buried waste.

Many scores of men have, I fear, perished in the attempt to enter this fearful place, carried on by their desire of gain. For it can scarcely be disputed that untold treasures lie hidden therein, but guarded by terrors greater than fiery serpents. These have usually made their endeavours to enter in severe and continued frost, or in the height of a drought. Frost diminishes the power of the vapour, and the marshes can then, too, be partially traversed, for there is no channel for a boat. But the moment anything be moved, whether it be a bush, or a willow, even a flag, if the ice be broken, the pestilence rises yet stronger. Besides which, there are portions which never freeze, and which may be approached unawares, or a turn of the wind may drift the gas towards the explorer.

Many men have unfortunately lost their lives trying to enter this dangerous place, driven by their desire for wealth. It's hard to deny that countless treasures are hidden there, but they are protected by dangers greater than fiery serpents. Usually, attempts to enter are made during extreme cold or drought. The frost reduces the strength of the vapor, allowing for some areas of the marsh to be crossed, since there is no way to navigate by boat. However, the moment anything is disturbed—whether it's a bush, a willow, or even a flag—the pestilence becomes even more powerful if the ice is broken. Additionally, there are parts that never freeze and can be approached without warning, or a shift in the wind can blow the gas toward the explorer.

In the midst of summer, after long heat, the vapour rises, and is in a degree dissipated into the sky, and then by following devious ways an entrance may be effected, but always at the cost of illness. If the explorer be unable to quit the spot before night, whether in summer or winter, his death is certain. In the earlier times some bold and adventurous men did indeed succeed in getting a few jewels, but since then the marsh has become more dangerous, and its pestilent character, indeed, increases year by year, as the stagnant water penetrates deeper. So that now for very many years no such attempts have been made.

In the middle of summer, after a long heatwave, the vapor rises and begins to dissipate into the sky. Then, by winding pathways, an entrance can be found, but it always comes with the risk of illness. If an explorer can’t leave the area before nightfall, whether it’s summer or winter, their death is guaranteed. In the past, some daring and adventurous individuals managed to find a few jewels, but since then, the marsh has become more dangerous, and its toxic nature has been increasing year by year as the stagnant water seeps deeper. Because of this, there have been no attempts for many years.

The extent of these foul swamps is not known with certainty, but it is generally believed that they are, at the widest, twenty miles across, and that they reach in a winding line for nearly forty. But the outside parts are much less fatal; it is only the interior which is avoided.

The size of these filthy swamps isn't completely clear, but it's commonly thought that they are about twenty miles wide at their widest point and stretch in a winding line for almost forty miles. However, the outer areas are significantly less dangerous; it's only the interior that is avoided.

Towards the Lake the sand thrown up by the waves has long since formed a partial barrier between the sweet water and the stagnant, rising up to within a few feet of the surface. This barrier is overgrown with flags and reeds, where it is shallow. Here it is possible to sail along the sweet water within an arrow-shot of the swamp. Nor, indeed, would the stagnant mingle with the sweet, as is evident at other parts of the swamp, where streams flow side by side with the dark or reddish water; and there are pools, upon one side of which the deer drink, while the other is not frequented even by rats.

Towards the lake, the sand pushed up by the waves has long formed a partial barrier between the fresh water and the stagnant water, rising to just a few feet below the surface. This barrier is covered with flags and reeds where it’s shallow. Here, you can sail along the fresh water within an arrow’s shot of the swamp. In fact, the stagnant water doesn’t mix with the fresh water, as seen in other parts of the swamp where streams run alongside the dark or reddish water; there are pools where deer drink on one side, while the other side isn’t visited even by rats.

The common people aver that demons reside in these swamps; and, indeed, at night fiery shapes are seen, which, to the ignorant, are sufficient confirmation of such tales. The vapour, where it is most dense, takes fire, like the blue flame of spirits, and these flaming clouds float to and fro, and yet do not burn the reeds. The superstitious trace in them the forms of demons and winged fiery serpents, and say that white spectres haunt the margin of the marsh after dusk. In a lesser degree, the same thing has taken place with other ancient cities. It is true that there are not always swamps, but the sites are uninhabitable because of the emanations from the ruins. Therefore they are avoided. Even the spot where a single house has been known to have existed, is avoided by the hunters in the woods.

The locals say that demons live in these swamps; and at night, fiery shapes can be seen, which to the uninformed, are enough proof of such legends. The mist, where it's thickest, ignites like the blue flames of spirits, and these burning clouds drift around without burning the reeds. The superstitious see shapes of demons and winged fiery serpents in them and claim that white ghosts haunt the edge of the marsh after dark. To a lesser extent, the same has happened in other ancient cities. It's true that there aren't always swamps, but the areas are unlivable because of the fumes coming from the ruins. So, they are avoided. Even places where a single house used to stand are shunned by hunters in the woods.

They say when they are stricken with ague or fever, that they must have unwittingly slept on the site of an ancient habitation. Nor can the ground be cultivated near the ancient towns, because it causes fever; and thus it is that, as I have already stated, the present places of the same name are often miles distant from the former locality. No sooner does the plough or the spade turn up an ancient site than those who work there are attacked with illness. And thus the cities of the old world, and their houses and habitations, are deserted and lost in the forest. If the hunters, about to pitch their camp for the night, should stumble on so much as a crumbling brick or a fragment of hewn stone, they at once remove at least a bowshot away.

They say that when they get chills or a fever, it means they must have unknowingly slept on the site of an ancient dwelling. Also, the land near old towns can't be farmed because it leads to illness; that's why, as I mentioned before, places with the same name are often miles away from where they used to be. As soon as the plow or shovel uncovers an ancient site, the people working there end up getting sick. Because of this, the cities of the old world, along with their homes and buildings, are abandoned and swallowed by the forest. If hunters are about to set up camp for the night and come across even a crumbling brick or a piece of carved stone, they immediately move at least a bowshot away.

The eastward flow of the Thames being at first checked, and finally almost or quite stopped by the formation of these banks, the water turned backwards as it were, and began to cover hitherto dry land. And this, with the other lesser rivers and brooks that no longer had any ultimate outlet, accounts for the Lake, so far as this side of the country is concerned.

The eastward flow of the Thames was initially slowed down and eventually almost completely halted by the creation of these banks, causing the water to flow backward and start flooding previously dry land. This, along with other smaller rivers and streams that no longer had a final outlet, explains the Lake, at least for this part of the country.

At the western extremity the waters also contract between the steep cliffs called the Red Rocks, near to which once existed the city of Bristol. Now the Welsh say, and the tradition of those who dwell in that part of the country bears them out, that in the time of the old world the River Severn flowed past the same spot, but not between these cliffs. The great river Severn coming down from the north, with England on one bank and Wales upon the other, entered the sea, widening out as it did so. Just before it reached the sea, another lesser river, called the Avon, the upper part of which is still there, joined it passing through this cleft in the rocks.

At the western edge, the waters also narrow between the steep cliffs known as the Red Rocks, close to where the city of Bristol used to be. The Welsh people believe, and the local tradition supports this, that in ancient times, the River Severn flowed through the same area, but not between these cliffs. The mighty River Severn, coming down from the north with England on one bank and Wales on the other, entered the sea, spreading wider as it approached. Just before it reached the sea, a smaller river called the Avon, which still exists in its upper part, joined it as it passed through this gap in the rocks.

But when the days of the old world ended in the twilight of the ancients, as the salt ocean fell back and its level became lower, vast sandbanks were disclosed, which presently extended across the most part of the Severn river. Others, indeed, think that the salt ocean did not sink, but that the land instead was lifted higher. Then they say that the waves threw up an immense quantity of shingle and sand, and that thus these banks were formed. All that we know with certainty, however, is, that across the estuary of the Severn there rose a broad barrier of beach, which grew wider with the years, and still increases westwards. It is as if the ocean churned up its floor and cast it forth upon the strand.

But when the days of the old world came to an end in the dusk of the ancients, as the salt ocean receded and its level dropped, vast sandbanks were revealed, stretching across most of the Severn River. Some people actually believe that the salt ocean didn’t lower, but that the land was instead lifted higher. They say that the waves deposited a huge amount of pebbles and sand, which is how these banks were created. What we do know for sure, though, is that a wide barrier of beach emerged across the estuary of the Severn, which grew wider over the years and continues to extend westward. It’s as if the ocean stirred up its bed and cast it onto the shore.

Now when the Severn was thus stayed yet more effectually than the Thames, in the first place it also flowed backwards as it were, till its overflow mingled with the reflux of the Thames. Thus the inland sea of fresh water was formed; though Silvester hints (what is most improbable) that the level of the land sank and formed a basin. After a time, when the waters had risen high enough, since all water must have an outlet somewhere, the Lake, passing over the green country behind the Red Rocks, came pouring through the channel of the Avon.

Now, when the Severn was held back even more effectively than the Thames, it actually flowed backwards for a while, until its overflow mixed with the retreating waters of the Thames. This created an inland freshwater sea; although Silvester suggests (which is highly unlikely) that the land sank and formed a basin. Eventually, when the waters rose high enough, since all water needs an outlet, the Lake, spilling over the green land behind the Red Rocks, rushed through the channel of the Avon.

Then, farther down, it rose over the banks which were lowest there, and thus found its way over a dam into the sea. Now when the tide of the ocean is at its ebb, the waters of the Lake rush over these banks with so furious a current that no vessel can either go down or come up. If they attempted to go down, they would be swamped by the meeting of the waves; if they attempted to come up, the strongest gale that blows could not force them against the stream. As the tide gradually returns, however, the level of the ocean rises to the level of the Lake, the outward flow of water ceases, and there is even a partial inward flow of the tide which, at its highest, reaches to the Red Rocks. At this state of the tide, which happens twice in a day and night, vessels can enter or go forth.

Then, further down, it rose over the lowest banks there and found its way over a dam into the sea. When the ocean tide is at its low point, the waters of the Lake rush over these banks with such a strong current that no vessel can either go down or come up. If they tried to go down, they would be swamped by the crashing waves; if they tried to come up, even the strongest wind couldn't push them against the current. However, as the tide gradually comes back in, the ocean level rises to the level of the Lake, the outward flow of water stops, and there’s even a partial inward flow of the tide that reaches the Red Rocks at its highest point. This state of the tide occurs twice a day and night, allowing vessels to enter or leave.

The Irish ships, of which I have spoken, thus come into the Lake, waiting outside the bar till the tide lifts them over. The Irish ships, being built to traverse the ocean from their country, are large and stout and well manned, carrying from thirty to fifty men. The Welsh ships, which come down from that inlet of the Lake which follows the ancient course of the Severn, are much smaller and lighter, as not being required to withstand the heavy seas. They carry but fifteen or twenty men each, but then they are more numerous. The Irish ships, on account of their size and draught, in sailing about the sweet waters, cannot always haul on shore at night, nor follow the course of the ships of burden between the fringe of islands and the strand.

The Irish ships I mentioned earlier enter the Lake, waiting outside the bar until the tide lifts them over. These ships, designed to travel across the ocean from Ireland, are large, sturdy, and well-manned, carrying between thirty to fifty crew members. The Welsh ships, which come from the inlet of the Lake following the old route of the Severn, are much smaller and lighter since they don’t need to handle rough seas. They carry only fifteen to twenty crew members each, but there are more of them. Because of their size and draft, the Irish ships can’t always dock at night or navigate the route used by cargo ships between the islands and the shore while sailing in the calm waters.

They have often to stay in the outer and deeper waters; but the Welsh boats come in easily at all parts of the coast, so that no place is safe against them. The Welsh have ever been most jealous of the Severn, and will on no account permit so much as a canoe to enter it. So that whether it be a narrow creek, or whether there be wide reaches, or what the shores may be like, we are ignorant. And this is all that is with certainty known concerning the origin of the inland sea of sweet water, excluding all that superstition and speculation have advanced, and setting down nothing but ascertained facts.

They often have to stay in the outer and deeper waters, but the Welsh boats can easily come into any part of the coast, making no place safe from them. The Welsh have always been very protective of the Severn and won’t allow even a canoe to enter it. So, whether it’s a narrow creek, wide stretches of water, or whatever the shores might be like, we have no idea. This is all that is definitely known about the origin of the inland sea of fresh water, leaving aside all the superstition and speculation, and recording only confirmed facts.

A beautiful sea it is, clear as crystal, exquisite to drink, abounding with fishes of every kind, and adorned with green islands. There is nothing more lovely in the world than when, upon a calm evening, the sun goes down across the level and gleaming water, where it is so wide that the eye can but just distinguish a low and dark cloud, as it were, resting upon the horizon, or perhaps, looking lengthways, cannot distinguish any ending to the expanse. Sometimes it is blue, reflecting the noonday sky; sometimes white from the clouds; again green and dark as the wind rises and the waves roll.

It’s a beautiful sea, clear as crystal and refreshing to drink, filled with all kinds of fish and surrounded by lush green islands. Nothing in the world is more beautiful than a calm evening when the sun sets over the smooth, shimmering water, so wide that you can barely make out a low, dark cloud resting on the horizon, or sometimes you can’t see the end of the vast stretch at all. Sometimes it’s blue, reflecting the midday sky; other times it’s white from the clouds; and sometimes it takes on a green and dark hue as the wind picks up and the waves start to crash.

Storms, indeed, come up with extraordinary swiftness, for which reason the ships, whenever possible, follow the trade route, as it is called, behind the islands, which shelter them like a protecting reef. They drop equally quickly, and thus it is not uncommon for the morning to be calm, the midday raging in waves dashing resistlessly upon the beach, and the evening still again. The Irish, who are accustomed to the salt ocean, say, in the suddenness of its storms and the shifting winds, it is more dangerous than the sea itself. But then there are almost always islands, behind which a vessel can be sheltered.

Storms really do come up surprisingly fast, which is why ships, whenever they can, stick to the trade route behind the islands that protect them like a barrier. They can fade just as quickly; it’s not unusual for the morning to be calm, the afternoon to see waves crashing fiercely on the shore, and the evening to be calm again. The Irish, who are used to the salty ocean, say that in the suddenness of its storms and changing winds, it's more dangerous than the sea itself. However, there are almost always islands where a ship can find shelter.

Beneath the surface of the Lake there must be concealed very many ancient towns and cities, of which the names are lost. Sometimes the anchors bring up even now fragments of rusty iron and old metal, or black beams of timber. It is said, and with probability, that when the remnant of the ancients found the water gradually encroaching (for it rose very slowly), as they were driven back year by year, they considered that in time they would be all swept away and drowned. But after extending to its present limits the Lake rose no farther, not even in the wettest seasons, but always remains the same. From the position of certain quays we know that it has thus remained for the last hundred years at least.

Beneath the surface of the lake, there are likely many ancient towns and cities hidden away, with their names now lost. Occasionally, anchors still pull up pieces of rusty iron, old metal, or dark beams of wood. It's believed, and this seems likely, that as the remnants of the ancients saw the water slowly creeping in on them, they felt that eventually, they would be completely swept away and drowned. However, after reaching its current boundaries, the lake hasn't risen any higher, even during the wettest seasons; it stays the same. From the position of certain docks, we know that this has been the case for at least the last hundred years.

Never, as I observed before, was there so beautiful an expanse of water. How much must we sorrow that it has so often proved only the easiest mode of bringing the miseries of war to the doors of the unoffending! Yet men are never weary of sailing to and fro upon it, and most of the cities of the present time are upon its shore. And in the evening we walk by the beach, and from the rising grounds look over the waters, as if to gaze upon their loveliness were reward to us for the labour of the day.

Never, as I mentioned before, was there such a beautiful stretch of water. How much we should mourn that it has so often been just the easiest way to bring the horrors of war to the doorsteps of the innocent! Yet people never tire of sailing back and forth on it, and most of today's cities are along its shoreline. In the evening, we stroll along the beach, and from the hills, we look out over the water, as if simply gazing at its beauty is our reward for the day's hard work.


Part II
WILD ENGLAND


CHAPTER I
SIR FELIX


On a bright May morning, the sunlight, at five o'clock, was pouring into a room which face the east at the ancestral home of the Aquilas. In this room Felix, the eldest of the three sons of the Baron, was sleeping. The beams passed over his head, and lit up a square space on the opposite whitewashed wall, where, in the midst of the brilliant light, hung an ivory cross. There were only two panes of glass in the window, each no more than two or three inches square, the rest of the window being closed by strong oaken shutters, thick enough to withstand the stroke of an arrow.

On a bright May morning, at five o'clock, sunlight was streaming into a room that faced east in the ancestral home of the Aquilas. In this room, Felix, the eldest of the three sons of the Baron, was sleeping. The rays passed over him and illuminated a square area on the opposite whitewashed wall, where, surrounded by the brilliant light, hung an ivory cross. The window had only two panes of glass, each no more than two or three inches square, with strong oak shutters closing off the rest of the window, thick enough to resist the force of an arrow.

In the daytime one of these at least would have been thrown open to admit air and light. They did not quite meet, and a streak of sunshine, in addition to that which came through the tiny panes, entered at the chink. Only one window in the house contained more than two such panes (it was in the Baroness's sitting-room), and most of them had none at all. The glass left by the ancients in their dwellings had long since been used up or broken, and the fragments that remained were too precious to be put in ordinary rooms. When larger pieces were discovered, they were taken for the palaces of the princes, and even these were but sparingly supplied, so that the saying "he has glass in his window" was equivalent to "he belongs to the upper ranks".

During the day, at least one of these windows would have been opened to let in air and light. They didn't quite meet, and a beam of sunlight, in addition to what came through the small panes, came in through the gap. Only one window in the house had more than two panes (it was in the Baroness's sitting room), and most of the others had none at all. The glass left by the ancients in their homes had long been used up or broken, and the remaining pieces were too valuable to be used in regular rooms. When larger pieces were found, they were reserved for the princes' palaces, and even those were only available in limited quantities, so the saying "he has glass in his window" meant "he belongs to the upper class."

On the recess of the window was an inkstand, which had been recently in use, for a quill lay beside it, and a sheet of parchment partly covered with writing. The ink was thick and very dark, made of powdered charcoal, leaving a slightly raised writing, which could be perceived by the finger on rubbing it lightly over. Beneath the window on the bare floor was an open chest, in which were several similar parchments and books, and from which the sheet on the recess had evidently been taken. This chest, though small, was extremely heavy and strong, being dug out with the chisel and gouge from a solid block of oak. Except a few parallel grooves, there was no attempt at ornamentation upon it. The lid, which had no hinges, but lifted completely off, was tilted against the wall. It was, too, of oak some inches thick, and fitted upon the chest by a kind of dovetailing at the edges.

On the windowsill was an inkstand that had clearly been used recently, with a quill lying next to it and a partially written sheet of parchment. The ink was thick and very dark, made from powdered charcoal, creating a slightly raised writing that could be felt by lightly rubbing a finger over it. Beneath the window on the bare floor was an open chest, containing several similar parchments and books, from which the sheet on the sill had obviously been taken. This chest, though small, was extremely heavy and sturdy, carved from a solid block of oak with a chisel and gouge. Aside from a few parallel grooves, it was unadorned. The lid, which had no hinges and could be completely removed, rested tilted against the wall. It was also made of several inches thick oak and fitted onto the chest with a kind of dovetailing at the edges.

Instead of a lock, the chest was fastened by a lengthy thong of oxhide, which now lay in a coil on the floor. Bound round and round, twisted and intertangled, and finally tied with a special and secret knot (the ends being concealed), the thong of leather secured the contents of the chest from prying eyes or thievish hands. With axe or knife, of course, the knot might easily have been severed, but no one could obtain access to the room except the retainers of the house, and which of them, even if unfaithful, would dare to employ such means in view of the certain punishment that must follow? It would occupy hours to undo the knot, and then it could not be tied again in exactly the same fashion, so that the real use of the thong was to assure the owner that his treasures had not been interfered with in his absence. Such locks as were made were of the clumsiest construction. They were not so difficult to pick as the thong to untie, and their expense, or rather the difficulty of getting a workman who could manufacture them, confined their use to the heads of great houses. The Baron's chest was locked, and his alone, in the dwelling.

Instead of a lock, the chest was secured with a long strip of oxhide, which now lay coiled on the floor. Wrapped around and around, twisted and intertwined, and finally tied with a special hidden knot (the ends tucked away), the leather thong protected the chest's contents from curious eyes or thieving hands. Sure, someone could easily cut the knot with an axe or knife, but no one could enter the room except for the household staff, and which of them, even if disloyal, would dare use such methods knowing the inevitable punishment that would follow? It would take hours to undo the knot, and even then, it couldn't be tied back exactly the same way, so the real purpose of the thong was to reassure the owner that his valuables hadn’t been tampered with while he was gone. The locks that were made were clunky and outdated. They were not as easy to pick as the thong was to untie, and their high cost, or rather the challenge of finding a craftsman who could make them, meant they were only used by the heads of prominent families. The Baron's chest was locked, and his was the only one in the house.

Besides the parchments which were nearest the top, as most in use, there were three books, much worn and decayed, which had been preserved, more by accident than by care, from the libraries of the ancients. One was an abridged history of Rome, the other a similar account of English history, the third a primer of science or knowledge; all three, indeed, being books which, among the ancients, were used for teaching children, and which, by the men of those days, would have been cast aside with contempt.

Besides the scrolls that were at the top, since they were the most used, there were three books that were worn out and decayed. They had been kept, more by chance than by intention, from the libraries of the ancients. One was a short history of Rome, the other a similar account of English history, and the third was a basic primer on science or knowledge. All three were books that, in ancient times, were used to teach children and would have been dismissed with disdain by the people of that era.

Exposed for years in decaying houses, rain and mildew had spotted and stained their pages; the covers had rotted away these hundred years, and were now supplied by a broad sheet of limp leather with wide margins far overlapping the edges; many of the pages were quite gone, and others torn by careless handling. The abridgment of Roman history had been scorched by a forest fire, and the charred edges of the leaves had dropped away in semicircular holes. Yet, by pondering over these, Felix had, as it were, reconstructed much of the knowledge which was the common (and therefore unvalued) possession of all when they were printed.

Exposed for years in decaying houses, rain and mold had spotted and stained their pages; the covers had rotted away over these hundred years and were now replaced by a large sheet of limp leather with wide margins that overlapped the edges. Many of the pages were completely gone, and others were torn from careless handling. The shortened version of Roman history had been burned in a forest fire, and the charred edges of the leaves had fallen away, leaving semicircular holes. Yet, by pondering over these, Felix had, in a way, pieced together much of the knowledge that was once common (and thus unappreciated) when they were printed.

The parchments contained his annotations, and the result of his thought; they were also full of extracts from decaying volumes lying totally neglected in the houses of other nobles. Most of these were of extreme antiquity, for when the ancients departed, the modern books which they had composed being left in the decaying houses at the mercy of the weather, rotted, or were destroyed by the frequent grass fires. But those that had been preserved by the ancients in museums escaped for a while, and some of these yet remained in lumber-rooms and corners, whence they were occasionally dragged forth by the servants for greater convenience in lighting the fires. The young nobles, entirely devoted to the chase, to love intrigues, and war, overwhelmed Felix Aquila with ridicule when they found him poring over these relics, and being of a proud and susceptible spirit, they so far succeeded that he abandoned the open pursuit of such studies, and stole his knowledge by fitful glances when there was no one near. As among the ancients learning was esteemed above all things, so now, by a species of contrast, it was of all things the most despised.

The parchments held his notes and the results of his thoughts; they were also filled with excerpts from decaying books that were completely ignored in the homes of other nobles. Most of these were very old, because when the ancients left, the modern books they had written were abandoned in the rotting houses, left to deteriorate in the weather or destroyed by frequent grass fires. However, those that had been kept by the ancients in museums survived for a while, and some of these still remained in storage rooms and corners, where they were occasionally pulled out by the servants for convenience in lighting fires. The young nobles, who were fully devoted to hunting, love affairs, and war, mocked Felix Aquila when they caught him studying these relics, and being proud and sensitive, he eventually gave up openly pursuing such studies and secretly stole glances at the texts when no one was around. Just as knowledge was highly valued among the ancients, now, in contrast, it was the most despised of all things.

Under the books, in one corner of the chest, was a leather bag containing four golden sovereigns, such as were used by the ancients, and eighteen pieces of modern silver money, the debased shillings of the day, not much more than half of which was silver and the rest alloy. The gold coins had been found while digging holes for the posts of a new stockade, and by the law should have been delivered to the prince's treasury. All the gold discovered, whether in the form of coin or jewellery, was the property of the Prince, who was supposed to pay for its value in currency.

Under the books, in one corner of the chest, was a leather bag containing four golden sovereigns, like those used in ancient times, and eighteen pieces of modern silver currency, the inferior shillings of the day, of which not much more than half was actually silver and the rest was an alloy. The gold coins had been found while digging holes for the posts of a new stockade, and by law, they should have been handed over to the prince's treasury. All the gold discovered, whether in the form of coins or jewelry, belonged to the Prince, who was expected to compensate for its value in currency.

As the actual value of the currency was only half of its nominal value (and sometimes less), the transaction was greatly in favour of the treasury. Such was the scarcity of gold that the law was strictly enforced, and had there been the least suspicion of the fact, the house would have been ransacked from the cellars to the roof. Imprisonment and fine would have been the inevitable fate of Felix, and the family would very probably have suffered for the fault of one of its members. But independent and determined to the last degree, Felix ran any risk rather than surrender that which he had found, and which he deemed his own. This unbending independence and pride of spirit, together with scarce concealed contempt for others, had resulted in almost isolating him from the youth of his own age, and had caused him to be regarded with dislike by the elders. He was rarely, if ever, asked to join the chase, and still more rarely invited to the festivities and amusements provided in adjacent houses, or to the grander entertainments of the higher nobles. Too quick to take offence where none was really intended, he fancied that many bore him ill-will who had scarcely given him a passing thought. He could not forgive the coarse jokes uttered upon his personal appearance by men of heavier build, who despised so slender a stripling.

As the actual value of the currency was only half of its nominal value (and sometimes even less), the transaction heavily favored the treasury. Gold was so scarce that the law was strictly enforced, and if there was the slightest suspicion, the house would have been searched from the basement to the attic. Imprisonment and fines would have been the certain outcome for Felix, and his family would likely have faced consequences for one member's actions. But determined and fiercely independent, Felix would risk anything rather than give up what he had found, which he believed was his. This stubborn independence and pride, along with barely concealed disdain for others, led to him being almost isolated from his peers and disliked by the elders. He was rarely, if ever, invited to join the hunts and even less often invited to the parties and events at nearby houses or the grander gatherings of the higher nobility. Too quick to take offense where none was intended, he believed many harbored negative feelings towards him, even though they hardly thought about him at all. He couldn't forgive the crude jokes made about his appearance by bigger men who looked down on such a slender young man.

He would rather be alone than join their company, and would not compete with them in any of their sports, so that, when his absence from the arena was noticed, it was attributed to weakness or cowardice. These imputations stung him deeply, driving him to brood within himself. He was never seen in the courtyards or ante-rooms at the palace, nor following in the train of the Prince, as was the custom with the youthful nobles. The servility of the court angered and disgusted him; the eagerness of strong men to carry a cushion or fetch a dog annoyed him.

He preferred to be alone rather than hang out with them, and he didn’t want to compete in their sports. So, when people noticed he wasn't at the arena, they assumed it was out of weakness or fear. These assumptions hurt him deeply, making him withdraw even more into himself. He was never seen in the courtyards or waiting areas at the palace, nor did he follow the Prince like the other young nobles did. The flattery of the court annoyed and disgusted him; it bothered him to see strong men eager to carry a cushion or fetch a dog.

There were those who observed this absence from the crowd in the ante-rooms. In the midst of so much intrigue and continual striving for power, designing men, on the one hand, were ever on the alert for what they imagined would prove willing instruments; and on the other, the Prince's councillors kept a watchful eye on the dispositions of every one of the least consequence; so that, although but twenty-five, Felix was already down in two lists, the one, at the palace, of persons whose views, if not treasonable, were doubtful, and the other, in the hands of a possible pretender, as a discontented and therefore useful man. Felix was entirely ignorant that he had attracted so much observation. He supposed himself simply despised and ignored; he cherished no treason, had not the slightest sympathy with any pretender, held totally aloof from intrigue, and his reveries, if they were ambitious, concerned only himself.

There were those who noticed his absence from the crowd in the waiting rooms. In the midst of so much intrigue and constant power struggles, scheming individuals were always on the lookout for what they thought would be willing allies; meanwhile, the Prince's advisors kept a close watch on the behavior of everyone, even those of minimal importance. So, even though Felix was only twenty-five, he was already listed in two registers: one at the palace of individuals whose opinions, if not outright treasonous, were considered questionable, and the other in the hands of a potential usurper, as a disgruntled and therefore useful individual. Felix had no idea that he had attracted so much attention. He believed he was simply looked down upon and ignored; he held no treasonous thoughts, had no sympathy for any pretender, completely stayed away from intrigue, and his dreams, no matter how ambitious, were only about himself.

But the most precious of the treasures in the chest were eight or ten small sheets of parchment, each daintily rolled and fastened with a ribbon, letters from Aurora Thyma, who had also given him the ivory cross on the wall. It was of ancient workmanship, a relic of the old world. A compass, a few small tools (valuable because preserved for so many years, and not now to be obtained for any consideration), and a magnifying glass, a relic also of the ancients, completed the contents of the chest.

But the most valuable treasures in the chest were eight or ten small sheets of parchment, each carefully rolled up and tied with a ribbon, letters from Aurora Thyma, who had also given him the ivory cross on the wall. It was an ancient piece, a remnant of the old world. A compass, a few small tools (valuable because they had been preserved for so many years and couldn’t be obtained anymore), and a magnifying glass, another relic of the ancients, made up the rest of the chest's contents.

Upon a low table by the bedstead were a flint and steel and tinder, and an earthenware oil lamp, not intended to be carried about. There, too, lay his knife, with a buckhorn hilt, worn by everyone in the belt, and his forester's axe, a small tool, but extremely useful in the woods, without which, indeed, progress was often impossible. These were in the belt, which, as he undressed, he had cast upon the table, together with his purse, in which were about a dozen copper coins, not very regular in shape, and stamped on one side only. The table was formed of two short hewn planks, scarcely smoothed, raised on similar planks (on edge) at each end, in fact, a larger form.

On a small table by the bed were some flint and steel for lighting fires, along with some tinder and a clay oil lamp, not meant to be moved around. His knife with a buckhorn handle, worn by everyone on their belt, rested there too, along with his small but incredibly useful forester's axe, which was essential for making progress in the woods. He had thrown his belt onto the table as he undressed, along with his purse that held about a dozen irregularly shaped copper coins, stamped only on one side. The table was made from two short, roughly-hewn planks raised on similar planks placed upright at each end, essentially forming a larger structure.

From a peg driven into the wall hung a disc of brass by a thin leathern lace; this disc, polished to the last degree, answered as a mirror. The only other piece of furniture, if so it could be called, was a block of wood at the side of the table, used as a chair. In the corner, between the table and the window, stood a long yew bow, and a quiver full of arrows ready for immediate use, besides which three or four sheaves lay on the floor. A crossbow hung on a wooden peg; the bow was of wood, and, therefore, not very powerful; bolts and square-headed quarrels were scattered carelessly on the floor under it.

From a peg in the wall hung a brass disc attached to a thin leather lace; this disc, highly polished, served as a mirror. The only other piece of furniture, if you could call it that, was a wooden block next to the table, used as a chair. In the corner, between the table and the window, stood a long yew bow and a quiver full of arrows ready for immediate use, along with three or four sheaves on the floor. A crossbow hung on a wooden peg; the bow was made of wood, and, as a result, not very powerful; bolts and square-headed quarrels were carelessly scattered on the floor beneath it.

Six or seven slender darts used for casting with the hand, as javelins, stood in another corner by the door, and two stouter boar spears. By the wall a heap of nets lay in apparent confusion, some used for partridges, some of coarse twine for bush-hens, another, lying a little apart, for fishes. Near these the component parts of two turkey-traps were strewn about, together with a small round shield or targe, such as are used by swordsmen, snares of wire, and, in an open box, several chisels, gouges, and other tools.

Six or seven slender darts for throwing by hand, like javelins, were leaning against the wall by the door, along with two sturdier boar spears. Against the wall, there was a messy pile of nets—some meant for partridges, some made of thick twine for bush-hens, and another, separated a bit, for fish. Nearby, the parts of two turkey traps were scattered around, along with a small round shield, or targe, used by fighters, some wire snares, and in an open box, several chisels, gouges, and other tools.

A blowtube was fastened to three pegs, so that it might not warp, a hunter's horn hung from another, and on the floor were a number of arrows in various stages of manufacture, some tied to the straightening rod, some with the feathers already attached, and some hardly shaped from the elder or aspen log. A heap of skins filled the third corner, and beside them were numerous stag's horns, and two of the white cow, but none yet of the much dreaded and much desired white bull. A few peacock's feathers were there also, rare and difficult to get, and intended for Aurora. Round one footpost of the bed was a long coil of thin hide, a lasso, and on another was suspended an iron cap, or visorless helmet.

A blowpipe was secured to three posts to keep it from bending, a hunter's horn hung from another, and on the floor lay several arrows at different stages of completion—some attached to the straightening rod, some with feathers already on them, and some barely shaped from elder or aspen wood. A pile of skins filled one corner, along with several stag antlers and two from a white cow, but none from the much-feared and much-coveted white bull. There were also a few peacock feathers, which were rare and hard to find, intended for Aurora. Around one footpost of the bed was a long coil of thin hide, a lasso, and hanging from another was an iron cap, or helmet without a visor.

There was no sword or lance. Indeed, of all these weapons and implements, none seemed in use, to judge by the dust that had gathered upon them, and the rusted edges, except the bow and crossbow and one of the boar spears. The bed itself was very low, framed of wood, thick and solid; the clothes were of the coarsest linen and wool; there were furs for warmth in winter, but these were not required in May. There was no carpet, nor any substitute for it; the walls were whitewashed, ceiling there was none, the worm-eaten rafters were visible, and the roof tree. But on the table was a large earthenware bowl, full of meadow orchids, blue-bells, and a bunch of may in flower.

There was no sword or lance. In fact, none of the weapons or tools seemed to be in use, judging by the dust that had collected on them and the rusty edges, except for the bow, crossbow, and one of the boar spears. The bed itself was very low, made of thick, solid wood; the bedding was made of the roughest linen and wool; there were furs for warmth in winter, but those weren't needed in May. There was no carpet or anything to replace it; the walls were whitewashed, there was no ceiling, the worm-eaten rafters were exposed, and the roof support was visible. But on the table was a large earthenware bowl, filled with meadow orchids, bluebells, and a bunch of blooming may.

His hat, wide in the brim, lay on the floor; his doublet was on the wooden block or seat, with the long tight-fitting trousers, which showed every muscle of the limb, and by them high shoes of tanned but unblacked leather. His short cloak hung on a wooden peg against the door, which was fastened with a broad bolt of oak. The parchment in the recess of the window at which he had been working just before retiring was covered with rough sketches, evidently sections of a design for a ship or galley propelled by oars.

His wide-brimmed hat was on the floor; his doublet was on the wooden block or seat, along with his long, tight-fitting trousers that showed every muscle of his legs, and his high shoes made of tanned, unpolished leather. His short cloak was hanging on a wooden hook by the door, which was secured with a broad oak bolt. The parchment in the window recess where he had been working just before going to bed was covered with rough sketches, clearly sections of a design for a ship or galley powered by oars.

The square spot of light upon the wall slowly moved as the sun rose higher, till the ivory cross was left in shadow, but still the slumberer slept on, heedless, too, of the twittering of the swallows under the eaves, and the call of the cuckoo not far distant.

The square patch of light on the wall gradually shifted as the sun climbed higher, until the ivory cross was cast in shadow, but still the sleeper continued to sleep, oblivious to the chirping of the swallows under the eaves and the distant call of the cuckoo.


CHAPTER II
THE HOUSE OF AQUILA


Presently there came the sound of a creaking axle, which grew louder and louder as the waggon drew nearer, till it approached a shriek. The sleeper moved uneasily, but recognising the noise even in his dreams, did not wake. The horrible sounds stopped; there was the sound of voices, as if two persons, one without and one within the wall, were hailing each other; a gate swung open, and the waggon came past under the very window of the bedroom. Even habit could not enable Felix to entirely withstand so piercing a noise when almost in his ears. He sat up a minute, and glanced at the square of light on the wall to guess the time by its position.

Right then, the sound of a creaking axle filled the air, growing louder as the wagon got closer until it nearly shrieked. The sleeper stirred restlessly, but even in his dreams, he recognized the noise and didn’t wake up. The terrible sounds stopped; then there were voices, as if two people, one outside and one inside the wall, were calling to each other. A gate swung open, and the wagon rolled past right under the bedroom window. Even his usual tolerance couldn’t help Felix completely ignore such a piercing noise so close to him. He sat up for a moment and looked at the square of light on the wall to judge the time by its position.

In another minute or two the squeaking of the axle ceased, as the waggon reached the storehouses, and he immediately returned to the pillow. Without, and just beneath the window, there ran a road or way, which in part divided the enclosure into two portions; the dwelling-house and its offices being on one side, the granaries and storehouses on the other. But a few yards to the left of his room, a strong gate in the enclosing wall gave entrance to this roadway. It was called the Maple Gate, because a small maple tree grew near outside. The wall, which surrounded the whole place at a distance of eight or ten yards from the buildings, was of brick, and about nine feet high, with a ditch without.

In a minute or two, the squeaking of the axle stopped as the wagon reached the storehouses, and he quickly went back to the pillow. Outside, just below the window, there was a road that partially divided the area into two parts; the house and its offices were on one side, while the granaries and storehouses were on the other. Just a few yards to the left of his room, a sturdy gate in the enclosing wall provided access to this road. It was called the Maple Gate because there was a small maple tree growing nearby on the outside. The wall that surrounded the entire area, about eight to ten yards from the buildings, was made of brick and stood around nine feet tall, with a ditch outside.

It was partly embattled, and partly loopholed, and a banquette of earth rammed hard ran all round inside, so that the defenders might discharge darts or arrows through the embrasures, and step down out of sight to prepare a fresh supply. At each corner there was a large platform, where a considerable number of men could stand and command the approaches; there were, however, no bastions or flanking towers. On the roof of the dwelling-house a similar platform had been prepared, protected by a parapet; from which height the entire enclosure could be overlooked.

It was partially fortified and had openings, with a solid bank of packed earth all around the inside, allowing defenders to shoot darts or arrows through the openings and step down out of view to grab a new supply. At each corner, there was a large platform where a decent number of men could stand and keep watch over the entrances; however, there were no bastions or flanking towers. On the roof of the house, a similar platform had been set up, surrounded by a protective wall; from that height, they could see the entire area.

Another platform, though at a less height, was on the roof of the retainers' lodgings, so placed as especially to command the second gate. Entering by the Maple Gate, the dwelling-house was on the right hand, and the granaries and general storehouses on the left, the latter built on three sides of a square. Farther on, on the same side, were the stables, and near them the forge and workshops. Beyond these, again, were the lodgings of the retainers and labourers, near which, in the corner, was the South Gate, from which the South Road led to the cattle-pens and farms, and out to the south.

Another platform, although lower, was on the roof of the staff's accommodations, specifically positioned to oversee the second gate. Entering through the Maple Gate, the main house was on the right, while the granaries and general storehouses were on the left, the latter arranged on three sides of a square. Further along, on the same side, were the stables, and close by were the forge and workshops. Beyond those were the living quarters of the staff and laborers, and in the corner was the South Gate, which led onto the South Road toward the cattle pens and farms, heading south.

Upon the right hand, after the dwelling-house, and connected with it, came the steward's stores, where the iron tools and similar valuable articles of metal were kept. Then, after a covered passage-way, the kitchen and general hall, under one roof with the house. The house fronted in the opposite direction to the roadway; there was a narrow green lawn between it and the enceinte, or wall, and before the general hall and kitchens a gravelled court. This was parted from the lawn by palings, so that the house folk enjoyed privacy, and yet were close to their servitors. The place was called the Old House, for it dated back to the time of the ancients, and the Aquilas were proud of the simple designation of their fortified residence.

On the right side, just after the main house and connected to it, were the steward's storage rooms, where they kept iron tools and other valuable metal items. After a covered walkway, there was the kitchen and the main hall, all under one roof with the house. The house faced away from the road; there was a narrow green lawn between it and the wall, and in front of the main hall and kitchens, there was a gravel courtyard. This area was separated from the lawn by a fence, allowing the residents to have privacy while still being close to their servants. The place was called the Old House because it dated back to ancient times, and the Aquilas took pride in the straightforward name of their fortified home.

Felix's window was almost exactly opposite the entrance to the storehouse or granary yard, so that the waggon, after passing it, had to go but a little distance, and then, turning to the left, was drawn up before the doors of the warehouse. This waggon was low, built for the carriage of goods only, of hewn plank scarcely smooth, and the wheels were solid; cut, in fact, from the butt of an elm tree. Unless continually greased the squeaking of such wheels is terrible, and the carters frequently forgot their grease-horns.

Felix's window was almost directly across from the entrance to the storehouse or granary yard, so the wagon, after passing it, only had to travel a short distance before turning left and stopping in front of the warehouse doors. This wagon was low and designed solely for carrying goods, made of rough-hewn planks, and its wheels were solid, actually cut from the trunk of an elm tree. Unless they were regularly greased, the squeaking from those wheels was awful, and the drivers often forgot their grease horns.

Much of the work of the farm, such as the carting of hay and corn in harvest-time, was done upon sleds; the waggons (there were but few of them) being reserved for longer journeys on the rough roads. This waggon, laden with wool, some of the season's clip, had come in four or five miles from an out-lying cot, or sheep-pen, at the foot of the hills. In the buildings round the granary yard there were stored not only the corn and flour required for the retainers (who might at any moment become a besieged garrison), but the most valuable products of the estate, the wool, hides, and tanned leather from the tan-pits, besides a great quantity of bacon and salt beef; indeed, every possible article that could be needed.

Much of the farm work, like hauling hay and corn during harvest time, was done using sleds; the wagons (there were only a few) were saved for longer trips on the rough roads. This wagon, loaded with wool from this season's clip, had come in from an outlying cottage or sheep-pen at the foot of the hills, about four or five miles away. In the buildings around the grain storage yard, there was not only corn and flour set aside for the workers (who might need to defend the place at any moment), but also the most valuable products of the estate: wool, hides, and tanned leather from the tanning pits, along with a large supply of bacon and salt beef; in fact, every possible item that could be needed.

These buildings were put together with wooden pins, on account of the scarcity of iron, and were all (dwelling-houses included) roofed with red tile. Lesser houses, cottages, and sheds at a distance were thatched, but in an enclosure tiles were necessary, lest, in case of an attack, fire should be thrown.

These buildings were assembled using wooden pegs because iron was hard to come by, and all of them (including the houses) had roofs made of red tiles. Smaller houses, cottages, and sheds nearby were thatched, but inside the enclosure, tiles were essential to prevent fire from being set during an attack.

Half an hour later, at six o'clock, the watchman blew his horn as loudly as possible for some two or three minutes, the hollow sound echoing through the place. He took the time by the sundial on the wall, it being a summer morning; in winter he was guided by the position of the stars, and often, when sun or stars were obscured, went by guess. The house horn was blown thrice a day; at six in the morning, as a signal that the day had begun, at noon as a signal for dinner, at six in the afternoon as a signal that the day (except in harvest-time) was over. The watchmen went their round about the enclosure all night long, relieved every three hours, armed with spears, and attended by mastiffs. By day one sufficed, and his station was then usually (though not always) on the highest part of the roof.

Half an hour later, at six o'clock, the watchman blew his horn as loudly as he could for about two or three minutes, the sound echoing throughout the area. He checked the time using the sundial on the wall since it was a summer morning; in winter, he relied on the positions of the stars, and often, when the sun or stars were hidden, he estimated the time. The house horn was blown three times a day: at six in the morning to signal that the day had started, at noon to signal for dinner, and at six in the afternoon to signal that the day (except during harvest season) was over. The watchmen patrolled the enclosure all night long, being changed every three hours, armed with spears, and accompanied by guard dogs. During the day, one watchman was enough, and he usually (though not always) stayed at the highest point of the roof.

The horn re-awoke Felix; it was the note by which he had been accustomed to rise for years. He threw open the oaken shutters, and the sunlight and the fresh breeze of the May morning came freely into the room. There was now the buzz of voices without, men unloading the wool, men at the workshops and in the granaries, and others waiting at the door of the steward's store for the tools, which he handed out to them. Iron being so scarce, tools were a temptation, and were carefully locked up each night, and given out again in the morning.

The horn woke Felix up again; it was the sound he'd been used to getting up to for years. He flung open the wooden shutters, and sunlight and the fresh breeze of the May morning flooded into the room. Outside, he could hear the hum of voices—men unloading wool, workers at the workshops and granaries, and others waiting at the steward's store for tools, which he handed out to them. With iron being so scarce, tools were a hot commodity, so they were carefully locked up every night and distributed again in the morning.

Felix went to the ivory cross and kissed it in affectionate recollection of Aurora, and then looked towards the open window, in the pride and joy of youth turning to the East, the morning, and the light. Before he had half dressed there came a knock and then an impatient kick at the door. He unbarred it, and his brother Oliver entered. Oliver had been for his swim in the river. He excelled in swimming, as, indeed, in every manly exercise, being as active and energetic as Felix was outwardly languid.

Felix went to the ivory cross and kissed it, remembering Aurora fondly. Then he turned to the open window, filled with the youthful pride and joy of the morning light coming from the East. Before he had finished getting dressed, there was a knock followed by an impatient kick at the door. He unlatched it, and his brother Oliver walked in. Oliver had just come back from swimming in the river. He was excellent at swimming, just like he was at every other physical activity, being as vigorous and energetic as Felix was outwardly lethargic.

His room was only across the landing, his door just opposite. It also was strewn with implements and weapons. But there was a far greater number of tools; he was an expert and artistic workman, and his table and his seat, unlike the rude blocks in Felix's room, were tastefully carved. His seat, too, had a back, and he had even a couch of his own construction. By his bedhead hung his sword, his most valued and most valuable possession. It was one which had escaped the dispersion of the ancients; it had been ancient even in their days, and of far better work than they themselves produced.

His room was just across the landing, with his door directly opposite. It was also filled with tools and weapons, but there were many more tools; he was a skilled and creative craftsman, and his table and chair, unlike the rough blocks in Felix's room, were elegantly carved. His chair had a back, and he even had a couch he made himself. Above his bed hung his sword, his most treasured and valuable possession. It was one that had survived the scattering of the ancients; it had been ancient even in their time and was crafted far better than anything they produced.

Broad, long, straight, and well-balanced, it appeared capable of cutting through helmet and mail, when wielded by Oliver's sturdy arm. Such a sword could not have been purchased for money; money, indeed, had often been offered for it in vain; persuasion, and even covert threats from those higher in authority who coveted it, were alike wasted. The sword had been in the family for generations, and when the Baron grew too old, or rather when he turned away from active life, the second son claimed it as the fittest to use it. The claim was tacitly allowed; at all events, he had it, and meant to keep it.

Broad, long, straight, and well-balanced, it seemed capable of slicing through armor and chainmail when held by Oliver's strong arm. Such a sword couldn't be bought; in fact, there had been many unsuccessful attempts to acquire it with money. Even persuasion and indirect threats from those in higher positions who wanted it were useless. The sword had been in the family for generations, and when the Baron grew too old or simply stepped away from active life, the second son claimed it as the most deserving to wield it. This claim was generally accepted; regardless, he had it, and he intended to keep it.

In a corner stood his lance, long and sharp, for use on horse-back, and by it his saddle and accoutrements. The helmet and the shirt of mail, the iron greaves and spurs, the short iron mace to bang at the saddle-bow, spoke of the knight, the man of horses and war.

In one corner was his lance, long and sharp, ready for use on horseback, along with his saddle and gear. The helmet, chainmail, iron greaves, and spurs, along with the short iron mace to bang against the saddle, all indicated that he was a knight, a man of horses and battle.

Oliver's whole delight was in exercise and sport. The boldest rider, the best swimmer, the best at leaping, at hurling the dart or the heavy hammer, ever ready for tilt or tournament, his whole life was spent with horse, sword, and lance. A year younger than Felix, he was at least ten years physically older. He measured several inches more round the chest; his massive shoulders and immense arms, brown and hairy, his powerful limbs, tower-like neck, and somewhat square jaw were the natural concomitants of enormous physical strength.

Oliver's greatest joy was in exercise and sports. He was the bravest rider, the best swimmer, the top jumper, and excelled at throwing darts and heavy hammers. Always ready for jousts or tournaments, he spent his entire life with horses, swords, and lances. Although he was a year younger than Felix, he looked at least ten years older physically. He was several inches wider in the chest, with massive shoulders and huge arms that were brown and hairy. His powerful limbs, tall neck, and somewhat square jaw were clear signs of his incredible physical strength.

All the blood and bone and thew and sinew of the house seemed to have fallen to his share; all the fiery, restless spirit and defiant temper; all the utter recklessness and warrior's instinct. He stood every inch a man, with dark, curling, short-cut hair, brown cheek and Roman chin, trimmed moustache, brown eye, shaded by long eyelashes and well-marked brows; every inch a natural king of men. That very physical preponderance and animal beauty was perhaps his bane, for his comrades were so many, and his love adventures so innumerable, that they left him no time for serious ambition.

All the blood, bone, muscle, and sinew of the house seemed to have fallen to his lot; all the fiery, restless spirit and defiant nature; all the complete recklessness and warrior instincts. He stood every bit a man, with dark, curly, short hair, a brown complexion and strong chin, a trimmed mustache, and brown eyes shaded by long eyelashes and well-defined brows; every bit a natural leader of men. That very physical superiority and raw good looks might have been his downfall, as he had so many friends and so many romantic escapades that they left him no time for serious ambitions.

Between the brothers there was the strangest mixture of affection and repulsion. The elder smiled at the excitement and energy of the younger; the younger openly despised the studious habits and solitary life of the elder. In time of real trouble and difficulty they would have been drawn together; as it was, there was little communion; the one went his way, and the other his. There was perhaps rather an inclination to detract from each other's achievements that to praise them, a species of jealousy or envy without personal dislike, if that can be understood. They were good friends, and yet kept apart.

Between the brothers, there was the strangest mix of affection and repulsion. The older brother smiled at the excitement and energy of the younger; the younger brother openly despised the older brother's studious habits and solitary lifestyle. In times of real trouble and difficulty, they would have come together; as it was, there was little communication; one went his way, and the other his. There was perhaps more of a tendency to downplay each other's achievements than to celebrate them, a kind of jealousy or envy that didn’t involve personal dislike, if that makes sense. They were good friends, yet remained distant.

Oliver made friends of all, and thwacked and banged his enemies into respectful silence. Felix made friends of none, and was equally despised by nominal friends and actual enemies. Oliver was open and jovial; Felix reserved and contemptuous, or sarcastic in manner. His slender frame, too tall for his width, was against him; he could neither lift the weights nor undergo the muscular strain readily borne by Oliver. It was easy to see that Felix, although nominally the eldest, had not yet reached his full development. A light complexion, fair hair and eyes, were also against him; where Oliver made conquests, Felix was unregarded. He laughed, but perhaps his secret pride was hurt.

Oliver made friends with everyone and took down his enemies until they respected him. Felix didn’t make friends with anyone and was equally disliked by both his supposed friends and real enemies. Oliver was open and cheerful, while Felix was reserved and looked down on others, often sounding sarcastic. His slight build, too tall for his frame, worked against him; he couldn’t handle the weights or the physical strain that Oliver managed easily. It was clear that Felix, even though he was technically the oldest, hadn’t fully developed yet. His light skin, fair hair, and eyes also worked against him; where Oliver made connections, Felix was ignored. He laughed, but maybe his hidden pride was wounded.

There was but one thing Felix could do in the way of exercise and sport. He could shoot with the bow in a manner till then entirely unapproached. His arrows fell unerringly in the centre of the target, the swift deer and the hare were struck down with ease, and even the wood-pigeon in full flight. Nothing was safe from those terrible arrows. For this, and this only, his fame had gone forth; and even this was made a source of bitterness to him.

There was only one thing Felix could do in terms of exercise and sport. He could shoot a bow like no one ever had before. His arrows landed perfectly in the center of the target, he effortlessly took down swift deer and hares, and even hit wood pigeons in mid-flight. Nothing was safe from those deadly arrows. Because of this, and only this, he had gained a reputation; yet even this fame brought him a sense of bitterness.

The nobles thought no arms worthy of men of descent but the sword and lance; missile weapons, as the dart and arrow, were the arms of retainers. His degradation was completed when, at a tournament, where he had mingled with the crowd, the Prince sent for him to shoot at the butt, and display his skill among the soldiery, instead of with the knights in the tilting ring. Felix shot, indeed, but shut his eyes that the arrow might go wide, and was jeered at as a failure even in that ignoble competition. Only by an iron self-control did he refrain that day from planting one of the despised shafts in the Prince's eye.

The nobles believed that only the sword and lance were suitable weapons for men of noble birth; things like darts and arrows were considered the weapons of servants. His humiliation was complete when, at a tournament where he had mixed with the crowd, the Prince called him to shoot at the target and show off his skills among the soldiers instead of competing with the knights in the jousting arena. Felix did shoot, but he closed his eyes so that the arrow would miss, and he was mocked as a failure even in that dishonorable contest. Only through intense self-control did he manage not to aim one of those scorned arrows at the Prince's eye that day.

But when Oliver joked him about his failure, Felix asked him to hang up his breastplate at two hundred yards. He did so, and in an instant a shaft was sent through it. After that Oliver held his peace, and in his heart began to think that the bow was a dangerous weapon.

But when Oliver made fun of him for failing, Felix asked him to hang up his breastplate at two hundred yards. He did, and in an instant, an arrow was shot through it. After that, Oliver kept quiet and started to think that the bow was a really dangerous weapon.

"So you are late again this morning," said Oliver, leaning against the recess of the window, and placing his arms on it. The sunshine fell on his curly dark hair, still wet from the river. "Studying last night, I suppose?" turning over the parchment. "Why didn't you ride into town with me?"

"So you're late again this morning," said Oliver, leaning against the window sill with his arms resting on it. The sunlight shone on his curly dark hair, still damp from the river. "Studying last night, I guess?" he said, flipping over the parchment. "Why didn't you come into town with me?"

"The water must have been cold this morning?" said Felix, ignoring the question.

"The water must have been cold this morning?" Felix said, brushing off the question.

"Yes; there was a slight frost, or something like it, very early, and a mist on the surface; but it was splendid in the pool. Why don't you get up and come? You used to."

"Yeah, there was a bit of frost, or something like it, really early, and a mist on the surface; but it was gorgeous in the pool. Why don't you get up and join me? You used to."

"I can swim," said Felix laconically, implying that, having learnt the art, it no more tempted him. "You were late last night. I heard you put Night in."

"I can swim," Felix said casually, suggesting that now that he had learned how, it didn't appeal to him anymore. "You were late last night. I heard you put Night in."

"We came home in style; it was rather dusky, but Night galloped the Green Miles."

"We came home in style; it was pretty dark, but Night raced across the Green Miles."

"Mind she doesn't put her hoof in a rabbit's hole, some night."

"Just make sure she doesn't step into a rabbit hole one night."

"Not that. She can see like a cat. I believe we got over the twelve miles in less than an hour. Sharp work, considering the hills. You don't inquire for the news."

"Not that. She can see like a cat. I think we covered the twelve miles in under an hour. Impressive, given the hills. You’re not asking for the news."

"What's the news to me?"

"What's the news for me?"

"Well, there was a quarrel at the palace yesterday afternoon. The Prince told Louis he was a double-faced traitor, and Louis told the Prince he was a suspicious fool. It nearly came to blows, and Louis is banished."

"Well, there was an argument at the palace yesterday afternoon. The Prince called Louis a two-faced traitor, and Louis called the Prince a paranoid idiot. It almost turned into a fight, and now Louis is banished."

"For the fiftieth time."

"For the 50th time."

"This time it is more serious."

"This time, it's serious."

"Don't believe it. He will be sent for again this morning; cannot you see why?"

"Don't buy into it. They'll call for him again this morning; can't you see why?"

"No."

"Nope."

"If the Prince is really suspicious, he will never send his brother into the country, where he might be resorted to by discontented people. He will keep him close at hand."

"If the Prince is truly suspicious, he will never send his brother into the countryside, where discontented people could turn to him. He will keep him close."

"I wish the quarrelling would cease; it spoils half the fun; one's obliged to creep about the court and speak in whispers, and you can't tell whom you are talking to; they may turn on you if you say too much. There is no dancing either. I hate this moody state. I wish they would either dance or fight."

"I wish the arguing would stop; it ruins half the fun. You have to tiptoe around the court and talk in whispers, and you can't even tell who you're talking to; they might turn on you if you say too much. There's no dancing either. I hate this gloomy atmosphere. I wish they would either dance or fight."

"Fight! who?"

"Fight! Who?"

"Anybody. There's some more news, but you don't care."

"Anyone. There's a bit more news, but you’re not interested."

"No. I do not."

"No, I don't."

"Why don't you go and live in the woods all by yourself?" said Oliver, in some heat.

"Why don’t you just go and live in the woods by yourself?" Oliver said, a bit heated.

Felix laughed.

Felix laughed.

"Tell me your news. I am listening."

"Tell me what's new. I'm all ears."

"The Irish landed at Blacklands the day before yesterday, and burnt Robert's place; they tried Letburn, but the people there had been warned, and were ready. And there's an envoy from Sypolis arrived; some think the Assembly has broken up; they were all at daggers drawn. So much for the Holy League."

"The Irish arrived at Blacklands two days ago and burned down Robert's place; they attempted to attack Letburn, but the locals had been tipped off and were prepared. Also, an envoy from Sypolis has shown up; some believe the Assembly has disbanded because tensions were really high. That’s the situation with the Holy League."

"So much for the Holy League," repeated Felix.

"So much for the Holy League," Felix said again.

"What are you going to do to-day?" asked Oliver, after awhile.

"What are you going to do today?" asked Oliver, after a while.

"I am going down to my canoe," said Felix.

"I’m heading down to my canoe," said Felix.

"I will go with you; the trout are rising. Have you got any hooks?"

"I'll go with you; the trout are biting. Do you have any hooks?"

"There's some in the box there, I think; take the tools out."

"There's some in that box, I think; take out the tools."

Oliver searched among the tools in the open box, all rusty and covered with dust, while Felix finished dressing, put away his parchment, and knotted the thong round his chest. He found some hooks at the bottom, and after breakfast they walked out together, Oliver carrying his rod, and a boar-spear, and Felix a boar-spear also, in addition to a small flag basket with some chisels and gouges.

Oliver rummaged through the rusty, dusty tools in the open box while Felix finished getting dressed, put away his parchment, and tied the thong around his chest. He discovered some hooks at the bottom, and after breakfast, they headed out together, with Oliver carrying his fishing rod and a boar spear, while Felix carried a boar spear as well, plus a small basket with some chisels and gouges.


CHAPTER III
THE STOCKADE


When Oliver and Felix started, they left Philip, the third and youngest of the three brothers, still at breakfast. They turned to the left, on getting out of doors, and again to the left, through the covered passage between the steward's store and the kitchen. Then crossing the waggon yard, they paused a moment to glance in at the forge, where two men were repairing part of a plough.

When Oliver and Felix began, they left Philip, the third and youngest of the three brothers, still having his breakfast. They turned left as they stepped outside, and again turned left through the covered passage between the steward's storage area and the kitchen. Then, after crossing the wagon yard, they stopped for a moment to look into the forge, where two men were fixing a part of a plow.

Oliver must also look for a moment at his mare, after which they directed their steps to the South Gate. The massive oaken door was open, the bolts having been drawn back at hornblow. There was a guard-room on one side of the gate under the platform in the corner, where there was always supposed to be a watch.

Oliver also took a moment to glance at his mare, after which they made their way to the South Gate. The large wooden door was open, the bolts having been drawn back at the sound of the horn. There was a guardroom on one side of the gate under the platform in the corner, where a watch was always expected to be kept.

But in times of peace, and when there were no apprehensions of attack, the men whose turn it was to watch there were often called away for a time to assist in some labour going forward, and at that moment were helping to move the woolpacks farther into the warehouse. Still they were close at hand, and had the day watchman or warder, who was now on the roof, blown his horn, would have rushed direct to the gate. Felix did not like this relaxation of discipline. His precise ideas were upset at the absence of the guard; method, organization, and precision, were the characteristics of his mind, and this kind of uncertainty irritated him.

But during peaceful times, when there were no worries about an attack, the guards who were on duty often got called away to help with some ongoing tasks, and at that moment, they were assisting in moving the woolpacks further into the warehouse. Still, they were nearby, and if the day watchman or guard, who was now on the roof, had blown his horn, they would have rushed straight to the gate. Felix didn’t like this relaxation of discipline. His orderly mindset was disturbed by the absence of the guard; method, organization, and precision were his hallmarks, and this kind of uncertainty frustrated him.

"I wish Sir Constans would insist on the guard being kept," he remarked. Children, in speaking of their parents, invariably gave them their titles. Now their father's title was properly "my lord," as he was a baron, and one of the most ancient. But he had so long abnegated the exercise of his rights and privileges, sinking the noble in the mechanician, that men had forgotten the proper style in which they should address him. "Sir" was applied to all nobles, whether they possessed estates or not. The brothers were invariably addressed as Sir Felix or Sir Oliver. It marked, therefore, the low estimation in which the Baron was held when even his own sons spoke of him by that title.

"I wish Sir Constans would make sure the guard is always on duty," he said. Kids, when talking about their parents, always used their titles. Their dad's title was technically "my lord," since he was a baron and one of the oldest around. But he had spent so much time giving up his rights and privileges, focusing more on his work as a mechanic, that people had forgotten how they should properly address him. "Sir" was used for all nobles, whether they owned land or not. The brothers were always called Sir Felix or Sir Oliver. So, it showed how little respect people had for the Baron when even his own sons referred to him by that title.

Oliver, though a military man by profession, laughed at Felix's strict view of the guards' duties. Familiarity with danger, and natural carelessness, had rendered him contemptuous of it.

Oliver, even though he was a soldier by profession, chuckled at Felix's strict interpretation of the guards' responsibilities. His experience with danger and his natural lack of concern had made him dismissive of it.

"There's no risk," said he, "that I can see. Who could attack us? The Bushmen would never dream of it; the Romany would be seen coming days beforehand; we are too far from the Lake for the pirates; and as we are not great people, as we might have been, we need dread no private enmity. Besides which, any assailants must pass the stockades first."

"There's no risk," he said, "that I can see. Who would attack us? The Bushmen would never consider it; the Romany would be spotted coming days in advance; we're too far from the Lake for the pirates; and since we're not important people, as we could have been, we don't need to fear any personal grudges. Plus, any attackers would have to get through the stockades first."

"Quite true. Still I don't like it; it is a loose way of doing things."

"That's true. Still, I don't like it; it's a sloppy way of doing things."

Outside the gate they followed the waggon track, or South Road, for about half a mile. It crossed meadows parted by low hedges, and they remarked, as they went, on the shortness of the grass, which, for want of rain, was not nearly fit for mowing. Last year there had been a bad wheat crop; this year there was at present scarcely any grass. These matters were of the highest importance; peace or war, famine or plenty, might depend upon the weather of the next few months.

Outside the gate, they followed the wagon trail, or South Road, for about half a mile. It passed through meadows separated by low hedges, and they commented as they walked on how short the grass was, which, due to lack of rain, wasn’t really ready for mowing. Last year, there had been a poor wheat harvest; this year, there was hardly any grass at all. These issues were extremely important; peace or war, famine or abundance, could hinge on the weather in the coming months.

The meadows, besides being divided by the hedges, kept purposely cropped low, were surrounded, like all the cultivated lands, by high and strong stockades. Half a mile down the South Road they left the track, and following a footpath some few hundred yards, came to the pool where Oliver had bathed that morning. The river, which ran through the enclosed grounds, was very shallow, for they were near its source in the hills, but just there it widened, and filled a depression fifty or sixty yards across, which was deep enough for swimming. Beyond the pool the stream curved and left the enclosure; the stockade, or at least an open work of poles, was continued across it. This work permitted the stream to flow freely, but was sufficiently close to exclude any one who might attempt to enter by creeping up the bed of the river.

The meadows, which were separated by purposely low hedges, were surrounded, like all the farmed areas, by tall and sturdy fences. Half a mile down the South Road, they veered off the path and followed a footpath for a few hundred yards, arriving at the pool where Oliver had swum that morning. The river that flowed through the enclosed land was quite shallow since they were near its source in the hills, but right there, it widened and formed a depression about fifty or sixty yards across, deep enough for swimming. Beyond the pool, the stream curved and exited the enclosure; the fence, or at least a framework of poles, continued across it. This structure allowed the water to flow freely while being close enough to keep out anyone who might try to sneak in by crawling up the riverbed.

They crossed the river just above the pool by some stepping-stones, large blocks rolled in for the purpose, and approached the stockade. It was formed of small but entire trees, young elms, firs, or very thick ash-poles, driven in a double row into the earth, the first or inner row side by side, the outer row filling the interstices, and the whole bound together at the bottom by split willow woven in and out. This interweaving extended only about three feet up, and was intended first to bind the structure together, and secondly to exclude small animals which might creep in between the stakes. The reason it was not carried all up was that it should not afford a footing to human thieves desirous of climbing over.

They crossed the river just above the pool using some stepping stones, large blocks placed there for that purpose, and moved toward the stockade. It was made of small but sturdy trees—young elms, firs, or very thick ash poles—driven into the ground in a double row. The inner row was side by side, while the outer row filled in the gaps, and the whole structure was held together at the bottom by split willow woven in and out. This weaving only extended about three feet up and was meant to both secure the structure and keep out small animals that might slip through the gaps. It wasn’t extended higher so that it wouldn't provide a foothold for human thieves trying to climb over.

The smooth poles by themselves afforded no notch or foothold for a Bushman's naked foot. They rose nine or ten feet above the willow, so that the total height of the palisade was about twelve feet, and the tops of the stakes were sharpened. The construction of such palisades required great labour, and could be carried out only by those who could command the services of numbers of men, so that a small proprietor was impossible, unless within the walls of a town. This particular stockade was by no means an extensive one, in comparison with the estates of more prominent nobles.

The smooth poles didn’t have any notches or footholds for a Bushman's bare foot. They rose about nine or ten feet above the willow, making the total height of the palisade around twelve feet, and the tops of the stakes were sharpened. Building these palisades took a lot of work and could only be done by those who could organize a large number of people, which made it impossible for small landowners, except in town. This particular stockade wasn’t very large compared to the estates of more powerful nobles.

The enclosure immediately surrounding the Old House was of an irregular oval shape, perhaps a mile long, and not quite three-quarters of a mile wide, the house being situated towards the northern and higher end of the oval. The river crossed it, entering on the west and leaving on the eastern side. The enclosure was for the greater part meadow and pasture, for here the cattle were kept, which supplied the house with milk, cheese, and butter, while others intended for slaughter were driven in here for the last months of fattening.

The area immediately around the Old House was shaped like an irregular oval, about a mile long and just under three-quarters of a mile wide, with the house located towards the northern and elevated end of the oval. A river flowed through it, entering on the west and exiting on the east. Most of the enclosure was meadow and pasture, where the cattle were kept to provide the house with milk, cheese, and butter, while others meant for slaughter were brought in here for their final months of fattening.

The horses in actual use for riding, or for the waggons, were also turned out here temporarily. There were two pens and rickyards within it, one beside the river, one farther down. The South Road ran almost down the centre, passing both rickyards, and leaving the stockade at the southern end by a gate, called the barrier. At the northern extremity of the oval the palisade passed within three hundred yards of the house, and there was another barrier, to which the road led from the Maple Gate, which has been mentioned. From thence it went across the hills to the town of Ponze. Thus, anyone approaching the Old House had first to pass the barrier and get inside the palisade.

The horses used for riding or pulling wagons were also temporarily kept here. There were two pens and rickyards inside, one by the river and another further down. The South Road ran almost through the middle, going past both rickyards and leading out of the stockade at the southern end through a gate called the barrier. At the northern end of the oval, the palisade came within three hundred yards of the house, and there was another barrier connected by a road from the previously mentioned Maple Gate. From there, the road continued over the hills to the town of Ponze. So, anyone coming to the Old House had to first go through the barrier and then get inside the palisade.

At each barrier there was a cottage and a guard-room, though, as a matter of fact, the watch was kept in peaceful times even more carelessly than at the inner gates of the wall about the House itself. Much the same plan, with local variations, was pursued on the other estates of the province, though the stockade at the Old House was remarkable for the care and skill with which it had been constructed. Part of the duty of the watchman on the roof was to keep an eye on the barriers, which he could see from his elevated position.

At each gate, there was a small house and a guard room, but honestly, the watch was kept even more loosely during peaceful times than at the inner gates of the wall around the House itself. A similar setup, with some local differences, was followed on the other estates in the province, although the stockade at the Old House was notable for how well and carefully it had been built. One of the watchman's duties on the roof was to keep an eye on the gates, which he could see from his high vantage point.

In case of an incursion of gipsies, or any danger, the guard at the barrier was supposed to at once close the gate, blow a horn, and exhibit a flag. Upon hearing the horn or observing the flag, the warder on the roof raised the alarm, and assistance was sent. Such was the system, but as no attack had taken place for some years the discipline had grown lax.

In the event of an invasion by gypsies or any threat, the guard at the barrier was expected to immediately close the gate, sound the horn, and display a flag. Upon hearing the horn or seeing the flag, the guard on the roof would raise the alarm, and help would be dispatched. That was the protocol, but since there hadn’t been an attack in several years, discipline had slipped.

After crossing on the stepping-stones Oliver and Felix were soon under the stockade which ran high above them, and was apparently as difficult to get out of as to get into. By the strict law of the estate, any person who left the stockade except by the public barrier rendered himself liable to the lash or imprisonment. Any person, even a retainer, endeavouring to enter from without by pole, ladder, or rope, might be killed with an arrow or dart, putting himself into the position of an outlaw. In practice, of course, this law was frequently evaded. It did not apply to the family of the owner.

After crossing the stepping-stones, Oliver and Felix soon found themselves under the stockade that loomed above them, seemingly as hard to leave as it was to enter. According to the strict rules of the estate, anyone who left the stockade except through the public gate faced punishment of either whipping or imprisonment. Anyone, even a servant, trying to enter from outside using a pole, ladder, or rope could be shot with an arrow or dart, putting themselves in the position of an outlaw. In practice, of course, this law was often ignored. It did not apply to the owner’s family.

Under some bushes by the palisade was a ladder of rope, the rungs, however, of wood. Putting his fishing-tackle and boar spear down, Oliver took the ladder and threw the end over the stockade. He then picked up a pole with a fork at the end from the bushes, left there, of course, for the purpose, and with the fork pushed the rungs over till the ladder was adjusted, half within and half without the palisade. It hung by the wooden rungs which caught the tops of the stakes. He then went up, and when at the top, leant over and drew up the outer part of the ladder one rung, which he put the inner side of the palisade, so that on transferring his weight to the outer side it might uphold him. Otherwise the ladder, when he got over the points of the stakes, must have slipped the distance between one rung and a second.

Under some bushes by the fence was a rope ladder, but the rungs were made of wood. Oliver set down his fishing gear and boar spear, grabbed the ladder, and tossed the end over the stockade. He then picked up a forked pole from the bushes, which had obviously been left there for this purpose, and with the fork, he pushed the rungs until the ladder was in place, half inside and half outside the fence. It hung by the wooden rungs that caught the tops of the stakes. He then climbed up, and when he reached the top, he leaned over and pulled up the outer part of the ladder by one rung, placing it on the inside of the fence so that when he shifted his weight to the outside, it would support him. Otherwise, the ladder would have slipped the distance between the rungs as he climbed over the stake points.

Having adjusted this, he got over, and Felix carrying up the spears and tackle handed them to him. Felix followed, and thus in three minutes they were on the outer side of the stockade. Originally the ground for twenty yards, all round outside the stockade, had been cleared of trees and bushes that they might not harbour vermin, or thorn-hogs, or facilitate the approach of human enemies. Part of the weekly work of the bailiffs was to walk round the entire circumference of the stockade to see that it was in order, and to have any bushes removed that began to grow up. As with other matters, however, in the lapse of time the bailiffs became remiss, and under the easy, and perhaps too merciful rule of Sir Constans, were not recalled to their duties with sufficient sharpness.

Having sorted this out, he climbed over, and Felix carried the spears and gear and handed them to him. Felix followed, and in just three minutes, they were on the outside of the stockade. Originally, the ground for twenty yards all around the stockade had been cleared of trees and bushes to prevent hiding places for pests, thorn-hogs, or potential human attackers. Part of the weekly duties of the bailiffs was to walk the entire perimeter of the stockade to ensure it was in good shape and to remove any bushes that started to grow back. However, like with many other things, the bailiffs became neglectful over time, and under the relaxed, possibly too lenient rule of Sir Constans, they were not reminded of their responsibilities with enough urgency.

Brambles and thorns and other underwood had begun to cover the space that should have been open, and young sapling oaks had risen from dropped acorns. Felix pointed this out to Oliver, who seldom accompanied him; he was indeed rather glad of the opportunity to do so, as Oliver had more interest with Sir Constans than himself. Oliver admitted it showed great negligence, but added that after all it really did not matter. "What I wish," said he, "is that Sir Constans would go to Court, and take his proper position."

Brambles, thorns, and other undergrowth had started to cover the area that should have been clear, and young oak saplings had sprouted from fallen acorns. Felix pointed this out to Oliver, who rarely joined him; he was actually quite pleased to have the chance to do so, since Oliver seemed to have more of Sir Constans' interest than he did. Oliver acknowledged that it showed considerable neglect but added that, in the grand scheme of things, it really didn't matter. "What I wish," he said, "is that Sir Constans would go to Court and assume his rightful place."

Upon this they were well agreed; it was, in fact, almost the only point upon which all three brothers did agree. They sometimes talked about it till they separated in a furious temper, not with each other but with him. There was a distinct track of footsteps through the narrow band of low brambles and underwood between the stockade and the forest. This had been made by Felix in his daily visits to his canoe.

Upon this, they all agreed; it was, in fact, almost the only thing all three brothers agreed on. They would sometimes talk about it until they parted ways in a furious mood, not with each other but with him. There was a clear path of footsteps through the narrow line of low brambles and underbrush between the stockade and the forest. This had been made by Felix during his daily trips to his canoe.

The forest there consisted principally of hawthorn-trees and thorn thickets, with some scattered oaks and ashes; the timber was sparse, but the fern was now fast rising up so thick, that in the height of summer it would be difficult to walk through it. The tips of the fronds unrolling were now not up to the knee; then the brake would reach to the shoulder. The path wound round the thickets (the blackthorn being quite impenetrable except with the axe) and came again to the river some four or five hundred yards from the stockade. The stream, which ran from west to east through the enclosure, here turned and went due south.

The forest there mainly had hawthorn trees and thorn bushes, with a few scattered oaks and ashes. The trees were sparse, but the ferns were growing so thick that by the height of summer, it would be hard to walk through. The tips of the fronds that were unrolling now reached just below the knees; later, the ferns would grow tall enough to reach the shoulders. The path twisted around the thickets (the blackthorn was completely impenetrable without an axe) and eventually came back to the river about four or five hundred yards from the stockade. The stream, which flowed from west to east through the enclosure, turned here and flowed directly south.

On the bank Felix had found a fine black poplar, the largest and straightest and best grown of that sort for some distance round, and this he had selected for his canoe. Stones broke the current here into eddies, below which there were deep holes and gullies where alders hung over, and an ever-rustling aspen spread the shadow of its boughs across the water. The light-coloured mud, formed of disintegrated chalk, on the farther and shallower side was only partly hidden by flags and sedges, which like a richer and more alluvial earth. Nor did the bushes grow very densely on this soil over the chalk, so that there was more room for casting the fly than is usually the case where a stream runs through a forest. Oliver, after getting his tackle in order, at once began to cast, while Felix, hanging his doublet on an oft-used branch, and leaning his spear against a tree, took his chisels and gouge from the flag basket.

On the bank, Felix found a great black poplar, the biggest, straightest, and healthiest one of its kind for quite a distance, and he chose it for his canoe. Stones broke the current here into swirls, below which there were deep holes and channels where alders hung over, and a constantly rustling aspen cast its shade across the water. The light-colored mud, made of disintegrated chalk, on the far shallower side was only partly covered by reeds and grasses, resembling richer, more fertile soil. The bushes didn’t grow very thickly on this chalky ground, leaving more space for casting the line than is typically found where a stream flows through a forest. After getting his gear ready, Oliver immediately began to cast, while Felix hung his jacket on a frequently used branch and leaned his spear against a tree, taking his chisels and gouge out of the flag basket.

He had chosen the black poplar for the canoe because it was the lightest wood, and would float best. To fell so large a tree had been a great labour, for the axes were of poor quality, cut badly, and often required sharpening. He could easily have ordered half-a-dozen men to throw the tree, and they would have obeyed immediately; but then the individuality and interest of the work would have been lost. Unless he did it himself its importance and value to him would have been diminished. It had now been down some weeks, had been hewn into outward shape, and the larger part of the interior slowly dug away with chisel and gouge.

He chose the black poplar for the canoe because it was the lightest wood and would float the best. Cutting down such a large tree was a lot of hard work, as the axes were poor quality, poorly made, and often needed sharpening. He could have easily asked half a dozen men to cut it down, and they would have done it right away; but then the uniqueness and interest of the task would have been lost. If he didn't do it himself, its significance and value to him would have been lessened. The tree had been down for a few weeks, shaped on the outside, and most of the interior had been slowly hollowed out with a chisel and gouge.

He had commenced while the hawthorn was just putting forth its first spray, when the thickets and the trees were yet bare. Now the May bloom scented the air, the forest was green, and his work approached completion. There remained, indeed, but some final shaping and rounding off, and the construction, or rather cutting out, of a secret locker in the stern. This locker was nothing more than a square aperture chiselled out like a mortice, entering not from above but parallel with the bottom, and was to be closed with a tight-fitting piece of wood driven in by force of mallet.

He had started when the hawthorn was just beginning to bloom, and the thickets and trees were still bare. Now the May flowers filled the air with their scent, the forest was lush and green, and his work was nearing completion. All that was left was some final shaping and finishing touches, along with creating a secret compartment in the back. This compartment was simply a square hole carved out like a mortise, entering not from the top but parallel to the bottom, and it was going to be sealed with a snug piece of wood hammered in tightly with a mallet.

A little paint would then conceal the slight chinks, and the boat might be examined in every possible way without any trace of this hiding-place being observed. The canoe was some eleven feet long, and nearly three feet in the beam; it tapered at either end, so that it might be propelled backwards or forwards without turning, and stem and stern (interchangeable definitions in this case) each rose a few inches higher than the general gunwale. The sides were about two inches thick, the bottom three, so that although dug out from light wood the canoe was rather heavy.

A little paint would then cover the small cracks, and the boat could be inspected in every way without anyone noticing this hiding spot. The canoe was about eleven feet long and nearly three feet wide; it tapered at both ends, allowing it to be paddled in either direction without turning around, and both ends (which could be used interchangeably in this case) each rose a few inches higher than the overall edge. The sides were about two inches thick, and the bottom three, so even though it was carved from lightweight wood, the canoe was still quite heavy.

At first Felix constructed a light shed of fir poles roofed with spruce-fir branches over the log, so that he might work sheltered from the bitter winds of the early spring. As the warmth increased he had taken the shed down, and now as the sun rose higher was glad of the shade of an adjacent beech.

At first, Felix built a simple shelter made of fir poles and covered it with spruce-fir branches over the log, so he could work protected from the harsh winds of early spring. As the weather warmed up, he took the shelter down, and now that the sun was climbing higher, he appreciated the shade from a nearby beech tree.


CHAPTER IV
THE CANOE


Felix had scarcely worked half an hour before Oliver returned and threw himself on the ground at full length. He had wearied of fishing, the delicate adjustment of the tackle and the care necessary to keep the hook and line from catching in the branches had quickly proved too much for his patience. He lay on the grass, his feet towards the stream which ran and bubbled beneath, and watched Felix chipping out the block intended to fit into the secret opening or locker.

Felix had barely worked for half an hour when Oliver came back and collapsed on the ground. He had gotten tired of fishing; adjusting the gear and making sure the hook and line didn’t get stuck in the branches was too much for him. He lay on the grass, his feet pointing towards the stream that flowed and bubbled below, and watched Felix carving out the piece meant to fit into the secret opening or locker.

"Is it nearly finished, then?" he said presently. "What a time you have been at it!"

"Is it almost done?" he asked after a moment. "You've been working on it for a while!"

"Nearly three months."

"Almost three months."

"Why did you make it so big? It is too big."

"Why did you make it so huge? It’s way too big."

"Is it really? Perhaps I want to put some things in it."

"Is it really? Maybe I want to add some things to it."

"Oh, I see; cargo. But where are you going to launch it?"

"Oh, I get it; cargo. But where are you planning to launch it?"

"Below the stones there."

"Under the stones there."

"Well, you won't be able to go far; there's an old fir across the river down yonder, and a hollow willow has fallen in. Besides, the stream's too shallow; you'll take ground before you get half a mile."

"Well, you won't get very far; there's an old fir tree across the river over there, and a hollow willow has fallen in. Plus, the stream's too shallow; you'll hit the bottom before you make it half a mile."

"Shall I?"

"Should I?"

"Of course you will. That boat will float six inches deep by herself, and I'm sure there's not six inches by the Thorns."

"Of course you will. That boat will float six inches deep on its own, and I'm sure there isn't six inches by the Thorns."

"Very awkward."

"Super awkward."

"Why didn't you have a hide boat made, with a willow framework and leather cover? Then you might perhaps get down the river by hauling it past the shallows and the fallen trees. In two days' time you would be in the hands of the gipsies."

"Why didn't you get a hide boat made, with a willow frame and leather cover? Then you could maybe get down the river by hauling it past the shallow parts and the fallen trees. In two days, you would be with the gypsies."

"And you would be Sir Constans' heir!"

"And you'd be Sir Constans' heir!"

"Now, come, I say; that's too bad. You know I didn't mean that. Besides, I think I'm as much his heir as you now" (looking at his sinewy arm); "at least, he doesn't listen as much to you. I mean, the river runs into the gipsies' country as straight as it can go."

"Come on, that's unfortunate. You know I didn't mean it. Besides, I believe I’m just as much his heir as you are now" (looking at his strong arm); "at least, he doesn't pay as much attention to you. I mean, the river flows right into the gypsies' land without any detours."

"Just so."

"Exactly."

"Well, you seem very cool about it!"

"Well, you seem really chill about it!"

"I am not going down the river."

"I am not going down the river."

"Then, where are you going?"

"Then, where are you going?"

"On the Lake."

"By the Lake."

"Whew!" (whistling) "Pooh! Why, the Lake's—let me see, to Heron Bay it's quite fifteen miles. You can't paddle across the land."

"Whew!" (whistling) "Wow! The Lake's—let me see, to Heron Bay it's about fifteen miles. You can't just paddle across the land."

"But I can put the canoe on a cart."

"But I can put the canoe on a cart."

"Aha! why didn't you tell me before?"

"Aha! Why didn't you tell me that earlier?"

"Because I did not wish anyone to know. Don't say anything."

"Because I didn’t want anyone to find out. Don't say anything."

"Not I. But what on earth, or rather, on water, are you driving at? Where are you going? What's the canoe for?"

"Not me. But what are you talking about? Where are you headed? What's the canoe for?"

"I am going a voyage. But I will tell you all when it is ready. Meantime, I rely on you to keep silence. The rest think the boat is for the river."

"I’m going on a voyage. But I’ll tell you everything when it’s ready. In the meantime, I trust you to keep quiet. The others think the boat is for the river."

"I will not say a word. But why did you not have a hide boat?"

"I won't say a word. But why didn't you have a hide boat?"

"They are not strong enough. They can't stand knocking about."

"They're not tough enough. They can't handle being pushed around."

"If you want to go a voyage (where to, I can't imagine), why not take a passage on board a ship?"

"If you want to go on a trip (where to, I can't imagine), why not book a spot on a ship?"

"I want to go my own way. They will only go theirs. Nor do I like the company."

"I want to follow my own path. They will only follow theirs. And I don't enjoy their company."

"Well, certainly the sailors are the roughest lot I know. Still, that would not have hurt you. You are rather dainty, Sir Felix!"

"Well, the sailors are definitely the toughest crew I've seen. Still, that wouldn't have bothered you. You're quite delicate, Sir Felix!"

"My daintiness does not hurt you."

"My treat won't hurt you."

"Can't I speak?" (sharply)

"Can’t I talk?" (sharply)

"Please yourself."

"Treat yourself."

A silence. A cuckoo sang in the forest, and was answered from a tree within the distant palisade. Felix chopped away slowly and deliberately; he was not a good workman. Oliver watched his progress with contempt; he could have put it into shape in half the time. Felix could draw, and design; he could invent, but he was not a practical workman, to give speedy and accurate effect to his ideas.

A silence. A cuckoo called out in the forest, and another responded from a tree near the distant fence. Felix chopped away slowly and deliberately; he wasn’t a skilled worker. Oliver watched his progress with disdain; he could have shaped it in half the time. Felix could draw and design; he could invent, but he wasn’t a practical worker capable of quickly and accurately executing his ideas.

"My opinion is," said Oliver, "that that canoe will not float upright. It's one-sided."

"My opinion is," said Oliver, "that canoe is not going to float upright. It's lopsided."

Felix, usually so self-controlled, could not refrain from casting his chisel down angrily. But he picked it up again, and said nothing. This silence had more influence upon Oliver, whose nature was very generous, than the bitterest retort. He sat up on the sward.

Felix, usually so composed, couldn’t help but throw his chisel down in anger. But he picked it up again and said nothing. This silence affected Oliver, whose nature was very generous, more than the harshest comeback. He sat up on the grass.

"I will help launch it," he said. "We could manage it between us, if you don't want a lot of the fellows down here."

"I'll help get it started," he said. "We can handle it ourselves if you don't want a lot of the guys down here."

"Thank you. I should like that best."

"Thank you. I would like that the most."

"And I will help you with the cart when you start."

"And I'll help you with the cart when you begin."

Oliver rolled over on his back, and looked up idly at the white flecks of cloud sailing at a great height.

Oliver rolled over onto his back and looked up lazily at the white clouds drifting high in the sky.

"Old Mouse is a wretch not to give me a command," he said presently.

"Old Mouse is a jerk for not giving me a command," he said after a moment.

Felix looked round involuntarily, lest any one should have heard; Mouse was the nick-name for the Prince. Like all who rule with irresponsible power, the Prince had spies everywhere. He was not a cruel man, nor a benevolent, neither clever nor foolish, neither strong nor weak; simply an ordinary, a very ordinary being, who chanced to sit upon a throne because his ancestors did, and not from any personal superiority.

Felix looked around instinctively, worried that someone might have heard; Mouse was the nickname for the Prince. Like everyone who holds power without accountability, the Prince had spies everywhere. He wasn’t a cruel man, nor was he kind; he wasn’t clever or foolish, strong or weak; he was just an ordinary, very ordinary person who happened to be on a throne because his ancestors were, and not because of any personal greatness.

He was at times much influenced by those around him; at others he took his own course, right or wrong; at another he let matters drift. There was never any telling in the morning what he might do towards night, for there was no vein of will or bias running through his character. In fact, he lacked character; he was all uncertainty, except in jealousy of his supremacy. Possibly some faint perception of his own incapacity, of the feeble grasp he had upon the State, that seemed outwardly so completely his, occasionally crossed his mind.

He was sometimes heavily influenced by the people around him; at other times, he went his own way, whether it was right or wrong; and at other moments, he just let things happen. You could never predict in the morning what he would decide by night, as there was no strong will or personal inclination in his character. In fact, he lacked any real character; he was nothing but uncertainty, except when it came to his jealousy over his position of power. Occasionally, he might have had a vague sense of his own inadequacy, of how loosely he held the State that seemed to be entirely his.

Hence the furious scenes with his brother; hence the sudden imprisonments and equally sudden pardons; the spies and eavesdroppers, the sequestration of estates for no apparent cause. And, following these erratic severities to the suspected nobles, proclamations giving privileges to the people, and removing taxes. But in a few days these were imposed again, and men who dared to murmur were beaten by the soldiers, or cast into the dungeons. Yet Prince Louis (the family were all of the same name) was not an ill-meaning man; he often meant well, but had no stability or firmness of purpose.

Hence the intense confrontations with his brother; hence the sudden arrests and just as quick releases; the spies and eavesdroppers, the confiscation of estates for no clear reason. And, following these unpredictable harsh measures against the suspected nobles, proclamations granting privileges to the people and lifting taxes. But within a few days, those taxes were imposed again, and those who dared to complain were beaten by soldiers or thrown into dungeons. Yet Prince Louis (the whole family shared the same name) wasn’t an evil man; he often had good intentions, but lacked consistency or determination.

This was why Felix dreaded lest some chance listener should hear Oliver abuse him. Oliver had been in the army for some time; his excellence in all arms, and especially with lance and sword, his acknowledged courage, and his noble birth, entitled him to a command, however lowly it might be. But he was still in the ranks, and not the slightest recognition had ever been taken of his feats, except, indeed, if whispers were true, by some sweet smiles from a certain lady of the palace, who admired knightly prowess.

This is why Felix feared that some random listener might overhear Oliver talking badly about him. Oliver had served in the army for a while; his skill with weapons, especially the lance and sword, his recognized bravery, and his noble background deserved him a leadership position, no matter how small. Yet, he was still just a soldier, and no one had ever acknowledged his achievements, except, if the rumors were true, by a few charming smiles from a certain lady in the palace who admired a knight's skills.

Oliver chafed under this neglect.

Oliver was frustrated by this neglect.

"I would not say that kind of thing," remarked Felix. "Certainly it is annoying."

"I wouldn't say that," Felix commented. "It's definitely annoying."

"Annoying! that is a mild expression. Of course, everyone knows the reason. If we had any money, or influence, it would be very different. But Sir Constans has neither gold nor power, and he might have had both."

"Frustrating! That’s putting it lightly. Everyone knows the reason. If we had any money or connections, it would be a whole different story. But Sir Constans lacks both riches and influence, and he could have had both."

"There was a clerk from the notary's at the house yesterday evening," said Felix.

"There was a clerk from the notary's here at the house last night," said Felix.

"About the debts, no doubt. Some day the cunning old scoundrel, when he can squeeze no more interest out of us, will find a legal quibble and take the lot."

"About the debts, no doubt. One day the crafty old con artist, when he can’t get any more interest from us, will come up with a legal loophole and take everything."

"Or put us in the Blue Chamber, the first time the Prince goes to war and wants money. The Blue Chamber will say, 'Where can we get it? Who's weakest?' 'Why, Sir Constans!' 'Then away with him.'"

"Or put us in the Blue Chamber, the first time the Prince goes to war and needs money. The Blue Chamber will say, 'Where can we get it? Who's the weakest?' 'Why, Sir Constans!' 'Then get rid of him.'"

"Yes, that will be it. Yet I wish a war would happen; there would be some chance for me. I would go with you in your canoe, but you are going you don't know where. What's your object? Nothing. You don't know yourself."

"Yeah, that’s it. But I wish a war would break out; it would give me a shot at something. I would join you in your canoe, but you’re headed who knows where. What’s your goal? Nothing. You don’t even know yourself."

"Indeed!"

"Definitely!"

"No, you don't; you're a dreamer."

"No, you don’t; you’re just dreaming."

"I am afraid it is true."

"I'm sorry, but it’s true."

"I hate dreams." After a pause, in a lower voice, "Have you any money?"

"I hate dreams." After a pause, in a quieter voice, "Do you have any money?"

Felix took out his purse and showed him the copper pieces.

Felix pulled out his wallet and showed him the copper coins.

"The eldest son of Constans Aquila with ten copper pieces," growled Oliver, rising, but taking them all the same. "Lend them to me. I'll try them on the board to-night. Fancy me putting down copper! It's intolerable" (working himself into a rage). "I'll turn bandit, and rob on the roads. I'll go to King Yeo and fight the Welsh. Confusion!"

"The oldest son of Constans Aquila with ten copper coins," Oliver grumbled, getting up but still taking them. "Lend them to me. I'll try them out on the board tonight. Can you imagine me betting copper! It's ridiculous" (working himself into a frenzy). "I’ll become a bandit and rob people on the roads. I'll go to King Yeo and fight the Welsh. What a mess!"

He rushed into the forest, leaving his spear on the sward.

He ran into the forest, leaving his spear on the ground.

Felix quietly chipped away at the block he was shaping, but his temper, too, was inwardly rising. The same talk, varied in detail, but the same in point, took place every time the brothers were together, and always with the same result of anger. In earlier days Sir Constans had been as forward in all warlike exercises as Oliver was now, and being possessed of extraordinary physical strength, took a leading part among men. Wielding his battle-axe with irresistible force, he distinguished himself in several battles and sieges.

Felix quietly worked on the block he was shaping, but his temper was starting to rise inside. The same conversation, often with different details but the same message, happened every time the brothers were together, and it always ended in anger. In earlier days, Sir Constans had been as eager in all the combat activities as Oliver is now, and with his incredible physical strength, he stood out among the men. Swinging his battle-axe with unstoppable force, he made a name for himself in several battles and sieges.

He had a singular talent for mechanical construction (the wheel by which water was drawn from the well at the palace was designed by him), but this very ingenuity was the beginning of his difficulties. During a long siege, he invented a machine for casting large stones against the walls, or rather put it together from the fragmentary descriptions he had seen in authors, whose works had almost perished before the dispersion of the ancients; for he, too, had been studious in youth.

He had a unique talent for building things (he designed the wheel that was used to draw water from the well at the palace), but this very skill led to his troubles. During a long siege, he created a machine for launching large stones at the walls, or rather pieced it together from the incomplete descriptions he had read in books, whose writings had almost been lost before the fall of the ancient world; because he, too, had been a diligent student in his youth.

The old Prince was highly pleased with this engine, which promised him speedy conquest over his enemies, and the destruction of their strongholds. But the nobles who had the hereditary command of the siege artillery, which consisted mainly of battering-rams, could not endure to see their prestige vanishing. They caballed, traduced the Baron, and he fell into disgrace. This disgrace, as he was assured by secret messages from the Prince, was but policy; he would be recalled so soon as the Prince felt himself able to withstand the pressure of the nobles. But it happened that the old Prince died at that juncture, and the present Prince succeeded.

The old Prince was really pleased with this new weapon, which promised him quick victories over his enemies and the destruction of their strongholds. However, the nobles who traditionally controlled the siege artillery, mostly made up of battering rams, couldn't stand to see their status fading away. They plotted against the Baron, spread rumors about him, and he ended up in disgrace. This disgrace, as he was reassured through secret messages from the Prince, was just a political move; he would be brought back as soon as the Prince felt he could handle the pressure from the nobles. Unfortunately, the old Prince died at that time, and the current Prince took over.

The enemies of the Baron, having access to him, obtained his confidence; the Baron was arrested and amerced in a heavy fine, the payment of which laid the foundation of those debts which had since been constantly increasing. He was then released, but was not for some two years permitted to approach the Court. Meantime, men of not half his descent, but with an unblushing brow and unctuous tongue, had become the favourites at the palace of the Prince, who, as said before, was not bad, but the mere puppet of circumstances.

The Baron's enemies, having access to him, gained his trust; he was arrested and fined heavily, which led to the debts that have been piling up ever since. He was released but wasn't allowed to come near the Court for about two years. In the meantime, men of far less noble birth, but with shameless confidence and smooth talk, had become the favorites at the Prince's palace, who, as mentioned earlier, wasn't a bad person but merely a puppet of circumstances.

Into competition with these vulgar flatterers Aquila could not enter. It was indeed pride, and nothing but pride, that had kept him from the palace. By slow degrees he had sunk out of sight, occupying himself more and more with mechanical inventions, and with gardening, till at last he had come to be regarded as no more than an agriculturist. Yet in this obscure condition he had not escaped danger.

Into competition with these cheap flatterers, Aquila couldn't engage. It was certainly pride, and only pride, that had kept him away from the palace. Slowly, he had faded from view, focusing more and more on mechanical inventions and gardening, until he was seen as nothing more than a farmer. Yet even in this lowly state, he hadn't avoided danger.

The common people were notoriously attached to him. Whether this was due to his natural kindliness, his real strength of intellect, and charm of manner, or whether it was on account of the uprightness with which he judged between them, or whether it was owing to all these things combined, certain it is that there was not a man on the estate that would not have died for him. Certain it is, too, that he was beloved by the people of the entire district, and more especially by the shepherds of the hills, who were freer and less under the control of the patrician caste. Instead of carrying disputes to the town, to be adjudged by the Prince's authority, many were privately brought to him.

The common people were well-known for their loyalty to him. Whether it was because of his natural kindness, genuine intelligence, and charming personality, or because of the fairness with which he settled their disputes, or a combination of all these qualities, it's clear that not a single person on the estate wouldn’t have laid down their life for him. It's also true that he was cherished by the people throughout the region, especially by the shepherds in the hills, who had more freedom and were less controlled by the upper class. Instead of taking their disagreements to the town to be judged by the Prince’s authority, many were brought to him privately.

This, by degrees becoming known, excited the jealousy and anger of the Prince, an anger cunningly inflamed by the notary Francis, and by other nobles. But they hesitated to execute anything against him lest the people should rise, and it was doubtful, indeed, if the very retainers of the nobles would attack the Old House, if ordered. Thus the Baron's weakness was his defence. The Prince, to do him justice, soon forgot the matter, and laughed at his own folly, that he should be jealous of a man who was no more than an agriculturist.

This gradually became known, stirring up the jealousy and anger of the Prince, an anger cleverly fueled by the notary Francis and other nobles. However, they were reluctant to take action against him for fear that the people would revolt, and it was uncertain whether even the retainers of the nobles would attack the Old House if commanded. Therefore, the Baron's weakness served as his defense. To be fair to the Prince, he quickly moved on and laughed at his own foolishness for being jealous of someone who was nothing more than a farmer.

The rest were not so appeased; they desired the Baron's destruction if only from hatred of his popularity, and they lost no opportunity of casting discredit upon him, or of endeavouring to alienate the affections of the people by representing him as a magician, a thing clearly proved by his machines and engines, which must have been designed by some supernatural assistance. But the chief, as the most immediate and pressing danger, was the debt to Francis the notary, which might at any moment be brought before the Court.

The others weren’t so easily satisfied; they wanted to see the Baron brought down, fueled only by their hatred of his popularity. They seized every chance to discredit him and to turn the people against him by portraying him as a magician, a claim clearly supported by his machines and inventions, which must have been created with some kind of supernatural help. However, the biggest and most urgent threat was the debt to Francis the notary, which could be taken to court at any moment.

Thus it was that the three sons found themselves without money or position, with nothing but a bare patent of nobility. The third and youngest alone had made any progress, if such it could be called. By dint of his own persistent efforts, and by enduring insults and rebuffs with indifference, he had at last obtained an appointment in that section of the Treasury which received the dues upon merchandise, and regulated the imposts. He was but a messenger at every man's call; his pay was not sufficient to obtain his food, still it was an advance, and he was in a government office. He could but just exist in the town, sleeping in a garret, where he stored the provisions he took in with him every Monday morning from the Old House. He came home on the Saturday and returned to his work on the Monday. Even his patience was almost worn out.

So it was that the three sons found themselves broke and without status, with nothing but a bare title of nobility. The youngest son had made some progress, if you could even call it that. Thanks to his persistent efforts and putting up with insults and setbacks without reacting, he finally got a job in the section of the Treasury that handled taxes on goods and regulated tariffs. He was just a messenger, available for anyone who needed him; his salary wasn't enough to cover basic food, but it was a step up, and he was in a government office. He barely managed to get by in town, sleeping in an attic where he kept the food he brought with him every Monday morning from the Old House. He would come back home on Saturday and return to work on Monday. Even his patience was running thin.

The whole place was thus falling to decay, while at the same time it seemed to be flowing with milk and honey, for under the Baron's personal attention the estate, though so carelessly guarded, had become a very garden. The cattle had increased, and were of the best kind, the horses were celebrated and sought for, the sheep valued, the crops the wonder of the province. Yet there was no money; the product went to the notary. This extraordinary fertility was the cause of the covetous longing of the Court favourites to divide the spoil.

The whole place was falling into disrepair, yet it seemed to be thriving, as under the Baron's personal care the estate, despite being so poorly managed, had transformed into a beautiful garden. The cattle had multiplied and were top-quality, the horses were well-known and in demand, the sheep were prized, and the crops amazed the entire province. Still, there was no money; the profits went to the notary. This remarkable abundance fueled the greedy desires of the Court favorites to share in the wealth.


CHAPTER V
BARON AQUILA


Felix's own position was bitter in the extreme. He felt he had talent. He loved deeply, he knew that he was in turn as deeply beloved; but he was utterly powerless. On the confines of the estate, indeed, the men would run gladly to do his bidding. Beyond, and on his own account, he was helpless. Manual labour (to plough, to sow, to work on shipboard) could produce nothing in a time when almost all work was done by bondsmen or family retainers. The life of a hunter in the woods was free, but produced nothing.

Felix’s situation was incredibly bitter. He believed he had talent. He loved deeply and knew he was deeply loved in return, but he felt completely powerless. On the edge of the estate, the men would eagerly fulfill his requests. However, outside of that, he was helpless. Manual labor (plowing, sowing, working on a ship) yielded nothing in a time when nearly all work was done by bonded servants or family retainers. Living as a hunter in the woods offered freedom, but it produced nothing.

The furs he sold simply maintained him; it was barter for existence, not profit. The shepherds on the hills roamed in comparative freedom, but they had no wealth except of sheep. He could not start as a merchant without money; he could not enclose an estate and build a house or castle fit for the nuptials of a noble's daughter without money, or that personal influence which answers the same purpose; he could not even hope to succeed to the hereditary estate, so deeply was it encumbered; they might, indeed, at any time be turned forth.

The furs he sold just allowed him to get by; it was a trade for survival, not for profit. The shepherds on the hills lived in relative freedom, but they had no wealth apart from their sheep. He couldn’t start out as a merchant without capital; he couldn’t buy land and build a house or castle suitable for a noble’s daughter’s wedding without money or the personal connections that could serve the same purpose; he couldn’t even expect to inherit the family estate, as it was so heavily burdened; they could, in fact, be kicked out at any time.

Slowly the iron entered into his soul. This hopelessness, helplessness, embittered every moment. His love increasing with the passage of time rendered his position hateful in the extreme. The feeling within that he had talent which only required opportunity stung him like a scorpion. The days went by, and everything remained the same. Continual brooding and bitterness of spirit went near to drive him mad.

Slowly, the iron seeped into his soul. This hopelessness and helplessness soured every moment. His love, growing stronger over time, made his situation unbearable. The awareness that he had talent that just needed the right opportunity tormented him like a scorpion. Days passed, and nothing changed. Constantly brooding and feeling bitter nearly drove him insane.

At last the resolution was taken, he would go forth into the world. That involved separation from Aurora, long separation, and without communication, since letters could be sent only by special messenger, and how should he pay a messenger? It was this terrible thought of separation which had so long kept him inactive. In the end the bitterness of hopelessness forced him to face it. He began the canoe, but kept his purpose secret, especially from her, lest tears should melt his resolution.

At last, he made up his mind: he would go out into the world. This meant being separated from Aurora for a long time, without any way to communicate, since letters could only be sent by a special messenger, and how would he pay for that? It was this awful thought of separation that had kept him from taking action for so long. In the end, the pain of feeling hopeless pushed him to confront it. He started working on the canoe but kept his plans to himself, especially from her, in case tears would weaken his resolve.

There were but two ways of travelling open to him: on foot, as the hunters did, or by the merchant vessels. The latter, of course, required payment, and their ways were notoriously coarse. If on foot he could not cross the Lake, nor visit the countries on either shore, nor the islands; therefore he cut down the poplar and commenced the canoe. Whither he should go, and what he should do, was entirely at the mercy of circumstances. He had no plan, no route.

There were only two ways for him to travel: on foot, like the hunters, or by merchant ships. The latter, of course, required payment, and their services were known to be rough. If he traveled on foot, he couldn’t cross the lake, visit the countries on either shore, or go to the islands; so he chopped down the poplar and started making a canoe. Where he should go and what he should do was completely up to chance. He had no plan, no route.

He had a dim idea of offering his services to some distant king or prince, of unfolding to him the inventions he had made. He tried to conceal from himself that he would probably be repulsed and laughed at. Without money, without a retinue, how could he expect to be received or listened to? Still, he must go; he could not help himself, go he must.

He had a vague notion of offering his services to some far-off king or prince, sharing the inventions he had created. He tried to ignore the fact that he would most likely be turned away and mocked. Without money and without any followers, how could he expect to be welcomed or heard? Still, he had to go; he couldn’t help it, he had to go.

As he chopped and chipped through the long weeks of early spring, while the easterly winds bent the trees above him, till the buds unfolded and the leaves expanded—while his hands were thus employed, the whole map, as it were, of the known countries seemed to pass without volition before his mind. He saw the cities along the shores of the great Lake; he saw their internal condition, the weakness of the social fabric, the misery of the bondsmen. The uncertain action of the League, the only thread which bound the world together; the threatening aspect of the Cymry and the Irish; the dread north, the vast northern forests, from which at any time invading hosts might descend on the fertile south—it all went before his eyes.

As he chopped and chipped away through the long weeks of early spring, while the east winds bent the trees above him until the buds opened and the leaves grew, his hands were busy, and the entire map of the known countries seemed to unfold in his mind. He envisioned the cities along the shores of the great lake; he understood their inner struggles, the weakness of the social structure, the suffering of those in bondage. The uncertain actions of the League, the only thread that connected the world; the looming threats from the Welsh and the Irish; the ominous north, the vast northern forests from which invading armies could descend on the fertile south at any moment—it all played out before his eyes.

What was there behind the immense and untraversed belt of forest which extended to the south, to the east, and west? Where did the great Lake end? Were the stories of the gold and silver mines of Devon and Cornwall true? And where were the iron mines, from which the ancients drew their stores of metal?

What was hidden beyond the vast, untamed stretch of forest that reached to the south, east, and west? Where did the great Lake stop? Were the tales about the gold and silver mines in Devon and Cornwall real? And where were the iron mines that the ancients used for their metal supplies?

Led by these thoughts he twice or thrice left his labour, and walking some twenty miles through the forests, and over the hills, reached the summit of White Horse. From thence, resting on the sward, he watched the vessels making slow progress by oars, and some drawn with ropes by gangs of men or horses on the shore, through the narrow straits. North and South there nearly met. There was but a furlong of water between them. If ever the North came down there the armies would cross. There was the key of the world. Excepting the few cottages where the owners of the horses lived, there was neither castle nor town within twenty miles.

Led by these thoughts, he left his work two or three times and walked about twenty miles through the forests and over the hills until he reached the top of White Horse. From there, resting on the grass, he watched the boats slowly making their way with oars, and some being pulled along by teams of men or horses on the shore, through the narrow straits. North and South were nearly touching. There was only a short stretch of water between them. If the North ever came down there, the armies would cross. That was the key to the world. Aside from the few cottages where the horse owners lived, there were no castles or towns within twenty miles.

Forced on by these thoughts, he broke the long silence which had existed between him and his father. He spoke of the value and importance of this spot; could not the Baron send forth his retainers and enclose a new estate there? There was nothing to prevent him. The forest was free to all, provided that they rendered due service to the Prince. Might not a house or castle built there become the beginning of a city? The Baron listened, and then said he must go and see that a new hatch was put in the brook to irrigate the water-meadow. That was all.

Driven by these thoughts, he broke the long silence that had lingered between him and his father. He talked about the value and importance of this location; couldn't the Baron send out his men to set up a new property there? There was nothing stopping him. The forest was open to everyone, as long as they provided proper service to the Prince. Could a house or castle built there be the start of a city? The Baron listened and then said he needed to go check that a new hatch was installed in the brook to water the meadow. That was all.

Felix next wrote an anonymous letter to the Prince pointing out the value of the place. The Prince should seize it, and add to his power. He knew that the letter was delivered, but there was no sign. It had indeed, been read and laughed at. Why make further efforts when they already had what they desired? One only, the deep and designing Valentine, gave it serious thought in secret. It seemed to him that something might come of it, another day, when he was himself in power—if that should happen. But he, too, forgot it in a week. Some secret effort was made to discover the writer, for the council were very jealous of political opinion, but it soon ended. The idea, not being supported by money or influence, fell into oblivion.

Felix then wrote an anonymous letter to the Prince, highlighting the importance of the location. The Prince should take control of it to increase his power. He knew the letter had been delivered, but there was no response. It had indeed been read and laughed off. Why bother trying again when they already had what they wanted? Only one person, the cunning and scheming Valentine, actually considered it seriously in private. He thought that something might come of it someday when he might be in power—if that ever happened. But even he forgot about it within a week. There was some secret effort to find out who wrote it, as the council was very sensitive to political views, but that quickly fizzled out. The idea, lacking financial backing or influence, faded into obscurity.

Felix worked on, chipping out the canoe. The days passed, and the boat was nearly finished. In a day or two now it would be launched, and soon afterwards he should commence his voyage. He should see Aurora once more only. He should see her, but he should not say farewell; she would not know that he was going till he had actually departed. As he thought thus a dimness came before his eyes; his hand trembled, and he could not work. He put down the chisel, and paused to steady himself.

Felix continued working on the canoe, chipping it out bit by bit. Days went by, and the boat was almost done. In a day or two, it would be launched, and shortly after that, he would begin his voyage. He would only see Aurora one more time. He would see her, but he wouldn’t say goodbye; she wouldn’t know he was leaving until he was already gone. As he thought about this, his vision blurred; his hand shook, and he couldn’t keep working. He set down the chisel and took a moment to collect himself.

Upon the other side of the stream, somewhat lower down, a yellow wood-dog had been lapping the water to quench its thirst, watching the man the while. So long as Felix was intent upon his work, the wild animal had no fear; the moment he looked up, the creature sprang back into the underwood. A dove was cooing in the forest not far distant, but as he was about to resume work the cooing ceased. Then a wood-pigeon rose from the ashes with a loud clapping of wings. Felix listened. His hunter instinct told him that something was moving there. A rustling of the bushes followed, and he took his spear which had been leant against the adjacent tree. But, peering into the wood, in a moment he recognised Oliver, who, having walked off his rage, was returning.

On the other side of the stream, a bit further down, a yellow wood-dog was drinking water to quench its thirst, keeping an eye on the man. As long as Felix focused on his work, the wild animal felt safe; but the moment he glanced up, the creature jumped back into the bushes. In the nearby forest, a dove was cooing, but just as he was about to get back to work, the cooing stopped. Then, a wood-pigeon flew up from the ashes with a loud flap of its wings. Felix listened closely. His instinct as a hunter told him that something was moving nearby. He heard some rustling in the bushes and grabbed his spear, which had been leaning against a nearby tree. But, when he looked into the woods, he soon recognized Oliver, who was returning after taking a walk to calm down.

"I though it might have been a Bushman," said Felix, replacing his spear; "only they are noiseless."

"I thought it might have been a Bushman," said Felix, putting his spear away; "but they are silent."

"Any of them might have cut me down," said Oliver; "for I forgot my weapon. It is nearly noon; are you coming home to dinner?"

"Any of them could have taken me out," said Oliver; "because I forgot my weapon. It's almost noon; are you coming home for lunch?"

"Yes; I must bring my tools."

"Yeah; I need to grab my tools."

He put them in the basket, and together they returned to the rope ladder. As they passed the Pen by the river they caught sight of the Baron in the adjacent gardens, which were irrigated by his contrivances from the stream, and went towards him. A retainer held two horses, one gaily caparisoned, outside the garden; his master was talking with Sir Constans.

He put them in the basket, and together they went back to the rope ladder. As they passed the pen by the river, they spotted the Baron in the nearby gardens, which were watered by his devices from the stream, and they walked toward him. A servant was holding two horses, one of which was brightly decorated, outside the garden; his master was talking with Sir Constans.

"It is Lord John," said Oliver. They approached slowly under the fruit-trees, not to intrude. Sir Constans was showing the courtier an early cherry-tree, whose fruit was already set. The dry hot weather had caused it to set even earlier than usual. A suit of black velvet, an extremely expensive and almost unprocurable material, brought the courtier's pale features into relief. It was only by the very oldest families that any velvet or satin or similar materials were still preserved; if these were in pecuniary difficulties they might sell some part of their store, but such things were not to be got for money in the ordinary way.

"It’s Lord John," Oliver said. They approached slowly under the fruit trees, trying not to intrude. Sir Constans was showing the courtier an early cherry tree, whose fruit was already developing. The hot, dry weather had caused it to set even earlier than usual. A black velvet outfit, an incredibly expensive and nearly impossible to find material, highlighted the courtier's pale features. Only the very oldest families still had any velvet or satin, or similar materials; if they were facing financial difficulties, they might sell some of their stash, but such things couldn’t just be bought with money in the usual way.

Two small silver bars across his left shoulder showed that he was a lord-in-waiting. He was a handsome man, with clear-cut features, somewhat rakish from late hours and dissipation, but not the less interesting on that account. But his natural advantages were so over-run with the affectation of the Court that you did not see the man at all, being absorbed by the studied gesture to display the jewelled ring, and the peculiarly low tone of voice in which it was the fashion to speak.

Two small silver bars across his left shoulder indicated that he was a lord-in-waiting. He was a handsome man with distinct features, a bit disheveled from late nights and indulgence, but that made him even more intriguing. However, his natural charm was overshadowed by the pretentiousness of the Court, making it hard to see the man himself, as you were distracted by the deliberate gesture to showcase the jeweled ring and the unusually hushed tone that was fashionable to speak in.

Beside the old warrior he looked a mere stripling. The Baron's arm was bare, his sleeve rolled up; and as he pointed to the tree above, the muscles, as the limb moved, displayed themselves in knots, at which the courtier himself could not refrain from glancing. Those mighty arms, had they clasped him about the waist, could have crushed his bending ribs. The heaviest blow that he could have struck upon that broad chest would have produced no more effect than a hollow sound; it would not even have shaken that powerful frame.

Beside the old warrior, he looked like just a kid. The Baron's arm was exposed, his sleeve rolled up; and as he pointed to the tree above, the muscles flexed in knots that even the courtier couldn't help but notice. Those powerful arms, if they wrapped around his waist, could have easily crushed his ribs. Even the hardest hit he could land on that broad chest would have made no more noise than a thud; it wouldn’t have even shaken that strong body.

He felt the steel blue eye, bright as the sky of midsummer, glance into his very mind. The high forehead bare, for the Baron had his hat in his hand, mocked at him in its humility. The Baron bared his head in honour of the courtier's office and the Prince who had sent him. The beard, though streaked with white, spoke little of age; it rather indicated an abundant, a luxuriant vitality.

He felt the steel blue eye, bright as a midsummer sky, look right into his mind. The high forehead was exposed, as the Baron held his hat in his hand, making a mockery of humility. The Baron took off his hat to honor the courtier's position and the Prince who had sent him. The beard, though streaked with white, didn't convey much about age; instead, it suggested a rich and vibrant vitality.

Lord John was not at ease. He shifted from foot to foot, and occasionally puffed a large cigar of Devon tobacco. His errand was simple enough. Some of the ladies at the Court had a fancy for fruit, especially strawberries, but there were none in the market, nor to be obtained from the gardens about the town. It was recollected that Sir Constans was famous for his gardens, and the Prince despatched Lord John to Old House with a gracious message and request for a basket of strawberries. Sir Constans was much pleased; but he regretted that the hot, dry weather had not permitted the fruit to come to any size or perfection. Still there were some.

Lord John was restless. He shifted his weight from one foot to the other and occasionally puffed on a large cigar made of Devon tobacco. His task was pretty straightforward. Some of the ladies at Court had a craving for fruit, especially strawberries, but there were none available in the market or from the nearby gardens. It was remembered that Sir Constans was known for his gardens, so the Prince sent Lord John to Old House with a friendly message and a request for a basket of strawberries. Sir Constans was happy to help but regretted that the hot, dry weather had prevented the fruit from growing to a decent size or quality. Still, there were a few.

The courtier accompanied him to the gardens, and saw the water-wheel which, turned by a horse, forced water from the stream into a small pond or elevated reservoir, from which it irrigated the ground. This supply of water had brought on the fruit, and Sir Constans was able to gather a small basket. He then looked round to see what other early product he could send to the palace. There was no other fruit; the cherries, though set, were not ripe; but there was some asparagus, which had not yet been served, said Lord John, at the Prince's table.

The courtier went with him to the gardens and saw the waterwheel that, powered by a horse, pumped water from the stream into a small pond or elevated reservoir, from which it watered the ground. This water supply had helped the fruit grow, and Sir Constans was able to collect a small basket. He then looked around to see what other early produce he could send to the palace. There wasn’t any other fruit; the cherries, although formed, weren’t ripe yet; but there was some asparagus that hadn’t been served, Lord John said, at the Prince's table.

Sir Constans set men to hastily collect all that was ready, and while this was done took the courtier over the gardens. Lord John felt no interest whatever in such matters, but he could not choose but admire the extraordinary fertility of the enclosure, and the variety of the products. There was everything; fruit of all kinds, herbs of every species, plots specially devoted to those possessing medicinal virtue. This was only one part of the gardens; the orchards proper were farther down, and the flowers nearer the house. Sir Constans had sent a man to the flower-garden, who now returned with two fine bouquets, which were presented to Lord John: the one for the Princess, the Prince's sister; the other for any lady to whom he might choose to present it.

Sir Constans had his men quickly gather everything that was ready, and while they worked, he showed the courtier around the gardens. Lord John wasn’t particularly interested in such matters, but he couldn’t help but admire the incredible fertility of the area and the variety of its products. There was everything: fruits of all kinds, herbs of every type, and sections dedicated to plants with medicinal properties. This was just part of the gardens; the actual orchards were further down, and the flowers were closer to the house. Sir Constans had sent someone to the flower garden, and he returned with two beautiful bouquets, which were presented to Lord John: one for the Princess, the Prince's sister, and the other for any lady he might wish to give it to.

The fruit had already been handed to the retainer who had charge of the horses. Though interested, in spite of himself, Lord John, acknowledging the flowers, turned to go with a sense of relief. This simplicity of manners seemed discordant to him. He felt out of place, and in some way lowered in his own esteem, and yet he despised the rural retirement and beauty about him.

The fruit had already been given to the servant in charge of the horses. Despite his interest, Lord John, acknowledging the flowers, turned to leave with a sense of relief. This simplicity in behavior felt out of place to him. He felt awkward and somehow diminished in his own opinion, yet he looked down on the countryside's quiet life and beauty surrounding him.

Felix and Oliver, a few yards distant, were waiting with rising tempers. The spectacle of the Baron in his native might of physique, humbly standing, hat in hand, before this Court messenger, discoursing on cherries, and offering flowers and fruit, filled them with anger and disgust. The affected gesture and subdued voice of the courtier, on the other hand, roused an equal contempt.

Felix and Oliver, a few yards away, were waiting with growing frustration. Watching the Baron in all his physical glory, standing humbly with his hat in hand in front of the court messenger, talking about cherries, and offering flowers and fruit, filled them with anger and disgust. The courtier's pretentious gestures and quiet tone, on the other hand, sparked an equal sense of contempt.

As Lord John turned, he saw them. He did not quite guess their relationship, but supposed they were cadets of the house, it being customary for those in any way connected to serve the head of the family. He noted the flag basket in Felix's hand, and naturally imagined that he had been at work.

As Lord John turned, he saw them. He didn't fully understand their connection, but assumed they were cadets of the house, as it was common for those related to serve the head of the family. He noticed the flag basket in Felix's hand and naturally thought that he had been working.

"You have been to-to plough, eh?" he said, intending to be very gracious and condescending. "Very healthy employment. The land requires some rain, does it not? Still I trust it will not rain till I am home, for my plume's sake," tossing his head. "Allow me," and as he passed he offered Oliver a couple of cigars. "One each," he added; "the best Devon."

"You’ve been out to plow, huh?" he said, trying to sound very friendly and a bit patronizing. "It’s great exercise. The land could use some rain, right? Still, I hope it doesn’t rain until I’m home, for the sake of my feather," tossing his head. "Here, let me," and as he walked by, he offered Oliver a couple of cigars. "One for each of us," he added; "the best from Devon."

Oliver took the cigars mechanically, holding them as if they had been vipers, at arm's length, till the courtier had left the garden, and the hedge interposed. Then he threw them into the water-carrier. The best tobacco, indeed the only real tobacco, came from the warm Devon land, but little of it reached so far, on account of the distance, the difficulties of intercourse, the rare occasions on which the merchant succeeded in escaping the vexatious interference, the downright robbery of the way. Intercourse was often entirely closed by war.

Oliver took the cigars awkwardly, holding them at arm's length as if they were snakes, until the courtier had left the garden and a hedge blocked the view. Then he tossed them into the water-carrier. The best tobacco—actually the only real tobacco—came from the warm lands of Devon, but very little made it this far due to the distance, the challenges of trade, the rare times when the merchant could avoid the frustrating interference, and the outright theft along the way. Trade was often completely cut off by war.

These cigars, therefore, were worth their weight in silver, and such tobacco could be obtained only by those about the Court, as a matter of favour, too, rather than by purchase. Lord John would, indeed, have stared aghast had he seen the rustic to whom he had given so valuable a present cast them into a ditch. He rode towards the Maple Gate, excusing his haste volubly to Sir Constans, who was on foot, and walked beside him a little way, pressing him to take some refreshment.

These cigars were definitely worth their weight in silver, and you could only get that kind of tobacco if you were connected to the Court, usually as a favor rather than by buying it. Lord John would have been shocked if he had seen the country guy he had given such a valuable gift to throw them in a ditch. He rode toward the Maple Gate, quickly explaining his rush to Sir Constans, who was walking next to him for a bit, urging him to grab something to eat.

His sons overtook the Baron as he walked towards home, and walked by his side in silence. Sir Constans was full of his fruit.

His sons caught up with the Baron as he headed home and walked alongside him in silence. Sir Constans was loaded with his fruit.

"The wall cherry," said he, "will soon have a few ripe."

"The wall cherry," he said, "will soon have a few ripe ones."

Oliver swore a deep but soundless oath in his chest. Sir Constans continued talking about his fruit and flowers, entirely oblivious of the silent anger of the pair beside him. As they approached the house, the warder blew his horn thrice for noon. It was also the signal for dinner.

Oliver silently swore an intense oath in his heart. Sir Constans kept talking about his fruits and flowers, completely unaware of the quiet anger of the two beside him. As they got closer to the house, the guard blew his horn three times for noon. It was also the signal for dinner.


CHAPTER VI
THE FOREST TRACK


When the canoe was finished, Oliver came to help Felix launch it, and they rolled it on logs down to the place where the stream formed a pool. But when it was afloat, as Oliver had foretold, it did not swim upright in the water. It had not been shaped accurately, and one side was higher out of the water than the other.

When the canoe was done, Oliver came to help Felix launch it, and they rolled it on logs to the spot where the stream created a pool. But when it was in the water, just as Oliver had predicted, it didn’t float upright. It hadn’t been shaped correctly, and one side was sticking up higher than the other.

Felix was so disgusted at this failure that he would not listen to anything Oliver could suggest. He walked back to the spot where he had worked so many weeks, and sat down with his face turned from the pool. It was not so much the actual circumstance which depressed him, as the long train of untoward incidents which had preceded it for years past. These seemed to have accumulated, till now this comparatively little annoyance was like the last straw.

Felix was so upset by this failure that he wouldn't listen to anything Oliver had to say. He walked back to the place where he had worked for so many weeks and sat down with his back to the pool. It wasn’t just the situation itself that got him down, but the long series of unfortunate events that had built up over the years. They seemed to pile up until this relatively small annoyance felt like the last straw.

Oliver followed him, and said that the defect could be remedied by placing ballast on the more buoyant side of the canoe to bring it down to the level of the other; or, perhaps, if some more wood were cut away on the heavier side, that it would cause it to rise. He offered to do the work himself, but Felix, in his gloomy mood, would not answer him. Oliver returned to the pool, and getting into the canoe, poled it up and down the stream. It answered perfectly, and could be easily managed; the defect was more apparent than real, for when a person sat in the canoe, his weight seemed to bring it nearly level.

Oliver followed him and suggested that the problem could be fixed by adding weight to the lighter side of the canoe to balance it, or maybe by removing some wood from the heavier side to make it rise. He offered to do the work himself, but Felix, in his downcast mood, didn’t respond. Oliver went back to the pool, got into the canoe, and paddled it up and down the stream. It performed perfectly and was easy to handle; the issue was more noticeable than actual, since when a person sat in the canoe, their weight seemed to level it out.

It was only when empty that it canted to one side. He came back again to Felix, and pointed this out to him. The attempt was useless; the boat might answer the purpose perfectly well, but it was not the boat Felix had intended it to be. It did not come up to his ideal.

It was only when empty that it tilted to one side. He returned to Felix and pointed this out to him. The effort was pointless; the boat might serve its function perfectly, but it wasn't the boat Felix had envisioned. It didn't live up to his ideal.

Oliver was now somewhat annoyed at Felix's sullen silence, so he drew the canoe partly on shore, to prevent it from floating away, and then left him to himself.

Oliver was a bit annoyed by Felix's sulky silence, so he pulled the canoe partway onto the shore to keep it from drifting away, and then he left him alone.

Nothing more was said about it for a day or two. Felix did not go near the spot where he had worked so hard and so long, but on the Saturday Philip came home as usual, and, as there was now no secret about the canoe, went down to look at it with Oliver. They pushed it off, and floated two or three miles down the stream, hauling it on the shore past the fallen fir tree, and then, with a cord, towed it back again. The canoe, with the exception of the trifling deficiency alluded to, was a good one, and thoroughly serviceable.

Nothing more was said about it for a day or two. Felix stayed away from the spot where he had worked so hard for so long, but on Saturday, Philip came home as usual. Since there was no longer a secret about the canoe, he went down to check it out with Oliver. They pushed it off and floated two or three miles down the stream, dragging it onto the shore past the fallen fir tree, and then towed it back with a rope. The canoe, apart from the minor issue mentioned, was in good shape and completely usable.

They endeavoured again to restore Felix's opinion of it, and an idea occurring to Philip, he said a capital plan would be to add an outrigger, and so balance it perfectly. But though usually quick to adopt ideas when they were good, in this case Felix was too much out of conceit with himself. He would listen to nothing. Still, he could not banish it from his mind, though now ashamed to return to it after so obstinately refusing all suggestions. He wandered aimlessly about in the woods, till one day he found himself in the path that led to Heron Bay.

They tried again to change Felix's opinion about it, and Philip had a great idea: they could add an outrigger to balance it perfectly. But even though Felix usually picked up good ideas quickly, he was too disappointed in himself this time. He wouldn't listen to anything. Still, he couldn't get the thought out of his head, but he felt too embarrassed to revisit it after stubbornly rejecting all suggestions. He drifted aimlessly through the woods until one day he ended up on the path that led to Heron Bay.

Strolling to the shore of the great Lake, he sat down and watched a vessel sailing afar off slowly before the east wind. The thought presently occurred to him, that the addition of an outrigger in the manner Philip had mentioned would enable him to carry a sail. The canoe could not otherwise support a sail (unless a very small one merely for going before the breeze), but with such a sail as the outrigger would bear, he could venture much farther away from land, his voyage might be much more extended, and his labour with the paddle lessened.

Strolling to the shore of the great lake, he sat down and watched a boat slowly sailing off in the distance, pushed by the east wind. It occurred to him that adding an outrigger like Philip had suggested would allow him to carry a sail. The canoe couldn't support a sail otherwise (unless it was a very small one just for going with the wind), but with a sail supported by the outrigger, he could travel much farther from land, extend his journey, and reduce his effort with the paddle.

This filled him with fresh energy; he returned, and at once recommenced work. Oliver, finding that he was again busy at it, came and insisted upon assisting. With his help, the work progressed rapidly. He used the tools so deftly as to accomplish more in an hour than Felix could in a day. The outrigger consisted of a beam of poplar, sharpened at both ends, and held at some six or seven feet from the canoe by two strong cross-pieces.

This gave him a burst of new energy; he came back and immediately got back to work. Oliver, seeing that he was busy again, came over and insisted on helping. With his assistance, the work moved along quickly. He handled the tools so skillfully that he achieved more in an hour than Felix could in a day. The outrigger was made from a poplar beam, sharpened at both ends, and secured about six or seven feet from the canoe by two sturdy cross-pieces.

A mast, about the same height as the canoe was long, was then set up; it was made from a young fir-tree. Another smaller fir supplied the yard, which extended fore and aft, nearly the length of the boat. The sail, of coarse canvas, was not very high, but long, and rather broader at each end where the rope attached it to the prow and stern, or, rather, the two prows. Thus arranged, it was not so well suited for running straight before the wind, as for working into it, a feat never attempted by the ships of the time.

A mast, about the same height as the canoe was long, was then set up; it was made from a young fir tree. A smaller fir provided the yard, which stretched fore and aft, nearly the length of the boat. The sail, made of coarse canvas, wasn't very tall but was long and wider at each end where the rope connected it to the front and back, or rather, the two fronts. With this setup, it wasn’t really meant for going straight into the wind, but for sailing against it, something that ships at the time had never tried.

Oliver was delighted with the appearance of the boat, so much so that now and then he announced his intention of accompanying Felix on his voyage. But after a visit to the town, and a glance at the Princess Lucia, his resolution changed. Yet he wavered, one time openly reproaching himself for enduring such a life of inaction and ignominy, and at another deriding Felix and his visionary schemes. The canoe was now completed; it was tried on the pool and found to float exactly as it should. It had now to be conveyed to Heron Bay.

Oliver was thrilled with how the boat looked, so much so that he occasionally mentioned wanting to join Felix on his trip. But after visiting the town and seeing Princess Lucia, he changed his mind. Still, he hesitated, sometimes openly criticizing himself for putting up with such a dull and shameful life, and at other times mocking Felix and his dreamy plans. The canoe was finally finished; it was tested in the pool and floated perfectly. Now it had to be taken to Heron Bay.

The original intention was to put it on a cart, but the rude carts used on the estate could not very well carry it, and a sledge was substituted. Several times, during the journey through the forest, the sledge had to be halted while the underwood was cut away to permit of its passing; and once a slough had to be filled up with branches hewn from fir trees, and bundles of fern. These delays made it evening before the shore of the creek was reached.

The initial plan was to put it on a cart, but the rough carts used on the estate weren't really able to carry it, so a sledge was used instead. Several times during the trip through the forest, they had to stop the sledge to clear away brush to let it pass; once, they even had to fill in a muddy spot with branches cut from fir trees and bundles of ferns. These delays meant it was evening by the time they reached the creek's shore.

It was but a little inlet, scarce a bowshot wide at the entrance and coming to a point inland. Here the canoe was left in charge of three serfs, who were ordered to build a hut and stay beside it. Some provisions were sent next day on the backs of other serfs, and in the afternoon (it was Saturday) all three brothers arrived; the canoe was launched, and they started for a trial sail. With a south wind they ran to the eastward at a rapid pace, keeping close to the shore till within a mile of White Horse.

It was just a small inlet, hardly a bowshot wide at the entrance and extending a bit inland. Here, the canoe was left with three serfs who were told to build a hut and stay by it. Some supplies were sent the next day on the backs of other serfs, and in the afternoon (it was Saturday), all three brothers arrived; the canoe was launched, and they set out for a trial sail. With a south wind, they headed eastward quickly, staying close to the shore until they were within a mile of White Horse.

There they brought to by steering the canoe dead against the wind; then transferring the steering-paddle (a rather large one, made for the purpose) to the other end, and readjusting the sail, the outrigger being still to leeward, they ran back at an equal speed. The canoe answered perfectly, and Felix was satisfied. He now despatched his tools and various weapons to the hut to be put on board. His own peculiar yew bow he kept to the last at home; it and his chest bound with hide would go with him on the last day.

There they managed to navigate the canoe straight into the wind; then they switched the steering paddle (a pretty big one designed for this purpose) to the other end and adjusted the sail, while the outrigger remained downwind. They then glided back at the same speed. The canoe responded perfectly, and Felix was pleased. He now sent his tools and various weapons to the hut to be loaded onto the canoe. He kept his special yew bow at home until the very end; it, along with his chest bound with hide, would go with him on the final day.

Although, in his original purpose, Felix had designed to go forth without anyone being aware of his intention, the circumstances which had arisen, and the necessary employment of so many men, had let out the secret to some degree. The removal of the tools and weapons, the crossbow, darts, and spear, still more attracted attention. But little or nothing was said about it, though the Baron and Baroness could not help but observe these preparations. The Baron deliberately shut his eyes and went about his gardening; he was now, too, busy with the first mowing. In his heart, perhaps, he felt that he had not done altogether right in so entirely retiring from the world.

Although Felix originally planned to leave without anyone knowing, the circumstances that arose and the need for so many people tipped off some of his secret. The removal of tools and weapons, like the crossbow, darts, and spear, drew even more attention. However, not much was said about it, even though the Baron and Baroness noticed these preparations. The Baron pretended not to see and focused on his gardening; he was also busy with the first mowing. Deep down, he might have felt he hadn’t completely done the right thing by withdrawing so fully from the world.

By doing so he had condemned his children to loneliness, and to be regarded with contempt. Too late now, he could only obstinately persist in his course. The Baroness, inured for so many, many years to disappointment, had contracted her view of life till it scarcely extended beyond mere physical comfort. Nor could she realize the idea of Felix's approaching departure; when he was actually gone, it would, perhaps, come home to her.

By doing this he had sentenced his children to loneliness and to being looked down upon. Now it was too late; he could only stubbornly continue on his path. The Baroness, having faced disappointment for so many years, had narrowed her outlook on life to the point where it barely stretched beyond basic physical comfort. She couldn’t even grasp the idea of Felix's upcoming departure; it might only hit her when he was actually gone.

All was now ready, and Felix was only waiting for the Feast of St. James to pay a last visit to Aurora at Thyma Castle. The morning before the day of the Feast, Felix and Oliver set out together. They had not lived altogether in harmony, but now, at this approaching change, Oliver felt that he must bear Felix company. Oliver rode his beautiful Night, he wore his plumed hat and precious sword, and carried his horseman's lance. Felix rode a smaller horse, useful, but far from handsome. He carried his yew bow and hunting knife.

All was now set, and Felix was just waiting for the Feast of St. James to pay one last visit to Aurora at Thyma Castle. The morning before the feast, Felix and Oliver headed out together. They hadn't always gotten along, but as this change approached, Oliver felt he needed to keep Felix company. Oliver rode his beautiful horse, Night, wore his feathered hat and prized sword, and carried his lance. Felix rode a smaller, practical horse that wasn't much to look at. He had his yew bow and hunting knife with him.

Thyma Castle was situated fifteen miles to the south; it was the last outpost of civilization; beyond it there was nothing but forest, and the wild open plains, the home of the gipsies. This circumstance of position had given Baron Thyma, in times past, a certain importance more than was due to the size of his estate or the number of his retainers. During an invasion of the gipsies, his castle bore the brunt of the war, and its gallant defence, indeed, broke their onward progress. So many fell in endeavouring to take it, that the rest were disheartened, and only scattered bands penetrated beyond.

Thyma Castle was located fifteen miles to the south; it was the last outpost of civilization. Beyond it lay nothing but forests and the open plains, home to the gypsies. This geographical position had given Baron Thyma, in the past, a certain level of importance that exceeded what was warranted by the size of his estate or the number of his followers. During a gypsy invasion, his castle took the brunt of the attack, and its brave defense ultimately halted their advance. So many fell while trying to capture it that the remainder became disheartened, and only scattered groups managed to push beyond.

For this service the Baron received the grant of various privileges; he was looked on as a pillar of the State, and was welcome at the court. But it proved an injury to him in the end. His honours, and the high society they led him into, were too great for the comparative smallness of his income. Rich in flocks and herds, he had but little coin. High-spirited, and rather fond of display, he could not hold back; he launched forth, with the usual result of impoverishment, mortgage, and debt.

For this service, the Baron was granted various privileges; he was seen as a key figure in the State and was welcomed at the court. However, this eventually harmed him. His honors and the high society they introduced him to were too much for the relatively small size of his income. While he had plenty of livestock, he had very little cash. Proud and somewhat fond of showing off, he couldn’t resist; he went all out, resulting in impoverishment, mortgages, and debt.

He had hoped to obtain the command of an army in the wars that broke out from time to time; it was, indeed, universally admitted that he was in every respect qualified for such a post. The courtiers and others, however, jealous, as is ever the case, of ability and real talent, debarred him by their intrigues from attaining his object. Pride prevented him from acquiescing in this defeat; he strove by display and extravagance to keep himself well to the front, flaunting himself before the eyes of all. This course could not last long; he was obliged to retire to his estate, which narrowly escaped forfeiture to his creditors.

He hoped to secure command of an army during the frequent wars; it was widely recognized that he was fully qualified for such a position. However, the courtiers and others, as is often the case, were jealous of his ability and genuine talent, and used their schemes to block him from achieving his goal. His pride wouldn't let him accept this setback; he tried to stay prominent through showiness and extravagance, putting himself in the spotlight. This approach couldn’t last long; he was forced to retreat to his estate, which barely avoided being taken by his creditors.

So ignominious an end after such worthy service was, however, prevented by the personal interference of the old Prince, who, from his private resources, paid off the most pressing creditors. To the last, the old Prince received him as a friend, and listened to his counsel. Thyma was ever in hopes that some change in the balance of parties would give him his opportunity. When the young Prince succeeded, he was clever enough to see that the presence of such men about his Court gave it a stability, and he, too, invited Thyma to tender his advice. The Baron's hopes now rose higher than ever, but again he was disappointed.

Such a humiliating end after such honorable service was, however, prevented by the old Prince's personal intervention, who used his own resources to pay off the most urgent creditors. Until the end, the old Prince treated him as a friend and listened to his advice. Thyma held onto the hope that a shift in the balance of power would give him his chance. When the young Prince took over, he was smart enough to realize that having such individuals in his Court brought stability, and he, too, invited Thyma to offer his counsel. The Baron's hopes then soared higher than ever, but once again he was let down.

The new Prince, himself incapable, disliked and distrusted talent. The years passed, and the Baron obtained no appointment. Still he strained his resources to the utmost to visit the Court as often as possible; still he believed that sooner or later a turn of the wheel would elevate him.

The new Prince, who was himself incompetent, disliked and distrusted talent. Years went by, and the Baron never got an appointment. Yet he pushed himself to visit the Court as often as he could; he still believed that eventually fortune would favor him.

There had existed between the houses of Thyma and Aquila the bond of hearth-friendship; the gauntlets, hoofs, and rings were preserved by both, and the usual presents passed thrice a year, at midsummer, Christmas, and Lady-day. Not much personal intercourse had taken place, however, for some years, until Felix was attracted by the beauty of the Lady Aurora. Proud, showy, and pushing, Thyma could not understand the feelings which led his hearth-friend to retire from the arena and busy himself with cherries and water-wheels. On the other hand, Constans rather looked with quiet derision on the ostentation of the other. Thus there was a certain distance, as it were, between them.

There had been a friendship between the houses of Thyma and Aquila, marked by the exchange of gifts and symbols like gauntlets, hoofs, and rings. They normally exchanged these gifts three times a year—at midsummer, Christmas, and Lady Day. However, there hadn’t been much personal interaction for several years until Felix fell for the beauty of Lady Aurora. Thyma, who was proud, flashy, and aggressive, couldn't understand why his friend would step back from the spotlight to focus on simple things like cherries and water-wheels. On the other hand, Constans viewed Thyma's flamboyance with quiet disdain. So, there was a kind of distance between them.

Baron Thyma could not, of course, be ignorant of the attachment between his daughter and Felix; yet as much as possible he ignored it. He never referred to Felix; if his name was incidentally mentioned, he remained silent. The truth was, he looked higher for Lady Aurora. He could not in courtesy discourage even in the faintest manner the visits of his friend's son; the knightly laws of honour would have forbidden so mean a course. Nor would his conscience permit him to do so, remembering the old days when he and the Baron were glad companions together, and how the Baron Aquila was the first to lead troops to his assistance in the gipsy war. Still, he tacitly disapproved; he did not encourage.

Baron Thyma obviously couldn’t be unaware of the bond between his daughter and Felix, yet he did his best to ignore it. He never mentioned Felix; if his name came up, he stayed quiet. The truth was, he hoped for better prospects for Lady Aurora. Out of courtesy, he couldn’t discourage his friend’s son, as the knightly code of honor would have condemned such a petty action. Nor could his conscience allow him to do so, remembering the good times when he and the Baron were happy companions, and how Baron Aquila was the first to send troops to help him during the gypsy war. Still, he silently disapproved; he didn’t encourage it.

Felix felt that he was not altogether welcome; he recognised the sense of restraint that prevailed when he was present. It deeply hurt his pride, and nothing but his love for Aurora could have enabled him to bear up against it. The galling part of it was that he could not in his secret heart condemn the father for evidently desiring a better alliance for his child. This was the strongest of the motives that had determined him to seek the unknown.

Felix felt that he wasn't completely welcome; he noticed the tension in the air when he was around. It really hurt his pride, and only his love for Aurora helped him cope with it. What stung the most was that he couldn't secretly blame her father for wanting a better match for his daughter. This was the biggest reason that drove him to pursue the unknown.

If anything, the Baron would have preferred Oliver as a suitor for his daughter; he sympathized with Oliver's fiery spirit, and admired his feats of strength and dexterity with sword and spear. He had always welcomed Oliver heartily, and paid him every attention. This, to do Oliver justice, was one reason why he determined to accompany his brother, thinking that if he was there he could occupy attention, and thus enable Felix to have more opportunity to speak with Aurora.

If anything, the Baron would have preferred Oliver as a suitor for his daughter; he sympathized with Oliver's passionate nature and admired his skills and strength with a sword and spear. He had always welcomed Oliver warmly and gave him plenty of attention. To be fair to Oliver, this was one reason he decided to join his brother, believing that if he was present, he could draw attention to himself, allowing Felix more chances to talk to Aurora.

The two rode forth from the courtyard early in the morning, and passing through the whole length of the enclosure within the stockade, issued at the South Barrier and almost immediately entered the forest. They rather checked their horses' haste, fresh as the animals were from the stable, but could not quite control their spirits, for the walk of a horse is even half as fast again while he is full of vigour. The turn of the track soon shut out the stockade; they were alone in the woods.

The two headed out from the courtyard early in the morning, riding through the entire length of the enclosure within the stockade before they exited at the South Barrier and quickly entered the forest. They tried to slow their horses a bit, as the animals were fresh from the stable, but they couldn't completely rein in their energy, since a horse's walk is about one and a half times quicker when it's full of vigor. The bend in the path soon blocked the view of the stockade; they were alone in the woods.

Long since, early as they were, the sun had dried the dew, for his beams warm the atmosphere quickly as the spring advances towards summer. But it was still fresh and sweet among the trees, and even Felix, though bound on so gloomy an errand, could not choose but feel the joyous influence of the morning. Oliver sang aloud in his rich deep voice, and the thud, thud of the horses' hoofs kept time to the ballad.

Long ago, even though it was early, the sun had dried the dew because its rays quickly warm the air as spring moves toward summer. But it was still fresh and sweet among the trees, and even Felix, despite being on such a dark mission, couldn't help but feel the cheerful vibe of the morning. Oliver sang loudly in his rich, deep voice, and the thud, thud of the horses' hooves matched the rhythm of the song.

The thrushes flew but a little way back from the path as they passed, and began to sing again directly they were by. The whistling of blackbirds came from afar where there were open glades or a running stream; the notes of the cuckoo became fainter and fainter as they advanced farther from the stockade, for the cuckoo likes the woodlands that immediately border on cultivation. For some miles the track was broad, passing through thickets of thorn and low hawthorn-trees with immense masses of tangled underwood between, brambles and woodbine twisted and matted together, impervious above but hollow beneath; under these they could hear the bush-hens running to and fro and scratching at the dead leaves which strewed the ground. Sounds of clucking deeper in betrayed the situation of their nests.

The thrushes flew just a short distance back from the path as they went by, and started singing again right after they passed. The whistling of blackbirds came from far away where there were open clearings or a flowing stream; the cuckoo's calls became softer and softer as they moved farther from the stockade, since the cuckoo prefers the woodlands that are right next to cultivated land. For several miles, the path was wide, winding through thickets of thorns and low hawthorn trees with huge tangles of underbrush in between, brambles and honeysuckle twisted and matted together, impenetrable on top but hollow underneath; under these, they could hear the bush-hens scurrying around and scratching at the dead leaves covering the ground. Sounds of clucking deeper in revealed the location of their nests.

Rushes, and the dead sedges of last year, up through which the green fresh leaves were thrusting themselves, in some places stood beside the way, fringing the thorns where the hollow ground often held the water from rainstorms. Out from these bushes a rabbit occasionally started and bounded across to the other side. Here, where there were so few trees, and the forest chiefly consisted of bush, they could see some distance on either hand, and also a wide breadth of the sky. After a time the thorn bushes were succeeded by ash wood, where the trees stood closer to the path, contracting the view; it was moister here, the hoofs cut into the grass, which was coarse and rank. The trees growing so close together destroyed themselves, their lower branches rubbed together and were killed, so that in many spots the riders could see a long way between the trunks.

Rushes and last year's dead sedges pushed up through which the fresh green leaves were emerging stood along the way in some places, lining the thorns where the low ground often collected water from rainstorms. Occasionally, a rabbit would dart out from these bushes and hop across to the other side. Here, where there were so few trees and the forest mainly consisted of bushes, they could see quite a distance on either side, as well as a broad stretch of sky. After a while, the thorn bushes gave way to ash trees, where the trunks were closer to the path, narrowing the view; it was wetter here, and the hooves sank into the coarse, rank grass. The trees growing in such close proximity harmed themselves, with their lower branches rubbing against each other and dying off, so that in many areas, the riders could see far between the trunks.

Every time the wind blew they could hear a distant cracking of branches as the dead boughs, broken by the swaying of the trees, fell off and came down. Had any one attempted to walk into the forest there they would have sunk above the ankle in soft decaying wood, hidden from sight by thick vegetation. Wood-pigeons rose every minute from these ash-trees with a loud clatter of wings; their calls resounded continually, now deep in the forest, and now close at hand. It was evident that a large flock of them had their nesting-place here, and indeed their nests of twigs could be frequently seen from the path. There seemed no other birds.

Every time the wind blew, they could hear the distant cracking of branches as dead boughs, broken by the swaying trees, fell down. If anyone tried to walk into the forest there, they would sink above the ankle in soft, decaying wood, hidden from view by thick vegetation. Wood pigeons took off every minute from these ash trees with a loud flurry of wings; their calls echoed continuously, now deep in the forest, and now nearby. It was clear that a large flock had their nesting place here, and indeed, their twig nests could often be seen from the path. There didn't seem to be any other birds.

Again the forest changed, and the track, passing on higher ground, entered among firs. These, too, had killed each other by growing so thickly; the lower branches of many were dead, and there was nothing but a little green at the tops, while in many places there was an open space where they had decayed away altogether. Brambles covered the ground in these open places, brambles and furze now bright with golden blossom. The jays screeched loudly, startled as the riders passed under them, and fluttered away; rabbits, which they saw again here, dived into their burrows. Between the first the track was very narrow, and they could not conveniently ride side by side; Oliver took the lead, and Felix followed.

Again, the forest changed, and the path, climbing to higher ground, brought them among fir trees. These trees had also crowded each other out, as many of their lower branches were dead, leaving just a bit of green at the tops, while in several spots, there were clearings where they had completely decayed. Brambles covered the ground in these clearings, along with furze now bright with golden flowers. The jays screeched loudly, startled as the riders passed underneath, and fluttered away; rabbits, which they spotted again here, dove into their burrows. The path between the trees was very narrow, making it impossible to ride side by side; Oliver took the lead, and Felix followed.


CHAPTER VII
THE FOREST TRACK CONTINUED


Once as they trotted by a pheasant rose screaming from the furze and flew before them down the track. Just afterwards Felix, who had been previously looking very carefully into the firs upon his right hand, suddenly stopped, and Oliver, finding this, pulled up as quickly as he could, thinking that Felix wished to tighten his girth.

Once, as they trotted along, a pheasant suddenly took off screaming from the bushes and flew ahead down the path. Shortly after, Felix, who had been staring intently into the fir trees on his right, suddenly stopped, and Oliver, noticing this, pulled up as quickly as he could, thinking that Felix wanted to adjust his saddle.

"What is it?" he asked, turning round in his saddle.

"What is it?" he asked, turning around in his saddle.

"Hush!" said Felix, dismounting; his horse, trained to hunting, stood perfectly still, and would have remained within a few yards of the spot by the hour together. Oliver reined back, seeing Felix about to bend and string his bow.

"Hush!" said Felix, getting off his horse, which was trained for hunting and stayed perfectly still, ready to remain there for a while. Oliver pulled back on the reins, noticing Felix getting ready to bend and string his bow.

"Bushmen," whispered Felix, as he, having fitted the loop to the horn notch, drew forth an arrow from his girdle, where he carried two or three more ready to hand than in the quiver on his shoulder. "I thought I saw signs of them some time since, and now I am nearly sure. Stay here a moment."

"Bushmen," Felix whispered, as he fitted the loop to the horn notch and pulled an arrow from his belt, where he kept two or three more handy than in the quiver on his shoulder. "I thought I saw signs of them a while ago, and now I'm almost certain. Stay here for a moment."

He stepped aside from the track in among the firs, which just there were far apart, and went to a willow bush standing by some furze. He had noticed that one small branch on the outer part of the bush was snapped off, though green, and only hung by the bark. The wood cattle, had they browsed upon it, would have nibbled the tenderest leaves at the end of the bough; nor did they usually touch willow, for the shoots are bitter and astringent. Nor would the deer touch it in the spring, when they had so wide a choice of food.

He stepped off the path into the space between the fir trees, which were spread out there, and approached a willow bush near some gorse. He noticed that a small branch on the outer part of the bush was broken off, although it was still green, and was barely hanging on by the bark. The cattle, if they had grazed on it, would have nibbled the softest leaves at the tip of the branch; besides, they usually avoided willow since the shoots are bitter and astringent. The deer wouldn’t eat it in the spring either, when they had so many other food options available.

Nothing could have broken the branch in that manner unless it was the hand of a man, or a blow with a heavy stick wielded by a human hand. On coming to the bush he saw that the fracture was very recent, for the bough was perfectly green; it had not turned brown, and the bark was still soft with sap. It had not been cut with a knife or any sharp instrument; it had been broken by rude violence, and not divided. The next thing to catch his eye was the appearance of a larger branch farther inside the bush.

Nothing could have broken the branch like that unless it was a man's hand or a heavy stick swung by someone. When he reached the bush, he noticed that the break was very fresh; the branch was still perfectly green, not yet brown, and the bark was still soft and oozing sap. It hadn't been cut with a knife or any sharp tool; it had been snapped apart with brute force, not cleanly sliced. The next thing that caught his attention was a bigger branch deeper in the bush.

This was not broken, but a part of the bark was abraded, and even torn up from the wood as if by the impact of some hard substance, as a stone thrown with great force. He examined the ground, but there was no stone visible, and on again looking at the bark he concluded that it had not been done with a stone at all, because the abraded portion was not cut. The blow had been delivered by something without edges or projections. He had now no longer any doubt that the lesser branch outside had been broken, and the large inside branch bruised, by the passage of a Bushman's throw-club.

This wasn't broken, but part of the bark was scraped and even torn away from the wood as if it had been hit by something hard, like a stone thrown with great force. He looked at the ground, but there was no stone in sight, and when he looked again at the bark, he decided it hadn't been done by a stone at all, since the scraped area wasn't cut. The impact had come from something without edges or sharp points. He now had no doubt that the smaller branch outside had been broken, and the larger branch inside had been bruised, by the force of a Bushman's throwing club.

These, their only missile weapons, are usually made of crab-tree, and consist of a very thin short handle, with a large, heavy, and smooth knob. With these they can bring down small game, as rabbits or hares, or a fawn (even breaking the legs of deer), or the large birds, as the wood-turkeys. Stealing up noiselessly within ten yards, the Bushman throws his club with great force, and rarely misses his aim. If not killed at once, the game is certain to be stunned, and is much more easily secured than if wounded with an arrow, for with an arrow in its wing a large bird will flutter along the ground, and perhaps creep into sedges or under impenetrable bushes.

These, their only throwing weapons, are usually made of crabapple wood and consist of a very thin, short handle with a large, heavy, smooth knob. With these, they can take down small game, like rabbits or hares, or even a fawn (sometimes breaking the legs of deer), as well as large birds, like wood turkeys. Sneaking up silently within ten yards, the Bushman throws his club with great strength and rarely misses his target. If the game isn’t killed instantly, it’s sure to be stunned and much easier to catch than if it were injured by an arrow, since a large bird with an arrow in its wing will flutter along the ground and might crawl into reeds or underneath dense bushes.

Deprived of motion by the blow of the club, it can, on the other hand, be picked up without trouble and without the aid of a dog, and if not dead is despatched by a twist of the Bushman's fingers or a thrust from his spud. The spud is at once his dagger, his knife and fork, his chisel, his grub-axe, and his gouge. It is a piece of iron (rarely or never of steel, for he does not know how to harden it) about ten inches long, an inch and a half wide at the top or broadest end, where it is shaped and sharpened like a chisel, only with the edge not straight but sloping, and from thence tapering to a point at the other, the pointed part being four-sided, like a nail.

Deprived of movement by the blow of the club, it can, however, be picked up easily and without the help of a dog, and if it’s not dead, it is killed by a twist of the Bushman's fingers or a thrust from his spud. The spud serves as his dagger, knife and fork, chisel, grub-axe, and gouge. It is a piece of iron (rarely or never steel, since he doesn’t know how to harden it) about ten inches long, an inch and a half wide at the top or widest end, where it is shaped and sharpened like a chisel, but with a sloping edge instead of a straight one, tapering to a point at the other end, the pointed part being four-sided, like a nail.

It has, indeed, been supposed that the original spud was formed from a large wrought-iron nail, such as the ancients used, sharpened on a stone at one end, and beaten out flat at the other. This instrument has a handle in the middle, half-way between the chisel end and the point. The handle is of horn or bone (the spud being put through the hollow of the bone), smoothed to fit the hand. With the chisel end he cuts up his game and his food; the edge, being sloping, is drawn across the meat and divides it. With this end, too, he fashions his club and his traps, and digs up the roots he uses. The other end he runs into his meat as a fork, or thrusts it into the neck of his game to kill it and let out the blood, or with it stabs a sleeping enemy.

It’s been thought that the original spud was made from a large wrought-iron nail, like the ones used by ancient people, sharpened on one end and flattened on the other. This tool has a handle in the middle, halfway between the chisel end and the point. The handle is made of horn or bone (with the spud going through the hollow part of the bone), smoothed to fit comfortably in the hand. With the chisel end, he cuts up his game and food; the sloped edge slices through the meat. He also uses this end to create his club and traps, as well as to dig up the roots he needs. The other end can be used like a fork to pierce his meat, or to stab into the neck of his game to kill it and drain the blood, or even to stab a sleeping enemy.

The stab delivered by the Bushman can always be distinguished, because the wound is invariably square, and thus a clue only too certain has often been afforded to the assassin of many an unfortunate hunter. Whatever the Bushman in this case had hurled his club at, the club had gone into the willow bush, snapping the light branch and leaving its mark upon the bark of the larger. A moment's reflection convinced Felix that the Bushman had been in chase of a pheasant. Only a few moments previously a pheasant had flown before them down the track, and where there was one pheasant there were generally several more in the immediate neighbourhood.

The stab made by the Bushman can always be recognized because the wound is always square, giving a clear clue to the killer of many unfortunate hunters. Whatever the Bushman had thrown his club at, the club went into the willow bush, breaking a light branch and leaving a mark on the larger bark. A moment of thought convinced Felix that the Bushman had been chasing a pheasant. Just moments earlier, a pheasant had flown ahead of them down the path, and where there was one pheasant, there were usually several more nearby.

The Bushmen were known to be peculiarly fond of the pheasant, pursuing them all the year round without reference to the breeding season, and so continuously, that it was believed they caused these birds to be much less numerous, notwithstanding the vast extent of the forests, than they would otherwise have been. From the fresh appearance of the snapped bough, the Bushman must have passed but a few hours previously, probably at the dawn, and was very likely concealed at that moment near at hand in the forest, perhaps within a hundred yards.

The Bushmen were known to have a unique fondness for pheasants, hunting them year-round regardless of breeding season. They hunted so consistently that it was believed they reduced the bird population, even with the large size of the forests. The fresh look of the broken branch indicated that a Bushman had passed by just a few hours earlier, likely at dawn, and was probably hiding nearby in the forest, possibly within a hundred yards.

Felix looked carefully round, but could see nothing; there were the trees, not one of them large enough to hide a man behind it, the furze branches were small and scattered, and there was not sufficient fern to conceal anything. The keenest glance could discern nothing more. There were no footmarks on the ground, indeed, the dry, dead leaves and fir needles could hardly have received any impression, and up in the firs the branches were thin, and the sky could be seen through them. Whether the Bushman was lying in some slight depression of the ground, or whether he had covered himself with dead leaves and fir needles, or whether he had gone on and was miles away, there was nothing to show. But of the fact that he had been there Felix was perfectly certain.

Felix looked around carefully but saw nothing. The trees were all too small to hide a person behind, the gorse branches were thin and scattered, and there weren’t enough ferns to hide anything. No matter how hard he looked, he couldn’t find anything else. There were no footprints on the ground; in fact, the dry, dead leaves and fir needles hardly showed any signs of disturbance, and the branches in the fir trees were thin enough that the sky was visible through them. Whether the Bushman was lying in a small dip in the ground, covering himself with dead leaves and fir needles, or if he had moved on and was miles away, there was no evidence to suggest which was true. But Felix was completely sure that he had been there.

He returned towards Oliver, thoughtful and not without some anxiety, for he did not like the idea (though there was really little or no danger) of these human wild beasts being so near Aurora, while he should so soon be far away. Thus occupied he did not heed his steps, and suddenly felt something soft under his feet, which struggled. Instantaneously he sprang as far as he could, shuddering, for he had crushed an adder, and but just escaped, by his involuntary and mechanical leap, from its venom.

He walked back toward Oliver, deep in thought and a bit anxious, because he didn’t like the idea (even though there was hardly any danger) of these wild animals being so close to Aurora while he would soon be far away. Lost in his thoughts, he wasn’t paying attention to where he was stepping and suddenly felt something soft under his feet that wriggled. Instantly, he jumped as far as he could, shuddering, because he had stepped on a snake and barely dodged its venom with his automatic leap.

In the warm sunshine the viper, in its gravid state, had not cared to move as usual on hearing his approach; he had stepped full upon it. He hastened from the spot, and rejoined Oliver in a somewhat shaken state of mind. Common as such an incident was in the woods, where sandy soil warned the hunter to be careful, it seemed ominous that particular morning, and, joined with the discovery of Bushman traces, quite destroyed his sense of the beauty of the day.

In the warm sunlight, the pregnant viper didn’t bother to move like it normally would when it heard him coming; he stepped right on it. He quickly left the area and rejoined Oliver, feeling a bit rattled. While encounters like that were common in the woods, where the sandy soil reminded hunters to stay alert, it felt particularly foreboding that morning, especially coupled with finding signs of Bushman activity, which completely ruined his appreciation for the beauty of the day.

On hearing the condition of the willow boughs Oliver agreed as to the cause, and said that they must remember to warn the Baron's shepherds that the Bushmen, who had not been seen for some time, were about. Soon afterwards they emerged from the sombre firs and crossed a wide and sloping ground, almost bare of trees, where a forest fire last year had swept away the underwood. A verdant growth of grass was now springing up. Here they could canter side by side. The sunshine poured down, and birds were singing joyously. But they soon passed it, and checked their speed on entering the trees again.

Upon hearing about the state of the willow branches, Oliver agreed with the cause and mentioned they needed to remind the Baron's shepherds that the Bushmen, who hadn’t been seen in a while, were around. Shortly after, they came out from the dark firs and crossed a wide, sloping area that was nearly treeless, where a forest fire the previous year had cleared away the underbrush. A lush growth of grass was starting to come up now. Here, they could ride side by side. The sun was shining brightly, and birds were singing happily. But they soon moved past it and slowed down when they entered the trees again.

Tall beeches, with round smooth trunks, stood thick and close upon the dry and rising ground; their boughs met overhead, forming a green continuous arch for miles. The space between was filled with brake fern, now fast growing up, and the track itself was green with moss. As they came into this beautiful place a red stag, startled from his browsing, bounded down the track, his swift leaps carried him away like the wind; in another moment he left the path and sprang among the fern, and was seen only in glimpses as he passed between the beeches. Squirrels ran up the trunks as they approached; they could see many on the ground in among the trees, and passed under others on the branches high above them. Woodpeckers flashed across the avenue.

Tall beech trees with smooth, round trunks stood thick and close on the dry, rising ground; their branches met overhead, creating a continuous green arch for miles. The space between was filled with fast-growing brake fern, and the path itself was covered in green moss. As they entered this beautiful area, a startled red stag jumped down the trail, its quick leaps carrying it away like the wind; in a moment, it veered off the path and leapt into the fern, only seen in glimpses as it passed between the beeches. Squirrels scurried up the trunks as they drew near; they spotted many on the ground among the trees and passed under others on the branches high above. Woodpeckers darted across the avenue.

Once Oliver pointed out the long, lean flank of a grey pig, or fern-hog, as the animal rushed away among the brake. There were several glades, from one of which they startled a few deer, whose tails only were seen as they bounded into the underwood, but after the glades came the beeches again. Beeches always form the most beautiful forest, beeches and oak; and though nearing the end of their journey, they regretted when they emerged from these trees and saw the castle before them.

Once Oliver pointed out the long, lean side of a gray pig, or fern-hog, as the animal rushed away through the brush. There were several clearings, from one of which they startled a few deer, whose tails were all that they saw as they leaped into the thicket, but after the clearings came the beeches again. Beeches always create the most beautiful forest, beeches and oak; and even though they were nearing the end of their journey, they felt sad when they emerged from these trees and saw the castle ahead of them.

The ground suddenly sloped down into a valley, beyond which rose the Downs; the castle stood on a green isolated low hill, about half-way across the vale. To the left a river wound past; to the right the beech forest extended as far as the eye could see. The slope at their feet had been cleared of all but a few hawthorn bushes. It was not enclosed, but a neatherd was there with his cattle half a mile away, sitting himself at the foot of a beech, while the cattle grazed below him.

The ground suddenly dipped into a valley, beyond which the Downs rose; the castle sat on a green, isolated low hill about halfway across the valley. On the left, a river wound by; on the right, the beech forest stretched as far as the eye could see. The slope at their feet was cleared, with only a few hawthorn bushes remaining. It wasn’t fenced in, but a herdsman was nearby with his cattle half a mile away, sitting at the base of a beech tree while the cattle grazed below him.

Down in the valley the stockade began; it was not wide but long. The enclosure extended on the left to the bank of the river, and two fields on the other side of it. On the right it reached a mile and a half or nearly, the whole of which was overlooked from the spot where they had passed. Within the enclosures the corn crops were green and flourishing; horses and cattle, ricks and various buildings, were scattered about it. The town or cottages of the serfs were on the bank of the river immediately beyond the castle. On the Downs, which rose a mile or more on the other side of the castle, sheep were feeding; part of the ridge was wooded and part open. Thus the cultivated and enclosed valley was everywhere shut in with woods and hills.

Down in the valley, the stockade started; it wasn’t wide but extended a long way. The enclosure stretched to the left, reaching the riverbank and two fields on the other side. To the right, it went on for nearly a mile and a half, all of which was visible from where they had passed. Inside the enclosure, the corn crops were lush and thriving; horses and cattle, haystacks, and various buildings were scattered around. The town or cottages of the serfs were located on the riverbank just beyond the castle. On the Downs, rising a mile or more on the other side of the castle, sheep were grazing; part of the ridge was wooded while the other part was open. Thus, the cultivated and enclosed valley was surrounded by woods and hills.

The isolated round hill on which the castle stood was itself enclosed with a second stockade; the edge of the brow above that again was defended by a stout high wall of flints and mortar, crenellated at the top. There were no towers or bastions. An old and ivy-grown building stood inside the wall; it dated from the time of the ancients; it had several gables, and was roofed with tiles. This was the dwelling-house. The gardens were situated on the slope between the wall and the inner stockade. Peaceful as the scene appeared, it had been the site of furious fighting not many years ago. The Downs trended to the south, where the Romany and the Zingari resided, and a keen watch was kept both from the wall and from the hills beyond.

The isolated round hill where the castle stood was surrounded by a second stockade; the edge of the hill above that was protected by a sturdy high wall made of flints and mortar, with battlements at the top. There were no towers or bastions. An old building, covered in ivy, stood inside the wall; it dated back to ancient times and had several gables, with a tiled roof. This was the main house. The gardens were located on the slope between the wall and the inner stockade. Despite how peaceful it looked, it had been the site of fierce battles not long ago. The Downs extended to the south, where the Romany and the Zingari lived, and a close watch was kept from both the wall and the hills beyond.

They now rode slowly down the slope, and in a few minutes reached the barrier or gateway in the outer stockade. They had been observed, and the guard called by the warden, but as they approached were recognised, and the gate swang open before them. Walking their horses they crossed to the hill, and were as easily admitted to the second enclosure. At the gate of the wall they dismounted, and waited while the warden carried the intelligence of their arrival to the family. A moment later, and the Baron's son advanced from the porch, and from the open window the Baroness and Aurora beckoned to them.

They rode slowly down the slope and soon reached the barrier or gate in the outer stockade. They had been noticed, and the guard called by the warden, but as they got closer, they were recognized, and the gate swung open for them. Walking their horses, they crossed to the hill and were easily admitted to the second enclosure. At the gate of the wall, they got off their horses and waited while the warden informed the family of their arrival. A moment later, the Baron's son came out from the porch, and from the open window, the Baroness and Aurora waved to them.


CHAPTER VIII
THYMA CASTLE


Soon afterwards the hollow sound of the warden's horn, from the watch over the gate of the wall, proclaimed the hour of noon, and they all assembled for dinner in the banqueting chamber. The apartment was on the ground floor, and separated from the larger hall only by an internal wall. The house, erected in the time of the ancients, was not designed for our present style of life; it possessed, indeed, many comforts and conveniences which are scarcely now to be found in the finest palaces, but it lacked the breadth of construction which our architects have now in view.

Soon after, the distant sound of the warden's horn from the gate watch announced noon, and everyone gathered for dinner in the dining room. The room was on the ground floor and separated from the larger hall only by an internal wall. The house, built in ancient times, wasn’t designed for today's lifestyle; it had many comforts and conveniences that are rarely found even in the finest palaces today, but it lacked the spacious design that our architects aim for now.

In the front there were originally only two rooms, extensive for those old days, but not sufficiently so for ours. One of these had therefore been enlarged, by throwing into it a back room and part of the entrance, and even then it was not long enough for the Baron's retainers, and at feast-time a wooden shed was built opposite, and up to the window, to continue, as it were, the apartment out of doors. Workmen were busy putting up this shed when they arrived.

In the front, there were originally only two rooms, spacious for those times, but not quite enough for ours. So, one of these rooms was expanded by combining it with a back room and part of the entrance, and even then it wasn't long enough for the Baron's staff. During feast times, a wooden shed was built outside, right in front of the window, to extend the living space outdoors. Workers were busy setting up this shed when they arrived.

The second apartment retained its ancient form, and was used as the dining-room on ordinary days. It was lighted by a large window, now thrown wide open that the sweet spring air might enter, which window was the pride of the Baroness, for it contained more true glass than any window in the palace of the Prince. The glass made now is not transparent, but merely translucent; it indeed admits light after a fashion, but it is thick and cannot be seen through. These panes were almost all (the central casement wholly) of ancient glass, preserved with the greatest care through the long years past.

The second apartment kept its original shape and was used as the dining room on regular days. It was brightened by a large window, now wide open to let in the sweet spring air. This window was the pride of the Baroness because it had more real glass than any window in the Prince's palace. The glass made today is not clear but only translucent; it lets in light in a way, but it’s thick and you can’t see through it. Most of these panes (the central one entirely) were made of old glass, carefully preserved over the many years.

Three tables were arranged in an open square; the Baron and Baroness's chairs of oak faced the window, the guests sat at the other tables sideways to them, the servants moved on the outer side, and thus placed the food before them without pushing against or incommoding them. A fourth table was placed in a corner between the fireplace and the window. At it sat the old nurse, the housekeeper (frequently arising to order the servants), and the Baron's henchman, who had taught him to ride, but now, grey and aged, could not mount himself without assistance, and had long ceased from active service.

Three tables were arranged in an open square; the Baron and Baroness's oak chairs faced the window, while the guests sat at the other tables sideways to them. The servants moved around the outer side, serving food without bumping into or bothering anyone. A fourth table was set up in a corner between the fireplace and the window. Sitting there were the old nurse, the housekeeper—who frequently got up to direct the servants—and the Baron's right-hand man, who had taught him to ride. Now, gray and old, he couldn't mount a horse without help and had long since retired from active duty.

Already eight or nine guests had arrived besides Felix and Oliver. Some had ridden a great distance to be present at the House Day. They were all nobles, richly dressed; one or two of the eldest were wealthy and powerful men, and the youngest was the son and heir of the Earl of Essiton, who was then the favourite at Court. Each had come with his personal attendants; the young Lord Durand brought with him twenty-five retainers, and six gentlemen friends, all of whom were lodged in the town, the gentlemen taking their meals at the castle at the same time as the Baron, but, owing to lack of room, in another apartment by themselves. Durand was placed, or rather, quietly helped himself to a seat, next to the Lady Aurora, and of all the men there present, certainly there was none more gallant and noble than he.

Already eight or nine guests had arrived besides Felix and Oliver. Some had traveled a long way to attend House Day. They were all nobles, dressed in fine clothes; one or two of the older ones were wealthy and powerful men, and the youngest was the son and heir of the Earl of Essiton, who was currently the favorite at Court. Each had brought their own personal attendants; the young Lord Durand had twenty-five retainers and six gentleman friends with him, all of whom were staying in town. The gentlemen ate their meals at the castle at the same time as the Baron, but due to a lack of space, they were seated in a separate room. Durand took a seat next to Lady Aurora, and among all the men present, none was more gallant and noble than he.

His dark eyes, his curling hair short but brought in a thick curl over his forehead, his lips well shaped, his chin round and somewhat prominent, the slight moustache (no other hair on the face), formed the very ideal of what many women look for in a man. But it was his bright, lively conversation, the way in which his slightly swarthy complexion flushed with animation, the impudent assurance and yet generous warmth of his manner, and, indeed, of his feelings, which had given him the merited reputation of being the very flower of the nobles.

His dark eyes, curly hair cut short but styled into a thick curl over his forehead, well-shaped lips, round and slightly prominent chin, and a light mustache (with no other facial hair) created the perfect image of what many women desire in a man. But it was his bright and lively conversation, the way his slightly tanned complexion would flush with excitement, his bold confidence combined with a generous warmth in his demeanor and feelings, that earned him the well-deserved reputation of being the cream of the nobility.

With such a reputation, backed with the great wealth and power of his father, gentlemen competed with each other to swell his train; he could not, indeed, entertain all that came, and was often besieged with almost as large a crowd as the Prince himself. He took as his right the chair next to Aurora, to whom, indeed, he had been paying unremitting attention all the morning. She was laughing heartily as she sat down, at some sally of his upon a beauty at the Court.

With such a reputation, supported by his father's great wealth and power, gentlemen vied with each other to join his entourage; he couldn’t possibly host everyone who came and was frequently surrounded by a crowd almost as large as the Prince's. He claimed the seat next to Aurora, to whom he had been giving his full attention all morning. She was laughing heartily as she sat down, reacting to one of his jokes about a beauty at the Court.

The elder men were placed highest up the tables, and nearest the host, but to the astonishment of all, and not the least of himself, Oliver was invited by the Baron to sit by his side. Oliver could not understand this special mark of favour; the others, though far too proud for a moment to resent what they might have deemed a slight upon them, at once began to search their minds for a reason. They knew the Baron as an old intriguer; they attached a meaning, whether intended or not, to his smallest action.

The older men were seated at the highest tables, closest to the host, but to everyone's surprise, including Oliver's, the Baron invited him to sit next to him. Oliver didn't understand this special treatment; the others, though too proud to show they were offended, immediately started to think of reasons for it. They knew the Baron was an old schemer and read into even his smallest actions, whether or not he intended any meaning.

Felix, crowded out, as it were, and unnoticed, was forced to take his seat at the end of the table nearest that set apart in the corner for the aged and honoured servitors of the family. Only a few feet intervened between him and ancient henchmen; and he could not but overhear their talk among themselves, whispered as it was. He had merely shaken hands with Aurora; the crowd in the drawing-room and the marked attentions of Durand had prevented the exchange of a single word between them. As usual, the sense of neglect and injury over which he had so long brooded with little or no real cause (considering, of course, his position, and that the world can only see our coats and not our hearts), under these entirely accidental circumstances rose up again within him, and blinded him to the actual state of things.

Felix, feeling pushed out and overlooked, had to take a seat at the end of the table closest to the corner reserved for the elderly and respected servants of the family. There were only a few feet between him and the old servants, and he couldn't help but overhear their quiet conversations. He had only shaken hands with Aurora; the crowd in the drawing room and Durand's obvious attentions had kept them from speaking even a single word. As always, the feelings of neglect and hurt that he had been dwelling on for so long, with little real justification (given his position and the fact that people only see our appearances, not our true selves), arose within him again under these completely random circumstances, blinding him to what was really happening.

His seat, the lowest, and the nearest to the servitors, was in itself a mark of the low estimation in which he was held. The Lord Durand had been placed next to Aurora, as a direct encouragement to him, and a direct hint to himself not to presume. Doubtless, Durand had been at the castle many times, not improbably already been accepted by the Baron, and not altogether refused by Aurora. As a fact, though delighted with her beauty and conversation, Durand's presence was entirely due to the will of his father, the Earl, who wished to maintain friendly relations with Baron Thyma, and even then he would not have come had not the lovely weather invited him to ride into the forest.

His seat, the lowest and closest to the servants, was a clear sign of how little he was valued. Lord Durand had been placed next to Aurora as a direct encouragement for him and a direct hint to himself not to get too confident. Certainly, Durand had visited the castle many times and had probably already been accepted by the Baron, while not entirely dismissed by Aurora. In reality, though he was charmed by her beauty and conversation, Durand was there solely because of his father, the Earl, who wanted to keep good relations with Baron Thyma. Even then, he probably wouldn’t have come if the beautiful weather hadn’t tempted him to ride into the forest.

It was, however, so far true, that though his presence was accidental, yet he was fast becoming fascinated by one who, girl though she was, was stronger in mind than he. Now Aurora, knowing that he father's eye was on her, dared not look towards Felix, lest by an open and pronounced conduct she should be the cause of his being informed that his presence was not desirable. She knew that the Baron only needed a pretext to interfere, and was anxious to avoid offering him a chance.

It was true, however, that even though his presence was unplanned, he was quickly becoming captivated by someone who, despite being a girl, had a stronger mind than he did. Now Aurora, aware that her father's gaze was on her, dared not glance at Felix, for she feared that by behaving openly, she might give him a reason to be told that his presence was unwelcome. She understood that the Baron only needed a reason to step in, and was keen to avoid giving him that opportunity.

Felix, seeing her glance bent downwards or towards her companion, and never all the time turned to him, not unnaturally, but too hastily, concluded that she had been dazzled by Durand and the possibility of an alliance with his powerful family. He was discarded, worthless, and of no account; he had nothing but his sword; nay, he had not a sword, he was only an archer, a footman. Angry, jealous, and burning with inward annoyance, despising himself since all others despised him, scarce able to remain at the table, Felix was almost beside himself, and did not answer nor heed the remarks of the gentlemen sitting by him, who put him down as an ill-bred churl.

Felix, noticing her gaze directed downwards or towards her companion, and never really looking at him, quickly concluded—perhaps too hastily—that she was impressed by Durand and the potential for an alliance with his influential family. He felt dismissed, worthless, and insignificant; he had nothing but his bow; in fact, he didn’t even have a sword—he was just an archer, a foot soldier. Furious, jealous, and seething with inner frustration, loathing himself since everyone else looked down on him, barely able to stay seated at the table, Felix was nearly losing his mind and didn’t respond to or pay attention to the comments from the gentlemen next to him, who viewed him as an uncouth boor.

For the form's sake, indeed, he put his lips to the double-handled cup of fine ale, which continually circulated round the table, and was never allowed to be put down; one servant had nothing else to do but to see that its progress never stopped. But he drank nothing, and ate nothing; he could not swallow. How visionary, how weak and feeble now seemed the wild scheme of the canoe and his proposed voyage! Even should it succeed, years must elapse before he could accomplish anything substantial; while here were men who really had what he could only think of or imagine.

For appearances, he pressed his lips to the double-handled cup of fine ale that kept circulating around the table and was never allowed to be set down; one servant's only job was to make sure it never stopped moving. But he didn’t drink or eat anything; he couldn’t swallow. The wild idea of the canoe and his planned voyage now seemed so unrealistic and weak! Even if it worked out, it would take years before he could achieve anything significant, while here were men who actually had what he could only think about or dream of.

The silver chain or sword-belt of Durand (the sword and the dagger were not worn at the banquet, nor in the house, they were received by the marshal, and deposited in his care, a precaution against quarrelling), solid silver links passing over his shoulder, were real actual things. All the magnificence that he could call up by the exercise of his imagination, was but imagination; a dream no more to be seen by others than the air itself.

The silver chain or sword-belt of Durand (the sword and dagger weren’t worn at the banquet or in the house; they were handed to the marshal and kept in his care as a precaution against fighting) had solid silver links draped over his shoulder; they were tangible objects. All the splendor he could conjure up through his imagination was just that—imagination; a dream not visible to others than the air itself.

The dinner went on, and the talk became more noisy. The trout, the chicken, the thyme lamb (trapped on the hills by the shepherds), the plover eggs, the sirloin, the pastry (the Baroness superintended the making of it herself), all the profusion of the table, rather set him against food than tempted him. Nor could he drink the tiny drop, as it were, of ancient brandy, sent round to each guest at the conclusion, precious as liquid gold, for it had been handed down from the ancients, and when once the cask was empty it could not be re-filled.

The dinner continued, and the conversation grew louder. The trout, the chicken, the lamb with thyme (caught on the hills by the shepherds), the plover eggs, the sirloin, the pastry (the Baroness supervised its preparation herself), all the abundance on the table, actually made him less interested in eating than he might have been. He also couldn’t bring himself to sip the tiny amount of ancient brandy offered to each guest at the end, as precious as liquid gold, because it had been passed down from previous generations, and once the cask was empty, it could never be refilled.

The dessert, the strawberries, the nuts and walnuts, carefully preserved with a little salt, and shaken in the basket from time to time that they might not become mouldy, the apples, the honey in the comb with slices of white bread, nothing pleased him. Nor did he drink, otherwise than the sip demanded by courtesy, of the thin wine of Gloucester, costly as it was, grown in the vineyard there, and shipped across the Lake, and rendered still more expensive by risk of pirates. This was poured into flagons of maple wood, which, like the earthenware cup of ale, were never allowed to touch the board till the dinner was over.

The dessert—strawberries, nuts, and walnuts—carefully preserved with a little salt and shaken in the basket every now and then to prevent mold, the apples, the honeycomb served with slices of white bread—none of it thrilled him. He only sipped the thin wine from Gloucester out of courtesy, despite its high cost, grown in the local vineyard, shipped across the lake, and made even pricier by the risk of pirates. This wine was served in maple wood flagons, which, like the clay cup for ale, were never allowed to touch the table until dinner was finished.

Wearily the time went on; Felix glanced more and more often at the sky seen through the casement, eagerly desiring to escape, and at least to be alone. At last (how long it seemed!) the Baron rose, and immediately the rest did the same, and they drank the health of the Prince. Then a servitor brought in a pile of cigars upon a carved wooden tray, like a large platter, but with a rim. "These," said the Baron, again rising (the signal to all to cease conversing and to listen), "are a present from my gracious and noble friend the Earl of Essiton" (he looked towards Durand), "not less kindly carried by Lord Durand. I could have provided only our own coarse tobacco; but these are the best Devon."

Wearily, time dragged on; Felix kept glancing at the sky through the window, longing to escape and be alone. Finally (it felt like an eternity!), the Baron stood up, and the others followed suit, raising a toast to the Prince. Then a servant brought in a stack of cigars on a beautifully carved wooden tray, shaped like a large platter with a rim. "These," said the Baron, standing up again (a signal for everyone to stop talking and listen), "are a gift from my gracious and noble friend, the Earl of Essiton" (he glanced at Durand), "kindly delivered by Lord Durand. I could have provided only our own rough tobacco, but these are the finest from Devon."

The ladies now left the table, Aurora escorted by Durand, the Baroness by Oliver. Oliver, indeed, was in the highest spirits; he had eaten heartily of all; especially the sweet thyme lamb, and drunk as freely. He was in his element, his laugh the loudest, his talk the liveliest. Directly Durand returned (he had gone even a part of the way upstairs towards the drawing-room with Aurora, a thing a little against etiquette) he took his chair, formality being now at an end, and placed it by Oliver. They seemed to become friends at once by sympathy of mind and taste.

The ladies left the table, with Aurora being escorted by Durand and the Baroness by Oliver. Oliver was in great spirits; he had eaten a lot, especially the sweet thyme lamb, and had drunk quite a bit as well. He was in his element, laughing loudly and chatting animatedly. As soon as Durand returned (he had gone partway upstairs with Aurora, which was a bit against the rules), he took his seat, and the formalities were over. He positioned his chair next to Oliver, and they instantly connected as friends through their shared interests and tastes.

Round them the rest gradually grouped themselves, so that presently Felix, who did not move, found himself sitting alone at the extreme end of the table; quite apart, for the old retainers, who dined at the separate table, had quitted the apartment when the wine was brought in. Freed from the restraint of the ladies, the talk now became extremely noisy, the blue smoke from the long cigars filled the great apartment; one only remained untouched, that placed before Felix. Suddenly it struck him that thus sitting alone and apart, he should attract attention; he, therefore, drew his chair to the verge of the group, but remained silent, and as far off as ever. Presently the arrival of five more guests caused a stir and confusion, in the midst of which he escaped into the open air.

The rest of the group gradually came together, so that pretty soon, Felix, who didn't move, found himself sitting alone at the far end of the table; completely separate, since the old staff, who ate at their own table, had left the room when the wine was served. Free from the presence of the ladies, the conversation grew really loud, and the blue smoke from the long cigars filled the large room; the only one untouched was the cigar in front of Felix. Suddenly, it occurred to him that sitting alone and apart would draw attention to him; he then slid his chair closer to the group’s edge but stayed quiet, keeping his distance. Soon, the arrival of five more guests caused a commotion, and in the midst of the chaos, he slipped outside.

He wandered towards the gate of the wall, passing the wooden shed where the clink of hammers resounded, glanced at the sundial, which showed the hour of three (three weary hours had they feasted), and went out into the gardens. Still going on, he descended the slope, and not much heeding whither he was going, took the road that led into town. It consisted of some hundred or more houses, built of wood and thatched, placed without plan or arrangement on the bank of the stream. Only one long street ran through it, the rest were mere by-ways.

He walked toward the gate in the wall, passing the wooden shed where the sound of hammers echoed, glanced at the sundial, which indicated it was three o'clock (they had feasted for three long hours), and stepped out into the gardens. Continuing on, he went down the slope, not really paying attention to where he was headed, and took the road that led into town. It was made up of about a hundred houses, built of wood and thatched, placed haphazardly along the bank of the stream. Only one main street ran through it; the others were just narrow paths.

All these were inhabited by the Baron's retainers, but the number and apparently small extent of the houses did not afford correct data for the actual amount of the population. In these days the people (as is well known) find much difficulty in marrying; it seems only possible for a certain proportion to marry, and hence there are always a great number of young or single men out of all ratio to the houses. At the sound of the bugle the Baron could reckon on at least three hundred men flocking without a minute's delay to man the wall; in an hour more would arrive from the outer places, and by nightfall, if the summons went forth in the morning, his shepherds and swineherds would arrive, and these together would add some hundred and fifty to the garrison.

All these places were inhabited by the Baron's staff, but the small number and size of the houses didn't provide accurate data on the actual population. Nowadays, people (as is widely known) struggle to get married; it seems that only a certain percentage are able to tie the knot, which leads to a significant number of young or single men compared to the number of households. When the bugle sounded, the Baron could count on at least three hundred men rushing to the walls without delay; in an hour, more would come from the surrounding areas, and by nightfall, if the call went out in the morning, his shepherds and swineherds would show up, adding another hundred and fifty to the garrison.

Next must be reckoned the armed servants of the house, the Baron's personal attendants, the gentlemen who formed his train, his sons and the male relations of the family; these certainly were not less than fifty. Altogether over five hundred men, well armed and accustomed to the use of their weapons, would range themselves beneath his banner. Two of the buildings in he town were of brick (the material carried hither, for there was no clay or stone thereabouts); they were not far apart. The one was the Toll House, where all merchants or traders paid the charges in corn or kind due to the Baron; the other was the Court House, where he sat to administer justice and decide causes, or to send the criminal to the gibbet.

Next, we must account for the armed servants of the house, the Baron's personal attendants, the gentlemen in his entourage, his sons, and male relatives; there were definitely no fewer than fifty of them. In total, over five hundred men, well-armed and skilled in handling their weapons, would assemble under his banner. Two of the buildings in the town were made of brick (the material brought here, as there was no clay or stone nearby); they were situated not far from each other. One was the Toll House, where all merchants or traders paid the fees in grain or goods owed to the Baron; the other was the Court House, where he presided to administer justice and resolve disputes, or to send criminals to the gallows.

These alone of the buildings were of any age, for the wooden houses were extremely subject to destruction by fire, and twice in the Baron's time half the town had been laid in ashes, only to rise again in a few weeks. Timber was so abundant and so ready of access, it seemed a loss of labour to fetch stone or brick, or to use the flints of the hills. About the doors of the two inns there were gathered groups of people; among them the liveries of the nobles visiting the castle were conspicuous; the place was full of them, the stables were filled, and their horses were picketed under the trees and even in the street.

These were the only buildings with any age, as the wooden houses were highly vulnerable to fire, and during the Baron's time, half the town had burned down twice, only to be rebuilt in just a few weeks. Timber was so plentiful and easily accessible that it seemed pointless to go through the trouble of getting stone or brick or using flint from the hills. Groups of people gathered around the doors of the two inns; among them, the livery of the nobles visiting the castle stood out. The place was bustling with them, the stables were full, and their horses were tied under the trees and even in the street.

Every minute the numbers increased as others arrived; men, too (who had obtained permission of their lords), came in on foot, ten or twelve travelling together for mutual protection, for the feuds of their masters exposed them to frequent attack. All (except the nobles) were disarmed at the barrier by the warden and guard, that peace might be preserved in the enclosure. The folk at the moment he passed were watching the descent of three covered waggons from the forest track, in which were travelling the ladies of as many noble families.

Every minute, more people showed up; men, too (who had gotten permission from their lords), came in on foot, traveling in groups of ten or twelve for safety, since their masters' conflicts put them at risk of frequent attacks. Everyone (except the nobles) was disarmed at the entrance by the warden and guards to keep the peace in the area. The crowd at that moment was watching three covered wagons coming down the forest path, carrying the ladies from three noble families.

Some, indeed, of the youngest and boldest ride on horseback, but the ladies chiefly move in these waggons, which are fitted up with considerable comfort, and are necessary to sleep in when the camp is formed by the wayside at night. None noticed him as he went by, except a group of three cottage girls, and a serving-woman, an attendant of a lady visitor at the castle. He heard them allude to him; he quickened his pace, but heard one say, "He's nobody; he hasn't even got a horse."

Some of the youngest and bravest ride on horseback, but the women mostly travel in these wagons, which are set up for comfort and are essential for sleeping when the camp is set up by the roadside at night. No one noticed him as he passed by, except for a group of three girls from nearby cottages and a maid, who was attending to a lady guest at the castle. He caught their mention of him; he picked up his pace but heard one of them say, "He's nobody; he doesn't even have a horse."

"Yes he is," replied the serving-woman; "he's Oliver's brother; and I can tell you my lord Oliver is somebody; the Princess Lucia—" and she made the motion of kissing with her lips. Felix, ashamed and annoyed to the last degree, stepped rapidly from the spot. The serving-woman, however, was right in a measure; the real or supposed favour shown Oliver by the Prince's sister, the Duchess of Deverell, had begun to be bruited abroad, and this was the secret reason why the Baron had shown Oliver so much and so marked an attention, even more than he had paid to Lord Durand.

"Yeah, he is," replied the servant; "he's Oliver's brother, and let me tell you, my lord Oliver is important. The Princess Lucia—" and she gestured as if to kiss. Felix, completely embarrassed and irritated, quickly stepped away. However, the servant was partly correct; the actual or rumored favor shown to Oliver by the Prince's sister, the Duchess of Deverell, had started to circulate, and this was the hidden reason why the Baron had paid Oliver so much attention, even more than he had given to Lord Durand.

Full well he knew the extraordinary influence possessed by ladies of rank and position. From what we can learn out of the scanty records of the past, it was so even in the days of the ancients; it is a hundredfold more so in these times, when, although every noble must of necessity be taught to read and write, as a matter of fact the men do neither, but all the correspondence of kings and princes, and the diplomatic documents, and notices, and so forth, are one and all, almost without a single exception, drawn up by women. They know the secret and hidden motives of courts, and have this great advantage, that they can use their knowledge without personal fear, since women are never seriously interfered with, but are protected by all.

He was fully aware of the amazing influence that women of high status and privilege hold. From what we can gather from the limited records of the past, this was true even in ancient times; it's even more true today, when, although every noble is required to learn to read and write, most men do neither. Almost all the correspondence of kings and princes, along with diplomatic documents and notices, are created by women. They understand the hidden motives of courts and have the advantage of using this knowledge without fear, as women are rarely challenged and are safeguarded by everyone.

The one terrible and utterly shameful instance to the contrary had not occurred at the time of which we are now speaking, and it was and is still repudiated by every man, from the knight to the boys who gather acorns for the swine. Oliver himself had no idea whatever that he was regarded as a favourite lover of the Duchess; he took the welcome that was held out to him as perfectly honest. Plain, straightforward, and honest, Oliver, had he been openly singled out by a queen, would have scorned to give himself an air for such a reason. But the Baron, deep in intrigue this many a year, looked more profoundly into the possibilities of the future when he kept the young knight at his side.

The one terrible and totally shameful exception to this had not happened during the time we're talking about, and it’s still rejected by everyone, from knights to the boys who gather acorns for the pigs. Oliver himself had no idea that he was seen as a favorite of the Duchess; he believed the welcome he received was completely genuine. Plain, straightforward, and honest, Oliver would have scoffed at acting important even if he had been openly chosen by a queen. But the Baron, who had been deep in scheming for many years, looked more closely at the potential future when he kept the young knight close by.


CHAPTER IX
SUPERSTITIONS


Felix was now outside the town and alone in the meadow which bordered the stream; he knelt, and drank from it with the hollow of his hand. He was going to ascend the hill beyond, and had already reached the barrier upon that side, when he recollected that etiquette demanded the presence of the guests at meal-times, and it was now the hour for tea. He hastened back, and found the courtyard of the castle crowded. Within, the staircase leading to the Baroness's chamber (where tea was served) could scarcely be ascended, what with the ladies and their courtiers, the long trains of the serving-women, the pages winding their way in and out, the servants endeavouring to pass, the slender pet greyhounds, the inseparable companions of their mistresses.

Felix was now outside the town, alone in the meadow next to the stream. He knelt down and drank from it with his hands. He was about to climb the hill ahead when he remembered that etiquette required guests to be present during meal times, and it was now tea time. He hurried back and found the castle courtyard crowded. Inside, the staircase leading to the Baroness's room (where tea was served) was almost impassable because of the ladies and their admirers, the long trains of the serving women, the pages weaving in and out, the servants trying to get through, and the slender pet greyhounds that were always by their mistresses’ sides.

By degrees, and exercising patience, he gained the upper floor and entered the drawing-room. The Baroness alone sat at the table, the guests wheresoever they chose, or chance carried them; for the most part they stood, or leaned against the recess of the open window. Of tea itself there was none; there had been no tea to be had for love or money these fifty years past, and, indeed, its use would have been forgotten, and the name only survived, had not some small quantities been yet preserved and brought out on rare occasions at the palaces. Instead, there was chicory prepared from the root of the plant, grown for the purpose; fresh milk; fine ale and mead; and wine from Gloucester. Butter, honey, and cake were also on the table.

Gradually, and with some patience, he made his way to the upper floor and entered the drawing-room. The Baroness sat alone at the table, while the guests were scattered wherever they liked, mostly standing or leaning against the open window's recess. There was no tea; it hadn't been available for the last fifty years, and its use would have been forgotten if not for a few small quantities that had been kept and brought out on rare occasions at the palaces. Instead, there was chicory made from the plant's root, fresh milk, fine ale and mead, and wine from Gloucester. Butter, honey, and cake were also on the table.

The guests helped themselves, or waited till the servants came to them with wooden carved trays. The particular characteristic of tea is the freedom from restraint; it is not considered necessary to sit as at dinner or supper, nor to do as others do; each pleases himself, and there is no ceremony. Yet, although so near Aurora, Felix did not succeed in speaking to her; Durand still engaged her attention whenever other ladies were not talking with her. Felix found himself, exactly as at dinner-time, quite outside the circle. There was a buzz of conversation around, but not a word of it was addressed to him. Dresses brushed against him, but the fair owners were not concerned even to acknowledge his existence.

The guests served themselves or waited for the servers to bring them wooden trays. The unique thing about tea is that there’s no need for formalities; it’s not necessary to sit like you would at dinner or to follow what others are doing. Everyone can do what they like, and there’s no ceremony involved. Still, even though he was so close to Aurora, Felix couldn't manage to talk to her; Durand always caught her attention whenever other ladies weren't talking to her. Felix felt, just like at dinner, completely outside the group. There was a buzz of conversation all around him, but not a single word was directed at him. Dresses brushed against him, but the lovely women didn’t even bother to acknowledge his presence.

Pushed by the jostling crowd aside from the centre of the floor, Felix presently sat down, glad to rest at last, behind the open door. Forgotten, he forgot; and, looking as it were out of the present in a bitter reverie, scarcely knew where he was, except at moments when he heard the well-known and loved voice of Aurora. A servant after a while came to him with a tray; he took some honey and bread. Almost immediately afterwards another servant came and presented him with a plate, on which was a cup of wine, saying, "With my lady's loving wishes."

Pushed aside by the bustling crowd away from the center of the floor, Felix finally sat down, relieved to take a break behind the open door. Lost in thought, he forgot everything around him; he barely realized where he was, except at moments when he heard Aurora’s familiar and beloved voice. After a while, a servant approached him with a tray; he took some honey and bread. Almost immediately, another servant came and offered him a plate with a cup of wine, saying, "With my lady's warm wishes."

As in duty bound, he rose and bowed to the Baroness; she smiled and nodded; the circle which had looked to see who was thus honoured, turned aside again, not recognising him. To send a guest a plate with wine or food is the highest mark of esteem, and this plate in especial was of almost priceless value, as Felix saw when his confusion had abated. It was of the ancient china, now not to be found in even the houses of the great.

As he was supposed to, he stood up and bowed to the Baroness; she smiled and nodded. The group that had turned to see who was being honored quickly looked away, not recognizing him. Sending a guest a plate with wine or food is the greatest sign of respect, and this particular plate was incredibly valuable, as Felix realized once his embarrassment faded. It was made of ancient china, which is no longer found even in the homes of the wealthy.

In all that kingdom but five perfect plates were known to exist, and two of these were at the palace. They are treasured as heirlooms, and, if ever broken, can never be replaced. The very fragments are rare; they are often set in panels, and highly prized. The Baroness, glancing round her court, had noticed at last the young man sitting in the obscure corner behind the door; she remembered, not without some twinge of conscience, that his house was their ancient ally and sworn hearth-friend.

In the entire kingdom, only five perfect plates were known to exist, and two of them were at the palace. They are cherished as heirlooms, and if ever broken, they can never be replaced. Even the fragments are rare; they are often set in panels and highly valued. The Baroness, looking around her court, finally noticed the young man sitting in the shadowy corner behind the door; she remembered, not without a bit of guilt, that his family was their ancient ally and sworn friend.

She knew, far better than the Baron, how deeply her daughter loved him; better, perhaps, even than Aurora herself. She, too, naturally hoped a higher alliance for Aurora; yet she was a true woman, and her heart was stronger than her ambition. The trifle of the wine was, of course, nothing; but it was open and marked recognition. She expected that Felix (after his wont in former times, before love or marriage was thought of for Aurora) would have come upon this distinct invitation, and taken his stand behind her, after the custom. But as he did not come, fresh guests and the duties of hospitality distracted her attention, and she again forgot him.

She understood much better than the Baron just how deeply her daughter loved him; maybe even better than Aurora herself did. She also hoped for a better match for Aurora, but she was a true woman, and her feelings were stronger than her ambitions. The little amount of wine was really nothing, but it was an open acknowledgment. She thought Felix would have picked up on that clear invitation and stood behind her like he used to before anyone considered love or marriage for Aurora. But since he didn’t show up, new guests and the responsibilities of being a hostess pulled her focus away, and she forgot about him again.

He was, indeed, more hurt than pleased with the favour that had been shown him; it seemed to him (though really prompted by the kindest feeling) like a bone cast at a dog. He desired to be so regarded that no special mark of favour should be needed. It simply increased his discontent. The evening wore on, the supper began; how weary it seemed to him, that long and jovial supper, with the ale that ran in a continual stream, the wine that ceaselessly circled round, the jokes, and bustle, and laughter, the welcome to guests arriving; the cards, and chess, and games that succeeded it, the drinking, and drinking, and drinking, till the ladies again left; then drinking yet more freely.

He was, in fact, more hurt than happy about the favor shown to him; to him, it felt (even though it came from the kindest intentions) like tossing a bone to a dog. He wanted to be seen in a way that didn’t require any special treatment. It only added to his discontent. The evening dragged on, and supper began; how tiring that long and lively supper felt to him, with the ale flowing endlessly, the wine being passed around non-stop, the jokes, the hustle and bustle, the laughter, and the welcomes for arriving guests; then came the cards, chess, and games that followed, the drinking, and more drinking, and more drinking until the ladies left again; then even more drinking continued.

He slipped away at the first opportunity, and having first strolled to and fro on the bowling green, wet with dew, at the rear of the castle, asked for his bedroom. It was some time before he could get attended to; he stood alone at the foot of the staircase while others went first (their small coins bought them attention), till at last a lamp was brought to him, and his chamber named. This chamber, such as it was, was the only pleasure, and that a melancholy one, he had had that day.

He took off at the first chance he got, and after walking back and forth on the dew-soaked bowling green behind the castle, he asked for his room. It took a while before anyone helped him; he stood alone at the bottom of the stairs while others went ahead (their spare change got them noticed) until finally a lamp was brought to him and he was given the name of his room. This room, whatever it was, was the only enjoyment—though a sad one—he had that day.

Though overflowing with guests, so that the most honoured visitors could not be accommodated within the castle, and only the ladies could find sleeping room there, yet the sacred law of honour, the pledge of the hearth-friend passed three generations ago, secured him this privilege. The hearth-friend must sleep within, if a king were sent without. Oliver, of course, would occupy the same room, but he was drinking and shouting a song below, so that for a while Felix had the chamber to himself.

Though it was packed with guests, and the most distinguished visitors couldn’t find space inside the castle—leaving only the ladies with a place to sleep—the sacred law of honor and the pledge of the hearth-friend from three generations ago granted him this privilege. The hearth-friend had to sleep inside, even if a king had to stay outside. Oliver, of course, was meant to share the same room, but he was downstairs drinking and singing a song, so for a while, Felix had the chamber all to himself.

It pleased him, because it was the room in which he had always slept when he visited the place from a boy, when, half afraid and yet determined to venture, he had first come through the lonely forest alone. How well he remembered that first time! the autumn sunshine on the stubble at Old House, and the red and brown leaves of the forest as he entered; how he entered on foot, and twice turned back, and twice adventured again, till he got so deep into the forest that it seemed as far to return as to advance. How he started at the sudden bellow of two stags, and the clatter of their horns as they fought in the brake close by, and how beautiful the castle looked when presently he emerged from the bushes and looked down upon it!

He was pleased because it was the room where he had always slept during his visits since he was a boy, when, feeling a mix of fear and determination, he had first walked through the quiet forest alone. He vividly remembered that first time: the autumn sunshine on the stubble at Old House, and the red and brown leaves of the forest as he made his way in; how he had approached on foot, turned back twice, and then pushed forward again until he ventured so deep into the woods that it felt just as far to go back as to keep going. He recalled how he jumped at the sudden roar of two stags and the clash of their antlers as they fought in the underbrush nearby, and how beautiful the castle looked when he finally emerged from the bushes and gazed down at it!

This was the very room he slept in; the Baroness, mother-like, came to see that he was comfortable. Here he had slept every time since; here he had listened in the early morning for Aurora's footfall as she passed his door, for the ladies rose earlier than did the men. He now sat down by the open window; it was a brilliant moonlight night, warm and delicious, and the long-drawn note of the nightingale came across the gardens from the hawthorn bushes without the inner stockade. To the left he could see the line of the hills, to the right the forest; all was quiet there, but every now and then the sound of a ballad came round the castle, a sound without recognizable words, inarticulate merriment.

This was the exact room he slept in; the Baroness, like a mother, came to make sure he was comfortable. This was where he had slept each time since; here he had listened in the early morning for Aurora's footsteps as she walked past his door, since the ladies got up earlier than the men. He now sat down by the open window; it was a gorgeous moonlit night, warm and delightful, and the long, drawn-out call of the nightingale drifted across the gardens from the hawthorn bushes outside the inner stockade. To the left, he could see the line of hills, and to the right, the forest; everything was quiet there, but every now and then, the sound of a ballad would circle the castle, a sound with no recognizable words, pure inarticulate joy.

If he started upon the hazardous voyage he contemplated, and for which he had been so long preparing, should he ever sleep there again, so near the one he loved? Was it not better to be poor and despised, but near her, than to attempt such an expedition, especially as the chances (as his common sense told him) were all against him? Yet he could not stay; he must do it, and he tried to stifle the doubt which insisted upon arising in his mind. Then he recurred to Durand; he remembered that not once on that day had he exchanged one single word, beyond the first and ordinary salutation, with Aurora.

If he decided to go on the risky journey he was thinking about and for which he had been preparing for so long, would he ever sleep near the person he loved again? Wasn’t it better to be poor and looked down on, but close to her, than to try such an expedition, especially since common sense told him the odds were against him? Yet he couldn’t stay; he had to do it, and he tried to push down the doubts that kept coming up in his mind. Then he thought about Durand; he remembered that not once that day had he exchanged a single word, other than the usual greeting, with Aurora.

Might she not, had she chosen, have arranged a moment's interview? Might she not easily have given him an opportunity? Was it not clear that she was ashamed of her girlish fancy for a portionless and despised youth? If so, was it worth while to go upon so strange an enterprise for her sake? But if so, also, was life worth living, and might he not as well go and seek destruction?

Might she not have easily arranged to meet him for a moment if she wanted to? Wasn’t it obvious that she was embarrassed by her youthful crush on someone without wealth and seen as worthless? If that was the case, was it even worth it to pursue such a strange mission for her? But if that was true, then was life really worth living, and wouldn’t it be better for him to just go and seek his own downfall?

While this conflict of feeling was proceeding, he chanced to look towards the table upon which he had carelessly placed his lamp, and observed, what in his agitated state of mind he had previously overlooked, a small roll of manuscript tied round with silk. Curious in books, he undid the fastening, and opened the volume. There was not much writing, but many singular diagrams, and signs arranged in circles. It was, in fact, a book of magic, written at the dictation, as the preface stated, of one who had been for seven years a slave among the Romany.

While he was feeling conflicted, he happened to glance at the table where he had carelessly placed his lamp and noticed a small roll of manuscript tied with silk that he had overlooked in his agitated state. Curious about books, he untied it and opened the volume. There wasn't much writing, but there were many unusual diagrams and symbols arranged in circles. It was, in fact, a book on magic, written at the direction, as the preface said, of someone who had been a slave among the Romany for seven years.

He had been captured, and forced to work for the tent to which his owners belonged. He had witnessed their worship and their sorceries; he had seen the sacrifice to the full moon, their chief goddess, and the wild extravagances with which it was accompanied. He had learnt some few of their signs, and, upon escaping, had reproduced them from memory. Some were engraved on the stones set in their rings; some were carved on wooden tablets, some drawn with ink on parchment; but, with all, their procedure seemed to be the repetition of certain verses, and then a steady gaze upon the picture. Presently they became filled with rapture, uttered what sounded as the wildest ravings, and (their women especially) prophesied of the future.

He had been captured and forced to work for the tent of his captors. He had witnessed their rituals and their magic; he had seen the sacrifice to the full moon, their main goddess, and the wild celebrations that accompanied it. He had learned a few of their symbols, and upon escaping, had recreated them from memory. Some were engraved on the stones of their rings; some were carved on wooden tablets, others drawn with ink on parchment; but overall, their practice seemed to involve repeating certain verses and then staring intently at the image. Soon they would be filled with ecstasy, shouting what sounded like the craziest ramblings, and (especially their women) prophesied about the future.

A few of the signs he understood the meaning of, but the others he owned were unknown to him. At the end of the book were several pages of commentary, describing the demons believed in and worshipped by the Romany, demons which haunted the woods and hills, and against which it was best to be provided with amulets blessed by the holy fathers of St. Augustine. Such demons stole on the hunter at noonday, and, alarmed at the sudden appearance, upon turning his head (for demons invariably approach from behind, and their presence is indicated by a shudder in the back), he toppled into pits hidden by fern, and was killed.

A few of the signs he understood, but the others he owned were unfamiliar to him. At the end of the book were several pages of commentary explaining the demons believed in and worshipped by the Romany, demons that haunted the woods and hills, and against which it was best to be equipped with amulets blessed by the holy fathers of St. Augustine. These demons would sneak up on the hunter at noon, and if he turned his head in alarm at their sudden appearance (since demons always approach from behind, their presence felt as a shudder in the back), he would fall into pits hidden by ferns and be killed.

Or, in the shape of a dog, they ran between the traveller's legs; or as woman, with tempting caresses, lured him from the way at nightfall into the leafy recesses, and then instantaneously changing into vast bat-like forms, fastened on his throat and sucked his blood. The terrible screams of such victims had often been heard by the warders at the outposts. Some were invisible, and yet slew the unwary by descending unseen upon him, and choking him with a pressure as if the air had suddenly become heavy.

Or, taking the form of a dog, they dashed between the traveler’s legs; or as a woman, with enticing gestures, drew him from his path at dusk into the leafy shadows, and then instantly transformed into huge bat-like creatures, attacked his throat and drained his blood. The horrific screams of such victims had often been heard by the guards at the outposts. Some were invisible, yet they killed the unsuspecting by descending without a sound upon him, suffocating him with a weight as if the air had suddenly grown thick.

But none of these were, perhaps, so much to be dreaded as the sweetly-formed and graceful ladies of the fern. These were creatures, not of flesh and blood, and yet not incorporeal like the demons, nor were they dangerous to the physical man, doing no bodily injury. The harm they did was by fascinating the soul so that it revolted from all religion and all the rites of the Church. Once resigned to the caress of the fern-woman, the unfortunate was lured farther and farther from the haunts of men, until at last he wandered into the unknown forest, and was never seen again. These creatures were usually found among the brake fern, nude, but the lower limbs and body hidden by the green fronds, their white arms and shoulders alone visible, and their golden hair aglow with the summer sunshine.

But none of these were, perhaps, as much to be feared as the elegantly shaped and graceful ladies of the fern. These were beings, not made of flesh and blood, yet not intangible like demons, nor were they a threat to the physical body, causing no harm. The damage they caused was through captivating the soul so that it turned away from all religion and all the practices of the Church. Once entranced by the touch of the fern-woman, the unfortunate individual was drawn further and further away from human settlements, until ultimately they wandered into the mysterious forest and disappeared without a trace. These beings were typically found among the brake fern, unclothed, but their lower bodies were concealed by the green fronds, with only their white arms and shoulders visible, and their golden hair glowing in the summer sunlight.

Demons there were, too, of the streams, and demons dwelling in the midst of the hills; demons that could travel only in the moonbeams, and others that floated before the stormy winds and hurled the wretched wanderer to destruction, or crushed him with the overthrown trees. In proof of this the monk asked the reader if he had not heard of huge boughs falling from trees without visible cause, suddenly and without warning, and even of trees themselves in full foliage, in calm weather, toppling with a crash, to the imminent danger or the death of those who happened to be passing. Let all these purchase the amulets of St. Augustine, concluded the writer, who it appeared was a monk in whose monastery the escaped prisoner had taken refuge, and who had written down his relation and copied his rude sketches.

There were also demons in the streams and demons living in the hills; some could only move in moonlight, while others rode the stormy winds, sending poor travelers to their doom or crushing them with fallen trees. To prove this, the monk asked the reader if he hadn’t heard of large branches falling from trees for no apparent reason, suddenly and without warning, or even of fully-leaved trees crashing down in calm weather, posing a serious risk or even death to those nearby. Let everyone buy the amulets of St. Augustine, the writer concluded, who turned out to be a monk from the monastery where the escaped prisoner had sought refuge, and who had written down his story and copied his rough drawings.

Felix pored over the strange diagrams, striving to understand the hidden meaning; some of them he thought were alchemical signs, and related to the making of gold, especially as the prisoner stated the Romany possessed much more of that metal in the tents than he had seen in the palaces of our kings. Whether they had a gold mine from whence they drew it, or whether they had the art of transmutation, he knew not, but he had heard allusions to the wealth in the mountain of the apple trees, which he supposed to be a mystical phrase.

Felix studied the weird diagrams, trying to grasp their hidden meaning; he thought some of them were alchemical symbols related to making gold, especially since the prisoner claimed the Romany had way more of that metal in their tents than he had ever seen in our kings' palaces. He didn’t know if they had a gold mine they were getting it from or if they had the secret of turning other materials into gold, but he had heard hints about the wealth in the mountain of the apple trees, which he figured was a mystical phrase.

When Felix at last looked up, the lamp was low, the moonbeams had entered and fell upon the polished floor, and from the window he could see a long white ghostly line of mist where a streamlet ran at the base of the slope by the forest. The songs were silent; there was no sound save the distant neigh of a horse and the heavy tramp of a guest coming along the gallery. Half bewildered by poring over the magic scroll, full of the signs and the demons, and still with a sense of injury and jealousy cankering his heart, Felix retired to his couch, and, weary beyond measure, instantly fell asleep.

When Felix finally looked up, the lamp was dim, the moonlight had come in and was shining on the polished floor, and from the window, he could see a long, pale line of mist where a small stream flowed at the bottom of the slope by the forest. The music had stopped; there was only the distant neigh of a horse and the heavy footsteps of a guest walking down the hallway. Half confused from studying the magical scroll filled with symbols and demons, and still feeling hurt and jealous in his heart, Felix went to his couch and, utterly exhausted, fell asleep right away.

In his unsettled state of mind it did not once occur to him to ask himself how the manuscript came to be upon his table. Rare as they were, books were not usually put upon the tables of guests, and at an ordinary time he would certainly have thought it peculiar. The fact was, that Aurora, whom all day he had inwardly accused of forgetting him, had placed it there for him with her own hands. She, too, was curious in books and fond of study. She had very recently bought the volume from a merchant who had come thus far, and who valued it the least of all his wares.

In his restless state of mind, it never crossed his mind to wonder how the manuscript ended up on his table. Though rare, books weren't typically left on the tables of guests, and under normal circumstances, he definitely would have found it strange. The truth was, Aurora, whom he had been silently blaming all day for forgetting him, had put it there herself. She was also interested in books and loved to study. She had recently purchased the volume from a merchant who had traveled this far and who valued it less than all his other goods.

She knew that Felix had read and re-read every other scrap of writing there was in the castle, and thought that this strange book might interest him, giving, as it did, details of those powers of the air in which almost all fully believed. Unconscious of this attention, Felix fell asleep, angry and bitter against her. When, half an hour afterwards, Oliver blundered into the room, a little unsteady on his legs, notwithstanding his mighty strength, he picked up the roll, glanced at it, flung it down with contempt, and without a minute's delay sought and obtained slumber.

She knew that Felix had read and re-read every piece of writing in the castle, and thought this strange book might catch his interest, since it provided details about the powers of the air that almost everyone believed in. Unaware of her scrutiny, Felix fell asleep, feeling angry and resentful toward her. Half an hour later, when Oliver stumbled into the room, a bit unsteady despite his impressive strength, he picked up the scroll, glanced at it, tossed it down in disdain, and without wasting a moment, fell asleep.


CHAPTER X
THE FEAST


At ten in the morning next day the feast began with a drama from Sophocles, which was performed in the open air. The theatre was in the gardens between the wall and the inner stockade; the spectators sat on the slope, tier above tier; the actors appeared upon a green terrace below, issuing from an arbour and passing off behind a thick box-hedge on the other side of the terrace. There was no scenery whatever.

At ten in the morning the next day, the feast kicked off with a play by Sophocles, performed outdoors. The theater was located in the gardens between the wall and the inner stockade; the audience sat on a sloped area, tiered above each other. The actors came onto a green terrace below, emerging from a grove and exiting behind a dense box hedge on the other side of the terrace. There was no scenery at all.

Aurora had selected the Antigone. There were not many dramatists from whom to choose, for so many English writers, once famous, had dropped out of knowledge and disappeared. Yet some of the far more ancient Greek and Roman classics remained because they contained depth and originality of ideas in small compass. They had been copied in manuscripts by thoughtful men from the old printed books before they mouldered away, and their manuscripts being copied again, these works were handed down. The books which came into existence with printing had never been copied by the pen, and had consequently nearly disappeared. Extremely long and diffuse, it was found, too, that so many of them were but enlargements of ideas or sentiments which had been expressed in a few words by the classics. It is so much easier to copy an epigram of two lines than a printed book of hundreds of pages, and hence it was that Sophocles had survived while much more recent writers had been lost.

Aurora had chosen the Antigone. There weren't many playwrights to pick from, as so many English authors, once well-known, had faded from memory and vanished. However, some of the much older Greek and Roman classics remained because they held depth and originality in a concise format. They had been copied in manuscripts by thoughtful individuals from the old printed books before those fell apart, and their manuscripts were copied again, preserving these works for future generations. The books that emerged with printing had never been transcribed by hand and, as a result, had nearly disappeared. Many of them were also extremely long and wordy, often just expanded versions of ideas or sentiments that had been expressed in a few lines by the classics. It’s much easier to copy a two-line epigram than a printed book of hundreds of pages, which is why Sophocles has survived while many more recent writers have been lost.

From a translation Aurora had arranged several of his dramas. Antigone was her favourite, and she wished Felix to see it. In some indefinable manner the spirit of the ancient Greeks seemed to her in accord with the times, for men had or appeared to have so little control over their own lives that they might well imagine themselves overruled by destiny. Communication between one place and another was difficult, the division of society into castes, and the iron tyranny of arms, prevented the individual from making any progress in lifting himself out of the groove in which he was born, except by the rarest opportunity, unless specially favoured by fortune. As men were born so they lived; they could not advance, and when this is the case the idea of Fate is always predominant. The workings of destiny, the Irresistible overpowering both the good and the evil-disposed, such as were traced in the Greek drama, were paralleled in the lives of many a miserable slave at that day. They were forced to endure, for there was no possibility of effort.

From a translation, Aurora had arranged a few of his plays. Antigone was her favorite, and she wanted Felix to see it. In some unclear way, the spirit of the ancient Greeks felt aligned with modern times because people had—or seemed to have—so little control over their lives that they could easily imagine being ruled by fate. Communication between places was difficult, the division of society into classes, and the harsh tyranny of force kept individuals from making any progress in escaping the station they were born into, except by the rarest chance or if they were particularly lucky. As people were born, so they lived; they couldn’t move up, and when that’s the case, the idea of Fate always takes center stage. The workings of destiny, the Irresistible overpowering both the good and the bad, as portrayed in Greek drama, mirrored the lives of many miserable slaves back then. They were forced to endure, as there was no chance for effort.

Aurora saw this and felt it deeply; ever anxious as she was for the good of all, she saw the sadness that reigned even in the midst of the fresh foliage of spring and among the flowers. It was Fate; it was Sophocles.

Aurora saw this and felt it deeply; always concerned for the well-being of everyone, she noticed the sadness that lingered even amid the fresh greenery of spring and among the flowers. It was Fate; it was Sophocles.

She took the part of the heroine herself, clad in Greek costume; Felix listened and watched, absorbed in his love. Never had that ancient drama appeared so beautiful as then, in the sunlight; the actors stepped upon the daisied sward, and the song of birds was all their music.

She took on the role of the heroine herself, dressed in a Greek costume; Felix listened and watched, totally caught up in his love. Never had that ancient drama seemed so beautiful as it did then, in the sunlight; the actors stepped onto the grassy stage, and the birds' songs were their only music.

While the play was still proceeding, those who were to form the usual procession had already been assembling in the court before the castle, and just after noon, to the sound of the trumpet, the Baron, with his youngest son beside him (the eldest was at Court), left the porch, wearing his fur-lined short mantle, his collar, and golden spurs, and the decoration won so many years before; all the insignia of his rank. He walked; his war-horse, fully caparisoned, with axe at the saddle-bow, was led at his right side, and upon the other came a knight carrying the banneret of the house.

While the play was still going on, those who were supposed to form the usual procession had already started gathering in the courtyard in front of the castle. Just after noon, as the trumpet sounded, the Baron, with his youngest son beside him (the eldest was at court), stepped out from the porch, wearing his fur-lined short cloak, his collar, and golden spurs, along with the decoration he had earned many years ago; all the symbols of his rank. He walked forward; his fully equipped war horse, with an axe strapped to the saddle, was led on his right side, and on his left was a knight carrying the banner of the house.

The gentlemen of the house followed closely, duly marshalled in ranks, and wearing the gayest dress; the leading retainers fully armed, brought up the rear. Immediately upon issuing from the gate of the wall, the procession was met and surrounded by the crowd, carrying large branches of may in bloom, flowers, and green willow boughs. The flowers they flung before him on the ground; the branches they bore with them, chanting old verses in honour of the family. The route was through the town, where the Baron stopped at the door of the Court House, and proclaimed a free pardon to all serfs (who were released within a few minutes) not guilty of the heavier crimes.

The men of the house followed closely behind, neatly lined up and dressed in their finest clothes; the leading attendants were fully armed and brought up the rear. As soon as they came out of the gate in the wall, the procession was met and surrounded by a crowd, carrying large blooming branches of may, flowers, and green willow branches. They threw flowers on the ground in front of him and held the branches while chanting old verses in honor of the family. The route went through the town, where the Baron stopped at the door of the Court House and announced a free pardon to all serfs (who were released within a few minutes) not guilty of serious crimes.

Thence he went to the pasture just beyond, carefully mown close and swept for the purpose, where the May-pole stood, wreathed with flowers and green branches. Beneath it he deposited a bag of money for distribution upon a carved butt placed there, the signal that the games were open. Instantly the fiddles began to play, and the feast really commenced. At the inns ale was served out freely (at the Baron's charge), carts, too, came down from the castle laden with ale and cooked provisions. Wishing them joy, the Baron returned by the same road to the castle, where dinner was already served in the hall and the sheds that had been erected to enlarge the accommodation.

Then he went to the nearby meadow, carefully mowed and cleaned for the occasion, where the May-pole stood, decorated with flowers and green branches. Underneath it, he set down a bag of money for distribution on a carved post that signaled the start of the games. Immediately, the fiddles began to play, and the feast truly began. At the inns, ale was served freely (on the Baron's tab), and carts also arrived from the castle loaded with ale and food. Wishing everyone joy, the Baron retraced his steps back to the castle, where dinner was already served in the hall and the temporary sheds set up for extra guests.

In the afternoon there were foot-races, horse-races, and leaping competitions, and the dances about the May-pole were prolonged far into the night. The second day, early in the morning, the barriers were opened, and trials of skill with the blunt sword, jousting with the blunt lance at the quintain, and wrestling began, and continued almost till sunset. Tournament with sharpened lance or sword, when the combatants fight with risk of serious wounds, can take place only in the presence of the Prince or his deputy. But in these conflicts sufficiently severe blows were given to disable the competitors.

In the afternoon, there were foot races, horse races, and jumping contests, and the Maypole dances went on late into the night. On the second day, early in the morning, the gates opened, and competitions started with blunt swords, jousting with blunt lances at the quintain, and wrestling, continuing almost until sunset. Tournaments with sharpened lances or swords, where fighters risk serious injuries, can only happen in front of the Prince or his representative. However, in these battles, they delivered strong enough hits to take out the competitors.

On the third day there was a set battle in the morning between fifteen men on each side, armed with the usual buckler or small shield, and stout single-sticks instead of swords. This combat excited more interest than all the duels that had preceded it; the crowd almost broke down the barriers, and the cheering and cries of encouragement could be heard upon the hills. Thrice the combatants rested from the engagement, and thrice at the trumpet call started again to meet each other, at least those who had sustained the first onslaught.

On the third day, there was a planned battle in the morning between fifteen men on each side, armed with the usual small shield and sturdy clubs instead of swords. This fight drew more attention than all the duels that came before it; the crowd nearly broke through the barriers, and the cheers and calls of encouragement echoed off the hills. The fighters paused from the battle three times, and each time, at the sound of the trumpet, they charged at each other again, at least those who had survived the initial attack.

Blood, indeed, was not shed (for the iron morions saved their skulls), but nearly half of the number required assistance to reach the tents pitched for their use. Then came more feasting, the final dinner prolonged till six in the evening, when the company, constantly rising from their seats, cheered the Baron, and drank to the prosperity of the house. After the horn blew at six, the guests who had come from a distance rapidly dispersed (their horses were already waiting), for they were anxious to pass the fifteen miles of forest before nightfall. Those on foot, and those ladies who had come in covered waggons, stayed till next morning, as they could not travel so speedily. By seven or eight the castle courtyard was comparatively empty, and the Baron, weary from the mere bodily efforts of saying farewell to so many, had flung himself at full length on a couch in the drawing-room.

Blood, indeed, wasn't shed (thanks to the iron helmets that protected their heads), but almost half of them needed help getting to the tents set up for them. Then came more feasting, with the last dinner extending until six in the evening, when the guests, frequently getting up from their seats, cheered for the Baron and raised their glasses to the prosperity of the house. After the horn sounded at six, the guests who had traveled from afar quickly left (their horses were already waiting), as they wanted to cover the fifteen miles of forest before night fell. Those on foot and the ladies who had arrived in covered wagons stayed until the next morning, as they couldn't travel as fast. By seven or eight, the castle courtyard was relatively empty, and the Baron, exhausted from the effort of saying goodbye to so many people, had thrown himself down on a couch in the drawing room.

During the whole of this time Felix had not obtained a single moment with Aurora; her time, when not occupied in attending to the guests, was always claimed by Lord Durand. Felix, after the short-lived but pure pleasure he had enjoyed in watching her upon the grass-grown stage, had endured three days of misery. He was among the crowd, he was in the castle itself, he sat at table with the most honoured visitors, yet he was distinct from all. There was no sympathy between them and him. The games, the dancing, the feasting and laughter, the ceaseless singing and shouting, and jovial jostling, jarred upon him.

During all this time, Felix hadn't managed to get even a moment with Aurora; whenever she wasn't busy with the guests, Lord Durand always claimed her attention. After the brief but intense joy he felt watching her on the grass-covered stage, he had suffered through three days of misery. He was surrounded by the crowd, he was in the castle itself, he dined with the most esteemed guests, yet he felt completely separate from everyone. There was no connection between him and them. The games, dancing, feasting, laughter, nonstop singing and shouting, and cheerful mingling all grated on him.

The boundless interest the people took in the combats, and especially that of the thirty, seemed to him a strange and inexplicable phenomenon. It did not excite him in the least; he could turn his back upon it without hesitation. He would, indeed, have left the crowd, and spent the day in the forest, or on the hills, but he could not leave Aurora. He must be near her; he must see her, though he was miserable. Now he feared that the last moment would come, and that he should not exchange a word with her.

The endless fascination the people had for the fights, especially the one with the thirty, seemed like a weird and unexplainable thing to him. It didn’t excite him at all; he could walk away from it without a second thought. He would have actually left the crowd to spend the day in the woods or on the hills, but he couldn’t leave Aurora. He needed to be close to her; he had to see her, even though he felt miserable. Now he worried that the final moment would arrive, and he wouldn’t get to say a word to her.

He could not, with any show of pretext, prolong his stay beyond the sunset; all were already gone, with the exceptions mentioned. It would be against etiquette to remain longer, unless specially invited, and he was not specially invited. Yet he lingered, and lingered. His horse was ready below; the groom, weary of holding the bridle, had thrown it over an iron hook in the yard, and gone about other business. The sun perceptibly declined, and the shadow of the beeches of the forest began to descend the grassy slope. Still he stayed, restlessly moving, now in the dining chamber, now in the hall, now at the foot of the staircase, with an unpleasant feeling that the servants looked at him curiously, and were watching him.

He couldn’t find any good reason to stay past sunset; everyone had already left, except for a few people. It would be rude to stick around any longer unless he was specifically invited, and he definitely wasn't. Still, he hung around, and hung around. His horse was ready below; the stable hand, tired of holding the reins, had tossed them over an iron hook in the yard and gone off to do something else. The sun was setting, and the shadows from the beech trees in the forest started to creep down the grassy slope. Yet he still remained, moving around restlessly—first in the dining room, then in the hall, and finally at the bottom of the staircase—with an uncomfortable feeling that the servants were watching him closely.

Oliver had gone long since, riding with his new friend Lord Durand; they must by now be half-way through the forest. Forced by the inexorable flight of time, he put his foot upon the staircase to go up to the drawing-room and bid farewell to the Baroness. He ascended it, step by step, as a condemned person goes to his doom. He stayed to look out of the open windows as he went by; anything to excuse delay to himself. He reached the landing at last, and had taken two steps towards the door, when Aurora's maid, who had been waiting there an hour or more for the opportunity, brushed past him, and whispered, "The Rose arbour."

Oliver had left a while ago, riding with his new friend Lord Durand; they must be halfway through the forest by now. Pressed by the relentless passage of time, he stepped onto the staircase to go up to the drawing-room and say goodbye to the Baroness. He climbed it, step by step, like a condemned person heading to their fate. He paused to glance out of the open windows as he passed by; anything to justify delaying himself. Finally, he reached the landing and had taken two steps toward the door when Aurora's maid, who had been waiting there for an hour or more, brushed past him and whispered, "The Rose arbour."

Without a word he turned, hastened down the stairs, ran through the castle yard, out at the gate, and, entering the gardens between the wall and the inner stockade, made for the arbour on the terrace where the drama had been enacted. Aurora was not there; but as he looked round, disappointed, she came from the Filbert walk, and, taking his arm, led him to the arbour. They sat down without a word. In a moment she placed her head upon his shoulder; he did not respond. She put her arm (how warm it felt!) about his neck; he yielded stiffly and ungraciously to the pressure; she drew down his head, and kissed him. His lips touched but did not press hers; they met, but did not join. In his sullen and angry silence he would not look. She drew still nearer, and whispered his name.

Without saying a word, he turned, hurried down the stairs, dashed through the castle yard, exited through the gate, and, entering the gardens between the wall and the inner stockade, headed for the arbor on the terrace where the play had taken place. Aurora wasn't there; but as he scanned the surroundings, disappointed, she appeared from the Filbert walk and, taking his arm, guided him to the arbor. They sat down in silence. After a moment, she rested her head on his shoulder; he didn't react. She wrapped her arm (it felt so warm!) around his neck; he stiffly and begrudgingly gave in to the pressure. She lowered his head and kissed him. His lips brushed against hers but didn’t press; they met but didn’t connect. In his brooding and angry silence, he refused to look at her. She moved even closer and whispered his name.

Then he broke out: he pushed her away; his petty jealousy and injured self-esteem poured out upon her.

Then he lashed out: he shoved her aside; his petty jealousy and wounded pride spilled over onto her.

"I am not the heir to an earldom," he said; "I do not ride with a score of gentlemen at my back. They have some wonderful diamonds, have they not—Countess?"

"I’m not the heir to an earldom," he said; "I don’t ride with a bunch of gentlemen behind me. They do have some amazing diamonds, don’t they—Countess?"

"Felix!"

"Hey, Felix!"

"It is no use. Yes, your voice is sweet, I know. But you, all of you, despise me. I am nothing, no one!"

"It’s pointless. Yes, I know your voice is sweet. But you, all of you, look down on me. I am nobody, worthless!"

"You are all, everything, to me."

"You mean everything to me."

"You were with—with Durand the whole time."

"You were with Durand the entire time."

"I could not help myself."

"I couldn't help myself."

"Not help yourself! Do you think I believe that?"

"Not help yourself! Do you think I believe that?"

"Felix, dear. I tell you I could not help myself; I could not, indeed. You do not know all—"

"Felix, dear. I honestly couldn’t hold back; I really couldn't. You don’t know everything—"

"No, probably not. I do not know the terms of the marriage contract."

"No, probably not. I don't know the terms of the marriage contract."

"Felix, there is no such thing. Why, what has come to you? How pale you look! Sit down!" for he had risen.

"Felix, that doesn't exist. What’s wrong with you? You look so pale! Sit down!" because he had stood up.

"I cannot, Aurora, dear; I cannot! Oh, what shall I do? I love you so!"

"I can’t, Aurora, my dear; I can’t! Oh, what am I going to do? I love you so much!"


CHAPTER XI
AURORA


Felix fell on the seat beside her, burying his face in the folds of her dress; he sobbed, not with tears, but choking passion. She held him to her heart as if he had been a child, stroking his hair and kissing it, whispering to him, assuring him that her love was his, that she was unchanged. She told him that it was not her fault. A little while before the feast the Baron had suddenly broken out into a fit of temper, such as she had never seen him indulge in previously; the cause was pressure put upon him by his creditors. Unpleasant truths had escaped him; amongst the rest, his dislike, his positive disapproval of the tacit engagement they had entered into.

Felix collapsed on the seat next to her, burying his face in the folds of her dress; he cried, not with tears, but with overwhelming emotion. She held him close to her heart like he was a child, stroking his hair and kissing it, whispering to him, reassuring him that her love was his, that she hadn't changed. She told him it wasn't her fault. Just before the feast, the Baron had suddenly launched into a fit of rage, unlike anything she had ever witnessed before; the reason was pressure from his creditors. Unpleasant truths had slipped out, including his dislike and outright disapproval of the unspoken agreement they had made.

He declared that if the least outward sign of it appeared before the guests that were expected, he would order Felix to leave the place, and cancel the hearth-friendship, no matter what the consequence. It was clear that he was set upon a wealthy and powerful alliance for her; that the Earl was either coming, or would send his son, he knew; and he knew that nothing so repels a possible suitor as the rumour that the lady has a previous engagement. In short, he made it a condition of Felix's presence being tolerated at all, that Aurora should carefully abstain from showing the slightest attention to him; that she should ignore his existence.

He said that if there was even the slightest indication of it in front of the guests who were expected, he would make Felix leave and cut off their friendship, no matter the consequences. It was obvious that he wanted her to be part of a wealthy and powerful alliance; he knew the Earl was either coming or would send his son. He understood that nothing drives away a potential suitor like the rumor that the lady is already engaged. In short, he made it a condition for Felix to be tolerated at all that Aurora should completely avoid showing any interest in him; she should pretend he doesn't exist.

Nor could she prevent Durand following her without a marked refusal to listen to his conversation, a refusal which would most certainly at once have brought about the dreaded explosion. She thought it better, under the circumstances, to preserve peace, lest intercourse between her and Felix should be entirely broken off for ever. This was the secret history of the apparent indifference and neglect which had so deeply hurt him. The explanation, accompanied as it was with so many tender expressions and caresses, soothed him; he returned her kisses and became calmer. He could not doubt her, for in his heart he had suspected something of the kind long since.

Nor could she stop Durand from following her without outright refusing to engage in his conversation, which would definitely have led to the explosive confrontation she dreaded. She thought it was better, given the situation, to keep the peace, so that her relationship with Felix wouldn’t be completely ruined forever. This was the hidden story behind the seeming indifference and neglect that had hurt him so much. The explanation, filled with so much tenderness and affection, comforted him; he kissed her back and began to relax. He couldn’t doubt her, as he had suspected something like this in his heart for a long time.

Yet it was not so much the explanation itself, nor even the love she poured upon him, as the mere fact of her presence so near that brought him to himself. The influence of her steadfast nature, of her clear, broad, straightforward view of things, the decision of her character, the high, unselfish motives which animated her, all together supplied that which was wanting in himself. His indecision, his too impressionable disposition, which checked and stayed the force of his talent, and counteracted the determination of a naturally iron will; these, as it were, were relieved; in a word, with her he became himself.

Yet it wasn’t just the explanation itself or even the love she showed him that brought him back to himself; it was simply the fact that she was there, so close. The strength of her nature, her clear and straightforward view of things, the determination of her character, the high, selfless motives that drove her—all of these provided what he was missing in himself. His indecision and overly impressionable nature, which held back his talent and clashed with his naturally strong will, were, in a way, eased; in short, with her, he found himself.

How many times he had told her as much! How many times she had replied that it was not herself, but that in which she believed, that was the real cause of this feeling! It was that ancient and true religion; the religion of the primitive church, as she found it in the fragments of the Scriptures that had come down from the ancients.

How many times he had told her that! How many times she had responded that it wasn't her, but what she believed in, that was the real reason for this feeling! It was that old and genuine religion; the faith of the early church, as she discovered it in the fragments of the Scriptures passed down from the ancients.

Aurora had learnt this faith from childhood; it was, indeed, a tradition of the house preserved unbroken these hundred years in the midst of the jarring creeds, whose disciples threatened and destroyed each other. On the one hand, the gorgeous rite of the Vice-Pope, with the priests and the monks, claimed dominion, and really held a large share, both over the body and the soul; on the other, the Leaguers, with their bold, harsh, and flowerless creed, were equally over-bearing and equally bigoted. Around them the Bushmen wandered without a god; the Romany called upon the full moon. Within courts and cities the gay and the learned alike mocked at all faith, and believed in gold alone.

Aurora had learned this faith from a young age; it was, in fact, a tradition in her family that had remained intact for a hundred years amidst the conflicting beliefs, whose followers threatened and harmed one another. On one side, the elaborate rituals of the Vice-Pope, along with the priests and monks, claimed authority and really held significant control over both body and soul; on the other, the Leaguers, with their bold, harsh, and colorless belief system, were equally domineering and equally narrow-minded. Around them, the Bushmen roamed without a god; the Romany worshipped the full moon. In the courts and cities, both the carefree and the educated mocked all forms of faith, believing only in money.

Cruelty reigned everywhere; mercy, except in the name of honour, there was none; humanity was unknown. A few, a very few only, had knowledge of or held to the leading tenets, which, in the time of the ancients, were assented to by everyone, such as the duty of humanity to all, the duty of saving and protecting life, of kindness and gentleness. These few, with their pastors, simple and unassuming, had no power or influence; yet they existed here and there, a living protest against the lawlessness and brutality of the time.

Cruelty was everywhere; there was no mercy except when it came to honor, and humanity was a foreign concept. Only a handful of people still understood or embraced the basic principles that everyone once accepted in ancient times, like the responsibility to care for others, the duty to save and protect life, and the importance of kindness and compassion. These few, along with their humble pastors, had no power or influence, yet they were scattered throughout, standing as a living protest against the chaos and brutality of their time.

Among these the house of Thyma had in former days been conspicuous, but of late years the barons of Thyma had, more from policy than from aught else, rather ignored their ancestral faith, leaning towards the League, which was then powerful in that kingdom. To have acted otherwise would have been to exclude himself from all appointments. But Aurora, learning the old faith at her mother's knee, had become too deeply imbued with its moral beauty to consent to this course. By degrees, as she grew up, it became in her a passion; more than a faith, a passion; the object of her life.

Among these, the Thyma family had once been quite prominent, but in recent years, the barons of Thyma had, more out of strategy than anything else, largely turned their backs on their ancestral faith, instead aligning with the League, which was powerful in that kingdom at the time. If they had acted differently, they would have missed out on all positions of influence. However, Aurora, having learned about the old faith from her mother, had become so deeply inspired by its moral beauty that she couldn't agree with this approach. As she grew up, it transformed into a passion for her; it was more than just a belief, it became the focus of her life.

A girl, indeed, can do but little in our iron days, but that little she did. The chapel beside the castle, long since fallen to decay, was, at her earnest request, repaired; a pastor came and remained as chaplain, and services, of the simplest kind, but serious and full of meaning, took place twice a week. To these she drew as many as possible of the inhabitants of the enclosure; some even came from afar once now and then to attend them. Correspondence was carried on with the remnant of the faith.

A girl, it’s true, can do very little in our harsh times, but she did what she could. The chapel next to the castle, long since fallen apart, was, at her strong request, fixed up; a pastor came and stayed as chaplain, and services, simple yet heartfelt and meaningful, were held twice a week. She brought as many of the people from the area as possible to these services; some even traveled from far away every now and then to attend. Communication was maintained with the remaining faithful.

That no one might plead ignorance (for there was up to the date no written record) Aurora set herself the task of reducing the traditions which had been handed down to writing. When the manuscript was at last completed it occupied her months to transcribe copies of it for circulation; and she still continued to make copies, which were sent by messengers and by the travelling merchants to the markets, and even across the sea. Apart from its intrinsically elevating character, the mere mental labour expended on this work had undoubtedly strengthened a naturally fine intellect. As she said, it was the faith, the hope that that faith would one day be recognised, which gave her so much influence over others.

That no one could claim ignorance (since there was no written record until then), Aurora took it upon herself to write down the traditions that had been passed down. Once the manuscript was finally finished, it took her months to make copies for distribution; she continued to produce copies that were sent by messengers and traveling merchants to various markets, and even across the sea. Beyond its uplifting content, the mental effort she put into this work definitely sharpened her already sharp mind. As she said, it was her faith and the hope that one day this faith would be acknowledged that gave her such a strong influence over others.

Upon this one thing only they differed; Felix did not oppose, did not even argue, he was simply untouched. It was not that he believed in anything else, nor that he doubted; he was merely indifferent. He had too great a natural aptitude for the physical sciences, and too clear a mind, to accept that which was taught by the one or the other of the two chief opposing parties. Nor could he join in the ridicule and derision of the gay courtiers, for the mystery of existence had impressed him deeply while wandering alone in the forest. But he stood aloof; he smiled and listened, unconvinced; like the wild creatures of the forest, he had no ears for these matters. He loved Aurora, that was all.

The only thing they disagreed on was this: Felix didn’t argue or oppose; he was simply unaffected. It wasn’t that he believed in something else or that he had doubts; he just didn’t care. He was naturally talented in the physical sciences, and his mind was too clear to accept what the two main opposing groups taught. He also couldn’t join in the mockery of the flamboyant courtiers, as the mystery of existence had left a deep impression on him while he wandered alone in the forest. But he kept his distance; he smiled and listened, unconvinced; like the wild creatures of the forest, he was indifferent to these matters. He loved Aurora, and that was it.

But he felt the influence just the same; with all his powers of mind and contempt of superstitions in others, he could not at times shake off the apprehensions aroused by untoward omens, as when he stepped upon the adder in the woods. Aurora knew nothing of such things; her faith was clear and bright like a star; nothing could alarm her, or bring uneasiness of mind. This beautiful calm, not cold, but glowing with hope and love, soothed him.

But he felt the influence just the same; despite all his intelligence and disdain for other people's superstitions, he sometimes couldn't shake off the fears triggered by bad omens, like when he stepped on the snake in the woods. Aurora knew nothing of such things; her faith was clear and bright like a star; nothing could frighten her or cause her any worry. This beautiful calm, not cold but filled with hope and love, comforted him.

That evening, with her hope and love, with her message of trust, she almost persuaded him. He almost turned to what she had so long taught. He almost repented of that hardness of heart, that unutterable distance, as it were, between him and other men, which lay at the bottom of his proposed expedition. He opened his lips to confess to her his purpose, and had he done so assuredly she would have persuaded him from it. But in the very act of speaking, he hesitated. It was characteristic of him to do so. Whether she instinctively felt that there was something concealed from her, or guessed that the discontent she knew he had so long endured was coming to a point, or feared lest what she had told him might drive him to some ill-considered act, she begged him with all the power of her love to do nothing hasty, or in despair, nothing that would separate them. He threw his arms around her, he pressed her closely to him, he trembled with the passion and the struggle within him.

That evening, filled with her hope and love, and her message of trust, she almost convinced him. He nearly turned towards everything she had been teaching him for so long. He almost regretted the stubbornness in his heart, that deep sense of separation he felt from other people, which lay at the root of his planned journey. He opened his mouth to share his intentions with her, and if he had done so, she would definitely have talked him out of it. But in the very moment of speaking, he hesitated. It was typical of him to do this. Whether she sensed that he was hiding something from her, or guessed that the dissatisfaction he had been feeling for a while was reaching a breaking point, or feared that what she told him could push him toward a reckless decision, she implored him with all her love to avoid acting impulsively, or in despair, or doing anything that could drive them apart. He wrapped his arms around her, held her tightly against him, and trembled with the passion and conflict within him.

"My lady calls for you, Mademoiselle," said a voice; it was Aurora's maid who had kept watch. "She has asked for you some time since. Someone is coming into the garden!"

"My lady is asking for you, Mademoiselle," said a voice; it was Aurora's maid who had been keeping watch. "She has been wanting to see you for a while now. Someone is coming into the garden!"

There was no help for it; Aurora kissed him, and was gone before he could come to himself. How long the interview had lasted (time flies swiftly in such sweet intercourse), or how long he sat there after she left, he could not tell; but when he went out already the dusk was gathering, the sun had gone down, and in the east the as yet pale orb of the moon was rising over the hills. As if in a dream he walked with unsteady steps to the castle stable; his horse had been put back, and the grooms suggested to him that it was better not to attempt the forest at night. But he was determined; he gave them all the coin he had about him, it was not much, but more than they had expected.

There was no stopping it; Aurora kissed him and left before he could collect his thoughts. He couldn't say how long the visit had lasted (time flies quickly during such sweet moments), or how long he sat there after she was gone, but when he finally went outside, dusk was settling in, the sun had set, and the pale moon was rising over the hills in the east. He walked to the castle stable in a daze, his steps unsteady; his horse had been put away, and the stable staff suggested that he shouldn’t try to navigate the forest at night. But he was set on going; he gave them all the money he had on him, which wasn’t much, but more than they expected.

They ran beside him to the barrier; advising him as they ran, as he would go, to string his bow and loosen an arrow in the girdle, and above all, not to loiter, or let his horse walk, but to keep him at as sharp a trot as he could. The fact that so many wealthy persons had assembled at the castle for the feast would be sure to be known to the banditti (the outlaws of the cities and the escaped serfs). They were certain to be on the look out for travellers; let him beware.

They ran beside him to the barrier, giving him advice as they went—urging him to string his bow and have an arrow ready at his waist, and above all, not to waste time or let his horse walk, but to keep it at a brisk trot as much as possible. The fact that so many rich people had gathered at the castle for the feast would definitely be noticed by the bandits (the outlaws from the cities and escaped serfs). They would surely be watching for travelers, so he needed to be careful.

His ears tingled and his head felt hot, as if the blood had rushed into it (it was the violence of the emotion that he had felt), as he rode from the barrier, hearing, and yet without conscious knowledge of what they said. They watched him up the slope, and saw him disappear from sight under the dark beeches of the forest.

His ears buzzed and his head felt hot, as if blood had rushed to it (it was the intensity of the emotion he had felt), as he rode away from the barrier, hearing the words but not fully realizing what they meant. They watched him go up the slope and saw him vanish from view under the dark beech trees of the forest.


CHAPTER XII
NIGHT IN THE FOREST


At first Felix rode quickly, but his horse stumbling, though accustomed to the woods, warned him to be more careful. The passage of so many horsemen in the last few days had cut up and destroyed the track, which was nothing but a green path, and the covered waggons had of course assisted in rendering it rough and broken. He therefore rode slowly, and giving his horse his head, he picked his way of his own accord at the side of the road, often brushing against the underwood.

At first, Felix rode fast, but his horse stumbled, even though it was used to the woods, which made him realize he needed to be more careful. The many horsemen that had passed through in the last few days had damaged the trail, which was just a grassy path, and the covered wagons had definitely made it rough and uneven. So, he rode slowly, letting his horse find its footing while he navigated along the side of the road, often brushing against the underbrush.

Still, indeed, absorbed by the feelings which had almost mastered him in the arbour, and thinking of Aurora, he forgot where he was, till the dismal howling of wood-dogs deep in the forest woke him. It was almost pitch dark under the tall beeches, the highest of the trees preventing the beams of the moon from illuminating the path till later in the night. Like a curtain the thick foliage above shut out the sky, so that no star was visible. When the wood-dogs ceased there was no sound beyond the light fall of the horse's hoofs as he walked upon the grass. Darkness and silence prevailed; he could see nothing. He spoke to his horse and patted his neck; he stepped a little faster and lifted his head, which he had held low as if making his way by scent.

Still, truly caught up in the feelings that had nearly overwhelmed him in the grove, and thinking of Aurora, he lost track of where he was until the mournful howling of wild dogs deep in the forest brought him back to reality. It was almost completely dark under the tall beech trees, the tallest branches blocking the moonlight from lighting the path until later in the night. The thick canopy above hung like a curtain, shutting out the sky so not a single star was visible. When the wild dogs stopped, there was only the soft sound of the horse's hooves as he walked on the grass. Darkness and silence surrounded him; he couldn't see anything. He talked to his horse and patted its neck; he picked up his pace a little and raised his head, which he had kept low as if navigating by smell.

The gloom weighed upon him, unhappy as he was. Often as he had voluntarily sought the loneliness of the woods, now in this state of mind, it oppressed him; he remembered that beyond the beeches the ground was open and cleared by a forest fire, and began to be anxious to reach it. It seemed an hour, but it really was only a few minutes, when the beeches became thinner and wider apart, the foliage above ceased, and the stars shone. Before him was the open space he had desired, sloping to the right hand, the tall grass grey-green in the moonlight, and near at hand sparkling with dew.

The gloom hung heavy on him, and he felt miserable. Although he had often sought out the solitude of the woods, in this moment, it felt suffocating; he remembered that beyond the beech trees, the ground was cleared from a forest fire and he started to feel anxious to get there. It felt like it took an hour, but it was really just a few minutes before the beech trees thinned out and spread apart, the canopy above disappeared, and the stars twinkled. In front of him was the open space he longed for, sloping to the right, the tall grass a grey-green hue in the moonlight, and nearby sparkling with dew.

Amongst it stood the crooked and charred stems of furze with which it had been covered before the fire passed. A white owl floated rather than flew by, following the edge of the forest; from far down the slope came the chattering notes of a brook-sparrow, showing that there was water in the hollow. Some large animal moved into the white mist that hung there and immediately concealed it, like a cloud upon the ground. He was not certain in the dim light, and with so momentary and distant a view, but supposed from its size that it must have been a white or dun wood-cow.

Among it stood the twisted and burned stems of gorse that it had been covered with before the fire came through. A white owl glided instead of flying, following the edge of the forest; from far down the slope came the chattering notes of a brook-sparrow, indicating there was water in the hollow. A large animal moved into the white mist that hung there and was quickly hidden, like a cloud on the ground. He wasn’t sure in the dim light, and with such a brief and distant view, but guessed from its size that it must have been a white or light-colored deer.

Ahead, across the open, rose the dark top of the fir trees through which the route ran. Instead of the relief which he had anticipated as he rode towards them, the space clear of trees around seemed to expose him to the full view of all that might be lurking in the forest. As he approached the firs and saw how dark it was beneath them, the shadowy depths suggested uncertain shapes hiding therein, and his memory immediately reverted to the book of magic he had read at the castle.

Ahead, across the open area, the dark tops of the fir trees rose, marking the path ahead. Instead of the relief he had expected as he rode closer, the clear space around him felt like it exposed him to everything that might be hiding in the forest. As he drew nearer to the firs and noticed how dark it was beneath them, the shadowy depths hinted at vague shapes lurking inside, and he immediately thought of the book of magic he had read at the castle.

There could not be such things, and yet no one in his heart doubted their existence; deny it as they might with their tongues as they sat at the supper-table and handed round the ale, out of doors in the night, the haste to pass the haunted spot, the bated breath, and the fearful glances cast around, told another tale. He endeavoured to call philosophy to his aid; he remembered, too, how many nights he had spent in the deepest forest without seeing anything, and without even thinking of such matters. He reproved himself for his folly, and asked himself if ever he could hope to be a successful leader of men who started at a shadow. In vain: the tone of his mind had been weakened by the strain it had undergone.

There couldn't possibly be such things, and yet no one truly doubted they existed; no matter how much they denied it at the dinner table while passing around the beer, outside in the dark, the rush to get past the haunted spot, the held breath, and the scared looks they exchanged told a different story. He tried to turn to philosophy for support; he also remembered how many nights he had spent deep in the woods without seeing anything and without even thinking about such things. He scolded himself for being foolish and questioned whether he could ever hope to be an effective leader if he flinched at a shadow. It was useless: the tension his mind had gone through had left it fragile.

Instead of strengthening him, the teachings of philosophy now seemed cold and feeble, and it occurred to him that possibly the belief of the common people (fully shared by their religious instructors) was just as much entitled to credence as these mere suppositions and theories. The details of the volume recurred to his mind; the accurate description of the demons of the forest and the hill, and especially the horrible vampires enfolding the victim with outstretched wings. In spite of himself, incredulous, yet excited, he pressed his horse to greater speed, though the track was narrow and very much broken under the firs. He obeyed, and trotted, but reluctantly, and needed continual urging.

Instead of empowering him, the teachings of philosophy now felt cold and weak, and it occurred to him that perhaps the beliefs of ordinary people (which were fully shared by their religious leaders) deserved just as much belief as these mere assumptions and theories. The details of the book flashed back into his mind; the precise descriptions of the forest and hill demons, and especially the horrifying vampires enveloping their victims with outstretched wings. Despite himself, skeptical yet intrigued, he urged his horse to move faster, even though the path was narrow and heavily worn under the fir trees. He complied and trotted, but reluctantly, needing constant encouragement.

The yellow spark of a glowworm shining by a bush made him set his teeth; trifling and well known as it was, the light suddenly seen thrilled him with the terror of the unexpected. Strange rushings sounded among the fern, as if the wings of a demon brushed it as he travelled. Felix knew that they were caused by rabbits hastening off, or a boar bounding away, yet they increased the feverish excitement with which he was burdened. Though dark beneath the firs, it was not like the darkness of the beeches; these trees did not form a perfect canopy overhead everywhere. In places he could see where a streak of moonlight came aslant through an opening and reached the ground. One such streak fell upon the track ahead; the trees there had decayed and fallen, and a broad band of light lit up the way.

The yellow glow of a glowworm shining near a bush made him grit his teeth; trivial and familiar as it was, the sudden appearance of the light filled him with the fear of the unexpected. Strange rustlings could be heard among the ferns, as if a demon's wings were brushing against them as he moved. Felix knew these sounds were just rabbits hurrying away or a boar leaping off, yet they added to the restless excitement that weighed on him. Although it was dark under the fir trees, it wasn’t the same kind of darkness as under the beeches; these trees didn’t form a complete canopy overhead everywhere. In some spots, he could see a streak of moonlight coming through an opening and hitting the ground. One of those beams fell on the path ahead; the trees there had rotted and fallen, and a wide band of light illuminated the way.

As he approached it and had almost entered, suddenly something shot towards him in the air; a flash, as it were, as if some object had crossed the streak, and was rendered visible for the tenth of a second, like a mote in the sunbeams. At the same instant of time, the horse, which he had pressed to go faster, put his foot into a rut or hole, and stumbled, and Felix was flung so far forward that he only saved himself from being thrown by clinging to his neck. A slight whizzing sound passed over his head, followed immediately by a sharp tap against a tree in his rear.

As he got closer and was about to enter, suddenly something shot through the air at him; a flash, as if some object had zipped across his path, visible for a split second, like a speck in the sunlight. At the same moment, the horse, which he had urged to go faster, stepped into a rut or hole and stumbled, causing Felix to lurch so far forward that he barely saved himself from falling by grabbing onto its neck. A slight whizzing sound went over his head, quickly followed by a sharp thud against a tree behind him.

The thing happened in the twinkling of an eye, but he recognised the sound; it was the whiz of a crossbow bolt, which had missed his head, and buried its point in a fir. The stumble saved him; the bolt would have struck his head or chest had not the horse gone nearly on his knee. The robber had so planned his ambush that his prey should be well seen, distinct in the moonlight, so that his aim might be sure. Recovering himself, the horse, without needing the spur, as if he recognised the danger to his rider, started forward at full speed, and raced, regardless of ruts, along the track. Felix, who had hardly got into his seat again, could for awhile but barely restrain it, so wildly he fled. He must have been carried within a few yards of the bandit, but saw nothing, neither did a second bolt follow him; the crossbow takes time to bend, and if the robber had companions they were differently armed.

The event happened in the blink of an eye, but he recognized the sound; it was the whoosh of a crossbow bolt that had missed his head and lodged its tip in a fir tree. The stumble saved him; the bolt would have hit his head or chest if the horse hadn't almost gone down on his knee. The robber had planned his ambush so that his target would be clearly visible in the moonlight, ensuring a precise shot. Regaining his balance, the horse, as if sensing the danger to its rider, raced forward at full speed without needing a spur, galloping wildly along the path. Felix, who had barely settled back into his seat, could hardly control it for a while, so recklessly did he speed away. He must have been within a few yards of the bandit but saw nothing, and no second bolt followed him; the crossbow takes time to reload, and if the robber had accomplices, they were armed differently.

He was a furlong or more from the spot before he quite realized the danger he had escaped. His bow was unstrung in his hand, his arrows were all in the quiver; thus, had the bolt struck him, even if the wound had not been mortal (as it most likely would have been) he could have made no resistance. How foolish to disregard the warnings of the grooms at the castle! It was now too late; all he could do was to ride. Dreading every moment to be thrown, he pushed on as fast as the horse would go. There was no pursuit, and after a mile or so, as he left the firs and entered the ash woods, he slackened somewhat. It was, indeed, necessary, for here the hoofs of preceding horsemen had poached the turf (always damp under ash) into mud. It was less dark, for the boughs of the ashes did not meet above.

He was a good distance away from the spot before he fully realized the danger he had escaped. His bow was unstrung in his hand, and his arrows were still in the quiver; if the bolt had hit him, even if the injury wasn’t fatal (which it most likely would have been), he wouldn’t have been able to defend himself. How stupid to ignore the warnings from the stable boys at the castle! Now it was too late; all he could do was keep riding. Fearful of falling off, he urged the horse to go as fast as it could. There was no one chasing him, and after about a mile, as he left the fir trees and entered the ash woods, he slowed down a bit. It was definitely necessary, because the hooves of previous riders had turned the damp turf under the ash trees into mud. It was less dark here, as the branches of the ash trees didn’t meet above him.

As he passed, wood-pigeons rose with loud clatterings from their roosting-places, and once or twice he saw in the gloom the fiery phosphoric eye-balls of the grey wood-cats. How gladly he recognised presently the change from trees to bushes, when he rode out from the thick ashes among the low hawthorns, and knew that he was within a mile or so of the South Barrier at home! Already he heard the song of the nightingale, the long note which at night penetrates so far; the nightingale, which loves the hawthorn and the neighbourhood of man. Imperceptibly he increased the speed again; the horse, too, knew that he was nearing home, and responded willingly.

As he rode past, wood pigeons took off with loud flapping sounds from their resting spots, and a couple of times he caught sight of the glowing, phosphorescent eyes of the grey woodcats in the shadows. He felt a sense of relief when he noticed the transition from trees to bushes as he emerged from the thick ashes among the low hawthorns, realizing he was about a mile away from the South Barrier at home! He could already hear the nightingale's song, the long note that travels so far at night; the nightingale, which loves hawthorns and the company of people. Without even realizing it, he picked up the pace again; the horse also sensed they were getting close to home and responded eagerly.

The track was much broader and fairly good, but he knew that at one spot where it was marshy it must be cut up. There he went at the side, almost brushing a projecting maple bush. Something struck the horse, he fancied the rebound of a bough; he jumped, literally jumped, like a buck, and tore along the road. With one foot out of the stirrup, it was with the utmost difficulty he stuck to his seat; he was not riding, but holding on for a moment or two. Presently recovering from the jolt, he endeavoured to check him, but the bit was of no avail; the animal was beside himself with terror, and raced headlong till they reached the barrier. It was, of course, closed, and the warder was asleep; so that, until he dismounted, and kicked and shouted, no one challenged him.

The track was wider and in pretty good condition, but he knew there was a part where it got marshy and must have been torn up. He rode close to the edge, almost brushing against a protruding maple bush. Something startled the horse—he thought it was the rebound of a branch; it jumped, literally jumped, like a deer, and took off down the road. With one foot out of the stirrup, it was a real struggle to stay in the saddle; he wasn’t riding but just holding on for a moment or two. After a bit, he regained his balance and tried to rein him in, but the bit was useless; the horse was panicking and bolting until they reached the barrier. It was, of course, closed, and the guard was asleep, so no one stopped him until he got off, kicked, and shouted.

Then the warder, spear in hand, appeared with his lantern, but recognising the voice, ran to the gate. Within the gate a few yards there were the embers of a fire, and round it a bivouac of footmen who had been to the feast, and had returned thus far before nightfall. Hearing the noise, some of them arose, and came round him, when one immediately exclaimed and asked if he was wounded. Felix replied that he was not, but looking at his foot where the man pointed, saw that it was covered with blood. But, upon close examination, there was no cut or incision; he was not hurt. The warder now called to them, and showed a long deep scratch on the near flank of the horse, from which the blood was dripping.

Then the guard, spear in hand, appeared with his lantern. Recognizing the voice, he ran to the gate. A few yards inside the gate, there were the embers of a fire, and around it was a group of foot soldiers who had been to the feast and had returned this far before nightfall. Hearing the noise, some of them got up and came over to him, and one immediately exclaimed and asked if he was hurt. Felix said he wasn't, but looking at his foot where the man pointed, he saw it was covered in blood. However, upon closer inspection, there was no cut or injury; he wasn't hurt. The guard then called to them and pointed out a long, deep scratch on the horse's side, from which blood was dripping.

It was such a scratch as might have been made with an iron nail, and, without hesitation, they all put it down to a Bushman's spud. Without doubt, the Bushman, hearing Felix approach, had hidden in the maple bush, and, as he passed, struck with his nail-like dagger; but, miscalculating the speed at which the horse was going, instead of piercing the thigh of the rider, the blow fell on the horse, and the sharp point was dragged along the side. The horse trembled as they touched him.

It was a scratch that could have been made with an iron nail, and without thinking twice, they all assumed it was from a Bushman's spud. Clearly, the Bushman, hearing Felix come closer, had hidden in the maple bushes and, as he went by, struck with his nail-like dagger. However, misjudging how fast the horse was moving, instead of hitting the rider's thigh, the blow landed on the horse, and the sharp point was dragged along its side. The horse shuddered when they touched him.

"Sir," said one of the retainers, their headman, "if you will pardon me, you had best string your bow and send a shaft through his heart, for he will die in misery before morning."

"Sir," said one of the retainers, their leader, "if you don't mind me saying, you should string your bow and shoot an arrow through his heart, because he will suffer greatly before morning."

The Bushman's spud, the one he uses for assassination or to despatch his prey, is poisoned. It is a lingering poison, and takes several hours to produce its effect; but no remedy is known, and many who have escaped from the cowardly blow have crawled to the path only to expire in torture. There was no denying that what the retainer proposed was the only thing that could be done. The warder had meantime brought a bucket of water, of which the poor creature drank eagerly. Felix could not do it; he could not slay the creature which had carried him so long, and which twice that night had saved him, and was now to die, as it were, in his place. He could not consent to it; he led the horse towards home, but he was weak or weary, and could not be got beyond the Pen.

The Bushman's spud, the one he uses for killing or to take down his prey, is poisoned. It’s a slow-acting poison that takes several hours to kick in; however, no cure is known, and many who have survived the cowardly strike have crawled to the path only to die in agony. There was no denying that what the retainer suggested was the only option available. Meanwhile, the guard had brought a bucket of water, which the poor creature eagerly drank. Felix couldn’t do it; he couldn’t kill the creature that had carried him for so long and had saved him twice that night, which was now meant to die, in a way, in his place. He couldn’t agree to it; he led the horse toward home, but he was either weak or tired, and couldn’t get past the Pen.

There the group assembled around him. Felix ordered the scratch to be cleansed, while he ran over in his mind every possible remedy. He gave strict orders that he should not be despatched, and then hastened to the house. He undid with trembling hands the thongs that bound his chest, and took out his manuscripts, hoping against hope that among the many notes he had made there might be something. But there was nothing, or in his excitement he overlooked it. Remembering that Oliver was a great authority upon horses, he went into his room and tried to wake him. Oliver, weary with his ride, and not as yet having slept off the effects of the feast, could not be roused.

The group gathered around him. Felix ordered the wound to be cleaned while he considered every possible treatment. He made it clear that he should not be sent away and then rushed to the house. With shaking hands, he untied the straps binding his chest and pulled out his notes, hoping against hope that among the many scribbles, there might be something useful. But there was nothing, or in his excitement, he missed it. Remembering that Oliver was an expert on horses, he went into his room and tried to wake him. Oliver, tired from his ride and still not fully recovered from the feast, couldn't be stirred.

Felix left him and hurried back to the Pen. Weary as he was, he watched by the horse till the larks began to sing and the dawn was at hand. As yet he had not shown any severe symptoms except twitching of the limbs, and a constant thirst, which water could not quench. But suddenly he fell, and the old retainer warned them all to stand away, for he would bite anything that was near. His words were instantly fulfilled; he rolled, and kicked, and bit at everything within reach. Seeing this agony, Felix could no longer delay. He strung his bow, but he could not fit the arrow to the string, he missed the notch, so much did his hands shake. He motioned to the retainers who had gathered around, and one of them thrust his spear into the horse behind his shoulder.

Felix left him and rushed back to the Pen. Exhausted as he was, he kept watch over the horse until the larks began to sing and dawn approached. So far, he hadn’t shown any severe symptoms other than twitching limbs and an unquenchable thirst for water. But suddenly, he collapsed, and the old servant warned everyone to step back, as he would bite anything nearby. His warning came true; he thrashed around, kicking and biting at everything within reach. Witnessing this agony, Felix couldn't wait any longer. He readied his bow but struggled to nock the arrow; his hands were shaking so badly. He signaled to the retainers who had gathered around, and one of them plunged his spear into the horse's shoulder.

When Felix at last returned to his chamber he could not but reflect, as the sun rose and the beams entered, that every omen had been against him; the adder under foot, the bandit's bolt, the Bushman's poisoned point. He slept till noon, and, upon going out, unrefreshed and still weary, he found that they had already buried the horse, and ordered a mound to be raised above his grave. The day passed slowly; he wandered about the castle and the enclosed grounds, seeking comfort and finding none. His mind vacillated; he recalled all that Aurora had said, persuading him not to do anything in haste or despair. Yet he could not continue in his present condition. Another day went by, and still undecided and doubting, he remained at home.

When Felix finally returned to his room, he couldn't help but think, as the sun rose and its beams came in, that every sign had been against him: the snake underfoot, the bandit's arrow, the Bushman's poisoned dart. He slept until noon, and when he went outside, feeling exhausted and still drained, he found that they had already buried the horse and had piled earth on its grave. The day dragged on; he wandered around the castle and the grounds, looking for comfort but finding none. His thoughts bounced around; he remembered everything that Aurora had told him, warning him not to act in haste or despair. Yet he couldn't keep going in his current state. Another day passed, and still unsure and conflicted, he stayed home.

Oliver began to jest at him; had he abandoned the expedition? Oliver could not understand indecision; perhaps he did not see so many sides to the question, his mind was always quickly made up. Action was his forte, not thought. The night came, and still Felix lingered, hesitating.

Oliver started joking with him; had he given up on the mission? Oliver couldn’t grasp indecision; maybe he just didn’t see so many angles to the issue—his mind was always made up quickly. Taking action was his strong suit, not overthinking. Night fell, and Felix was still hanging around, unsure.


CHAPTER XIII
SAILING AWAY


But the next morning Felix arose straight from his sleep resolved to carry out his plan. Without staying to think a moment, without further examination of the various sides of the problem, he started up the instant his eyes unclosed, fully determined upon his voyage. The breath of the bright June morn as he threw open the window-shutter filled him with hope; his heart responded to its joyous influence. The excitement which had disturbed his mind had had time to subside. In the still slumber of the night the strong undercurrent of his thought resumed its course, and he awoke with his will still firmly bent in one direction.

But the next morning, Felix got out of bed right away, ready to go through with his plan. Without stopping to think for a moment or examining the different aspects of the problem, he jumped up the moment he opened his eyes, completely set on his journey. The fresh air of the bright June morning filled him with hope as he opened the window; his heart responded to that joyful feeling. The excitement that had unsettled him had faded. During the quiet of the night, the strong current of his thoughts returned to its path, and he woke up with his determination still firmly aimed in one direction.

When he had dressed, he took his bow and the chest bound with the leathern thongs, and went down. It was early, but the Baron had already finished breakfast and gone out to his gardens; the Baroness had not yet appeared. While he was making a hurried breakfast (for having now made up his mind he was eager to put his resolve into execution), Oliver came in, and seeing the chest and the bow, understood that the hour had arrived. He immediately said he should accompany him to Heron Bay, and assist him to start, and went out to order their horses. There were always plenty of riding horses at Old House (as at every fortified mansion), and there was not the least difficulty in getting another for Felix in place of his old favourite.

When he got dressed, he grabbed his bow and the chest wrapped in leather straps and headed downstairs. It was early, but the Baron had already finished breakfast and gone out to his gardens; the Baroness hadn't appeared yet. While he was quickly having breakfast (now that he had made up his mind, he was eager to act on it), Oliver walked in, and seeing the chest and the bow, realized the moment had come. He immediately said he would join him to Heron Bay and help him get started, then went out to arrange their horses. There were always plenty of riding horses at Old House (like in every fortified mansion), and it was easy to get another for Felix to replace his old favorite.

Oliver insisted upon taking the wooden chest, which was rather heavy, before him on the saddle, so that Felix had nothing to carry but his favourite bow. Oliver was surprised that Felix did not first go to the gardens and say good-bye to the Baron, or at least knock at the Baroness's door and bid her farewell. But he made no remark, knowing Felix's proud and occasionally hard temper. Without a word Felix left the old place.

Oliver insisted on taking the heavy wooden chest in front of him on the saddle, so Felix only had to carry his favorite bow. Oliver was surprised that Felix didn’t first go to the gardens to say goodbye to the Baron, or at least knock on the Baroness's door to bid her farewell. But he said nothing, understanding Felix's proud and sometimes stubborn nature. Without a word, Felix left the old place.

He rode forth from the North Barrier, and did not even so much as look behind him. Neither he nor Oliver thought of the events that might happen before they should again meet in the old familiar house! When the circle is once broken up it is often years before it is reformed. Often, indeed, the members of it never meet again, at least, not in the same manner, which, perhaps, they detested then, and ever afterwards regretted. Without one word of farewell, without a glance, Felix rode out into the forest.

He rode out from the North Barrier and didn’t even look back. Neither he nor Oliver thought about what could happen before they met again in the old familiar house! Once the circle is broken, it can take years to come back together. Often, the members never meet again, at least not in the same way, which they probably hated then and would always regret afterward. Without a word of goodbye, without a glance, Felix rode into the forest.

There was not much conversation on the trail to Heron Bay. The serfs were still there in charge of the canoe, and were glad enough to see their approach, and thus to be relieved from their lonely watch. They launched the canoe with ease, the provisions were put on board, the chest lashed to the mast that it might not be lost, the favourite bow was also fastened upright to the mast for safety, and simply shaking hands with Oliver, Felix pushed out into the creek. He paddled the canoe to the entrance and out into the Lake till he arrived where the south-west breeze, coming over the forest, touched and rippled the water, which by the shore was perfectly calm.

There wasn't much conversation on the path to Heron Bay. The workers were still there taking care of the canoe and were happy to see them arriving, glad to be relieved from their lonely watch. They launched the canoe easily, loaded the provisions on board, and secured the chest to the mast so it wouldn't get lost. The favorite bow was also tied upright to the mast for safety. After a quick handshake with Oliver, Felix pushed off into the creek. He paddled the canoe to the entrance and out into the lake until he reached the spot where the south-west breeze from the forest stirred the water, which was completely calm near the shore.

Then, hoisting the sail, he put out the larger paddle which answered as a rudder, took his seat, and, waving his hand to Oliver, began his voyage. The wind was but light, and almost too favourable, for he had determined to sail to the eastward; not for any specific reason, but because there the sun rose, and that was the quarter of light and hope. His canoe, with a long fore-and-aft sail, and so well adapted for working into the wind, was not well rigged for drifting before a breeze, which was what he was now doing. He had merely to keep the canoe before the wind, steering so as to clear the bold headland of White Horse which rose blue from the water's edge far in front of him. Though the wind was light, the canoe being so taper and sharp at the prow, and the sail so large in comparison, slipped from the shore faster than he at first imagined.

Then, raising the sail, he put out the larger paddle that acted as a rudder, took his seat, and, waving his hand to Oliver, began his journey. The wind was light, almost too favorable, as he had decided to head east; not for any specific reason, but because that’s where the sun rose, symbolizing light and hope. His canoe, with a long sail designed for sailing into the wind, wasn’t really set up for drifting in a breeze, which was what he was doing now. He just had to keep the canoe facing the wind, steering to avoid the striking headland of White Horse that loomed blue from the water’s edge ahead of him. Even with the light wind, the canoe was so narrow and pointed at the front, and the sail was so large in proportion, that it moved away from the shore faster than he had initially thought.

As he steered aslant from the little bay outwards into the great Lake, the ripples rolling before the wind gradually enlarged into wavelets, these again increased, and in half an hour, as the wind now played upon them over a mile of surface, they seemed in his canoe, with its low freeboard, to be considerable waves. He had purposely refrained from looking back till now, lest they should think he regretted leaving, and in his heart desired to return. But now, feeling that he had really started, he glanced behind. He could see no one.

As he paddled out from the small bay into the vast lake, the ripples created by the wind gradually turned into little waves. These waves grew larger, and in about half an hour, as the wind swept across a mile of water, they appeared to be significant waves in his canoe, which sat low in the water. He had intentionally avoided looking back until now, not wanting them to think he regretted leaving or wanted to come back. But feeling that he had truly set off, he took a quick look behind. He saw no one.

He had forgotten that the spot where they had launched the canoe was at the end of an inlet, and as he sailed away the creek was shut off from view by the shore of the Lake. Unable to get to the mouth of the bay because of the underwood and the swampy soil, Oliver had remained gazing in the direction the canoe had taken for a minute or two, absorbed in thought (almost the longest period he had ever wasted in such an occupation), and then with a whistle turned to go. The serfs, understanding that they were no longer required, gathered their things together, and were shortly on their way home. Oliver, holding Felix's horse by the bridle, had already ridden that way, but he presently halted, and waited till the three men overtook him. He then gave the horse into their charge, and turning to the right, along a forest path which branched off there, went to Ponze. Felix could therefore see no one when he looked back, and they were indeed already on their way from the place.

He had forgotten that the spot where they launched the canoe was at the end of an inlet, and as he paddled away, the creek was hidden from view by the shore of the Lake. Unable to reach the mouth of the bay because of the underbrush and the marshy ground, Oliver kept staring in the direction the canoe had gone for a minute or two, lost in thought (almost the longest time he had ever spent doing that), and then with a whistle, he turned to leave. The laborers, realizing they were no longer needed, packed up their things and soon headed home. Oliver, holding Felix's horse by the reins, had already started that way, but he stopped and waited until the three men caught up with him. He then handed the horse over to them and turned right onto a forest path that branched off there, heading to Ponze. Felix couldn’t see anyone when he looked back, and they were indeed already on their way from the spot.

He now felt that he was alone. He had parted from the shore, and from all the old associations; he was fast passing not only out upon the water, but out into the unknown future. But his spirit no longer vacillated; now that he was really in the beginning of his long contemplated enterprise his natural strength of mind returned. The weakness and irresolution, the hesitation, left him. He became full of his adventure, and thought of nothing else.

He felt completely alone. He had left the shore and all the familiar connections behind; he was not just moving out onto the water, but stepping into an uncertain future. However, his confidence had returned; now that he was truly starting his long-awaited journey, his mental strength came back. The doubt and uncertainty faded away. He became fully immersed in his adventure and focused on nothing else.

The south-west breeze, blowing as a man breathes, with alternate rise and fall, now driving him along rapidly till the water bubbled under the prow, now sinking, came over his right shoulder and cooled his cheek, for it was now noon, and the June sun was unchecked by clouds. He could no longer distinguish the shape of the trees on shore; all the boughs were blended together in one great wood, stretching as far as he could see. On his left there was a chain of islands, some covered with firs, and others only with brushwood, while others again were so low and flat that the waves in stormy weather broke almost over them.

The southwest breeze blew gently, like a person's breath, rising and falling alternately, sometimes pushing him forward quickly until the water splashed beneath the bow, and at other times sinking down, bringing coolness over his right shoulder and refreshing his cheek, since it was noon and the June sun shone brightly without a cloud in sight. He could no longer make out the shapes of the trees on shore; all the branches merged into one vast forest, extending as far as he could see. To his left was a chain of islands, some covered with fir trees, others just with brush, while some were so low and flat that the waves nearly washed over them during storms.

As he drew near White Horse, five white terns, or sea-swallows, flew over; he did not welcome their appearance, as they usually preceded rough gales. The headland, wooded to its ridge, now rose high against the sky; ash and nut-tree and hawthorn had concealed the ancient graven figure of the horse upon its side, but the tradition was not forgotten, and the site retained its name. He had been steering so as just to clear the promontory, but he now remembered that when he had visited the summit of the hill, he had observed that banks and shoals extended far out from the shore, and were nearly on a level with the surface of the Lake. In a calm they were visible, but waves concealed them, and unless the helmsman recognised the swirl sufficiently early to change his course, they were extremely dangerous.

As he got closer to White Horse, five white terns, or sea-swallows, flew overhead; he wasn't happy to see them, as they usually signaled rough weather. The headland, covered with trees all the way to the top, now stood tall against the sky; ash, hazel, and hawthorn had hidden the ancient carved image of the horse on its side, but the story was still known, and the place kept its name. He had been steering to just clear the promontory, but he suddenly remembered that when he had visited the top of the hill, he had noticed that banks and shoals stretched far out from the shore, nearly at the same level as the surface of the Lake. In calm weather, they were visible, but waves would hide them, and unless the helmsman spotted the swirl early enough to change course, they were very dangerous.

Felix bore more out from the land, and passing fully a mile to the north, left the shoals on his right. On his other hand there was a sandy and barren island barely a quarter of a mile distant, upon which he thought he saw the timbers of a wreck. It was quite probable, for the island lay in the track of vessels coasting along the shore. Beyond White Horse, the land fell away in a series of indentations, curving inwards to the south; an inhospitable coast, for the hills came down to the strand, ending abruptly in low, but steep, chalk cliffs. Many islands of large size stood out on the left, but Felix, not knowing the shape of the Lake beyond White Horse, thought it best to follow the trend of the land. He thus found, after about three hours, that he had gone far out of his course, for the gulf-like curve of the coast now began to return to the northward, and looking in that direction he saw a merchant vessel under her one square sail of great size, standing across the bay.

Felix moved further away from the land and, after traveling a full mile north, kept the shoals on his right. On his left, there was a sandy, barren island just a quarter of a mile away, where he thought he saw parts of a wreck. This seemed likely since the island was along the route of ships traveling close to the shore. Beyond White Horse, the land curved inward to the south with a series of indentations; it was a harsh coastline, with hills dropping down to the beach and ending sharply in low, steep chalk cliffs. Several large islands were visible on the left, but Felix, unsure of the shape of the lake beyond White Horse, decided it was best to follow the land’s curve. After about three hours, he realized he had strayed far off his path, as the coastline began to curve back to the north. Looking in that direction, he spotted a merchant ship with a single large square sail crossing the bay.

She was about five miles distant, and was evidently steering so as to keep just inside the line of the islands. Felix, with some difficulty, steered in a direction to interrupt her. The south-west wind being then immediately aft, his sail did not answer well; presently he lowered it, and paddled till he had turned the course so that the outrigger was now on the eastern side. Then hoisting the sail again, he sat at what had before been the prow, and steered a point or so nearer the wind. This improved her sailing, but as the merchant ship had at least five miles start, it would take some hours to overtake her. Nor on reflection was he at all anxious to come up with her, for mariners were dreaded for their lawless conduct, being, when on a voyage, beyond all jurisdiction.

She was about five miles away and was clearly trying to stay just inside the line of the islands. Felix, with some effort, steered in a direction to intercept her. The south-west wind was directly behind him, which made his sail difficult to manage; soon he lowered it and paddled until he changed his course so the outrigger was now on the eastern side. Then, raising the sail again, he sat at what had previously been the front and steered closer to the wind. This improved her sailing, but since the merchant ship had at least a five-mile head start, it would take a few hours to catch up. Upon reflection, he wasn't too eager to catch up to her anyway, as sailors were feared for their reckless behavior, being beyond all legal limits while at sea.

On the one hand, if they saw an opportunity, they did not hesitate to land and pillage a house, or even a hamlet. On the other, those who dwelt anywhere near the shore considered it good sport to light a fire and lure a vessel to her destruction, or if she was becalmed to sally out in boats, attack, and perhaps destroy both ship and crew. Hence the many wrecks, and losses, and the risks of navigation, not so much from natural obstacles, since the innumerable islands, and the creeks and inlets of the mainland almost always offered shelter, no matter which way the storm blew, but from the animosity of the coast people. If there was an important harbour and a town where provisions could be obtained, or repairs effected, the right of entrance was jealously guarded, and no ship, however pressed by the gale, was permitted to leave, if she had anchored, without payment of a fine. So that vessels as much as possible avoided the harbours and towns, and the mainland altogether, sailing along beside the islands, which were, for the most part, uninhabited, and anchoring under their lee at night.

On one hand, if they saw a chance, they didn’t hesitate to land and rob a house or even a small village. On the other hand, those living near the shore thought it was a fun game to light a fire and lure a ship to its doom, or, if the ship was stuck in calm waters, to go out in boats, attack, and maybe sink both the ship and the crew. This resulted in many shipwrecks and losses, and the dangers of sailing weren’t so much from natural hazards, since the countless islands, creeks, and inlets of the mainland usually provided shelter no matter which way the storm came from, but from the hostility of the coastal people. If there was a major harbor and a town where you could get supplies or repair ships, the right to enter was fiercely protected, and no ship, no matter how much it was struggling against the storm, was allowed to leave after anchored without paying a fine. So, vessels tried to avoid harbors and towns, as well as the mainland entirely, sailing alongside the mostly uninhabited islands and anchoring on their sheltered side at night.

Felix, remembering the character of the mariners, resolved to keep well away from them, but to watch their course as a guide to himself. The mainland now ran abruptly to the north, and the canoe, as he brought her more into the wind, sprang forward at a rapid pace. The outrigger prevented her from making any leeway, or heeling over, and the large spread of sail forced her swiftly through the water. He had lost sight of the ship behind some islands, and as he approached these, began to ask himself if he had not better haul down his sail there, as he must now be getting near her, when to his surprise, on coming close, he saw her great square sail in the middle, as it seemed, of the land. The shore there was flat, the hills which had hitherto bounded it suddenly ceasing; it was overgrown with reeds and flags, and about two miles away the dark sail of the merchantman drifted over these, the hull being hidden. He at once knew that he had reached the western mouth of the straits which divide the southern and northern mainland. When he went to see the channel on foot through the forest, he must have struck it a mile or two more to the east, where it wound under the hills.

Felix, recalling the nature of the sailors, decided to keep his distance from them but to use their path as his own reference. The mainland now shot sharply to the north, and as he angled the canoe more into the wind, it sped ahead quickly. The outrigger kept it from drifting or tipping over, and the large sail propelled it swiftly through the water. He had lost sight of the ship behind some islands, and as he got closer, he wondered if he should lower his sail since he must be nearing it. To his surprise, as he approached, he saw the ship's large square sail situated right in the middle of the land. The shore was flat, and the hills that had previously bordered it abruptly stopped; it was covered in reeds and flags, and about two miles away, the dark sail of the merchant ship floated above them, the hull hidden. He realized he had reached the western entrance of the straits that separate the southern and northern mainland. When he went to check the channel on foot through the forest, he must have found it a mile or two further east, where it twisted under the hills.

In another half hour he arrived at the opening of the strait; it was about a mile wide, and either shore was quite flat, that on the right for a short distance, the range of downs approaching within two miles; that on the left, or north, was level as far as he could see. He had now again to lower his sail, to get the outrigger on his lee as he turned to the right and steered due east into the channel. So long as the shore was level, he had no difficulty, for the wind drew over it, but when the hills gradually came near and almost overhung the channel, they shut off much of the breeze, and his progress was slow. When it turned and ran narrowing every moment to the south, the wind failed him altogether.

In another half hour, he reached the entrance of the strait; it was about a mile wide, and both shores were quite flat. On the right, the land remained flat for a short distance, with a range of hills coming within two miles. The left shore, or north side, was level as far as he could see. He had to lower his sail again to position the outrigger to the side away from the wind as he turned right and steered directly east into the channel. As long as the shore was flat, he had no trouble, since the wind blew across it, but when the hills gradually got closer and almost loomed over the channel, they blocked much of the breeze, causing his speed to drop. When the channel turned and began to narrow toward the south, the wind completely disappeared.

On the right shore, wooded hills rose from the water like a wall; on the left, it was a perfect plain. He could see nothing of the merchantman, although he knew that she could not sail here, but must be working through with her sweeps. Her heavy hull and bluff bow must make the rowing a slow and laborious process; therefore she could not be far ahead, but was concealed by the winding of the strait. He lowered the sail, as it was now useless, and began to paddle; in a very short time he found the heat under the hills oppressive when thus working. He had now been afloat between six and seven hours, and must have come fully thirty miles, perhaps rather more than twenty in a straight line, and he felt somewhat weary and cramped from sitting so long in the canoe.

On the right side, wooded hills rose from the water like a wall; on the left, there was a perfect plain. He couldn’t see the merchant ship, even though he knew it couldn’t sail here and must be making its way through with its oars. Its heavy hull and blunt bow made paddling a slow and tiring task; so it couldn’t be far ahead, just hidden by the twists of the strait. He lowered the sail, since it was now pointless, and started to paddle. In no time, he noticed the heat under the hills was oppressive while working like this. He had been out for about six to seven hours and must have covered almost thirty miles, maybe a little more than twenty in a straight line, and he felt a bit tired and cramped from sitting so long in the canoe.

Though he paddled hard he did not seem to make much progress, and at length he recognised that there was a distinct current, which opposed his advance, flowing through the channel from east to west. If he ceased paddling, he found he drifted slowly back; the long aquatic weeds, too, which he passed, all extended their floating streamers westward. We did not know of this current till Felix Aquila observed and recorded it.

Though he paddled hard, he didn't seem to make much progress, and eventually he realized there was a strong current flowing from east to west that was pushing against him. If he stopped paddling, he noticed he drifted slowly back. The long aquatic weeds he passed also had their streamers floating toward the west. We weren't aware of this current until Felix Aquila pointed it out and documented it.

Tired and hungry (for, full of his voyage, he had taken no refreshments since he started), he resolved to land, rest a little while, and then ascend the hill, and see what he could of the channel. He soon reached the shore, the strait having narrowed to less than a mile in width, and ran the canoe on the ground by a bush, to which, on getting out, he attached the painter. The relief of stretching his limbs was so great that it seemed to endow him with fresh strength, and without waiting to eat, he at once climbed the hill. From the top, the remainder of the strait could be easily distinguished. But a short distance from where he stood, it bent again, and proceeded due east.

Tired and hungry (since he hadn't eaten anything since he started his journey), he decided to land, rest for a bit, and then head up the hill to see what he could find about the channel. He soon reached the shore, where the strait had narrowed to less than a mile wide, and pulled the canoe onto the ground by a bush, to which he tied the rope after getting out. The relief of stretching his limbs felt so good that it gave him a new burst of energy, and without taking a moment to eat, he immediately climbed the hill. From the top, he could easily see the rest of the strait. Just a short distance from where he stood, it curved again and continued eastward.


CHAPTER XIV
THE STRAITS


The passage contracted there to little over half a mile, but these narrows did not continue far; the shores, having approached thus near each other, quickly receded, till presently they were at least two miles apart. The merchant vessel had passed the narrows with the aid of her sweeps, but she moved slowly, and, as it seemed to him, with difficulty. She was about a mile and a half distant, and near the eastern mouth of the strait. As Felix watched he saw her square sail again raised, showing that she had reached a spot where the hills ceased to shut off the wind. Entering the open Lake she altered her course and sailed away to the north-north-east, following the course of the northern mainland.

The passage narrowed down to just over half a mile, but these tight spots didn’t last long; the shores got close, then quickly pulled apart until they were at least two miles apart again. The merchant ship had made it through the narrow channel with the help of her oars, but she was moving slowly and, it seemed to him, with some effort. She was about a mile and a half away, close to the eastern entrance of the strait. As Felix watched, he saw her square sail raised again, indicating she had reached a place where the hills no longer blocked the wind. Once she entered the open lake, she changed course and sailed off to the north-north-east, following the path of the northern coastline.

Looking now eastwards, across the Lake, he saw a vast and beautiful expanse of water, without island or break of any kind, reaching to the horizon. Northwards and southwards the land fell rapidly away, skirted as usual with islets and shoals, between which and the shore vessels usually voyaged. He had heard of this open water, and it was his intention to sail out into and explore it, but as the sun now began to decline towards the west, he considered that he had better wait till morning, and so have a whole day before him. Meantime, he would paddle through the channel, beach the canoe on the islet that stood farthest out, and so start clear on the morrow.

Looking east across the lake, he saw a vast and beautiful stretch of water, with no islands or interruptions, extending all the way to the horizon. To the north and south, the land dropped off quickly, lined as usual with small islands and shallow areas, where boats typically traveled between the shore and the open water. He had heard about this open water and planned to sail out and explore it, but now that the sun was starting to set in the west, he thought it would be better to wait until morning, so he’d have a full day ahead of him. In the meantime, he would paddle through the channel, beach the canoe on the farthest islet, and then set off fresh in the morning.

Turning now to look back the other way, westward, he was surprised to see a second channel, which came almost to the foot of the hill on which he stood, but there ended and did not connect with the first. The entrance to it was concealed, as he now saw, by an island, past which he must have sailed that afternoon. This second or blind channel seemed more familiar to him than the flat and reedy shore at the mouth of the true strait, and he now recognised it as the one to which he had journeyed on foot through the forest. He had not then struck the true strait at all; he had sat down and pondered beside this deceptive inlet thinking that it divided the mainlands. From this discovery he saw how easy it was to be misled in such matters.

Turning now to look back the other way, westward, he was surprised to see a second channel that almost reached the foot of the hill he was standing on, but it ended there and didn’t connect with the first. The entrance was hidden, as he now realized, by an island that he must have sailed past that afternoon. This second or blind channel felt more familiar to him than the flat, marshy shore at the mouth of the true strait, and he finally recognized it as the one he had walked to through the forest. He hadn’t actually reached the true strait at all; he had sat down and thought beside this misleading inlet, believing it separated the mainlands. From this realization, he understood how easy it was to be misled in situations like this.

But it even more fully convinced him of the importance of this uninhabited and neglected place. It seemed like a canal cut on purpose to supply a fort from the Lake in the rear with provisions and material, supposing access in front prevented by hostile fleets and armies. A castle, if built near where he stood, would command the channel; arrows, indeed, could not be shot across, but vessels under the protection of the castle could dispute the passage, obstructed as it could be with floating booms. An invader coming from the north must cross here; for many years past there had been a general feeling that some day such an attempt would be made. Fortifications would be of incalculable value in repelling the hostile hordes and preventing their landing.

But it even more strongly convinced him of the significance of this uninhabited and neglected place. It felt like a canal purposefully dug to provide a fort at the back with supplies and materials, assuming that access in front was blocked by enemy fleets and armies. A castle, if built near where he stood, would have control over the channel; arrows might not be able to be shot across, but boats under the castle's protection could challenge anyone trying to pass, especially with floating barriers in the way. An invader coming from the north would have to cross here; for many years, there had been a general sense that someday such an attempt would happen. Fortifications would be extremely valuable in keeping enemy hordes at bay and stopping them from landing.

Who held this strait would possess the key of the Lake, and would be master of, or would at least hold the balance between, the kings and republics dotted along the coasts on either hand. No vessel could pass without his permission. It was the most patent illustration of the extremely local horizon, the contracted mental view of the petty kings and their statesmen, who were so concerned about the frontiers of their provinces, and frequently interfered and fought for a single palisaded estate or barony, yet were quite oblivious of the opportunity of empire open here to any who could seize it.

Whoever controlled this strait would hold the key to the Lake and would dominate, or at least balance power between, the kings and republics along the coast on either side. No ship could pass without their permission. This was the clearest example of the very limited perspective of the small kings and their advisors, who were overly focused on the borders of their territories and often fought over a single fenced estate or barony, yet were completely unaware of the chance for expansion available to anyone who could take advantage of it.

If the governor of such a castle as he imagined built upon the strait, had also vessels of war, they could lie in this second channel sheltered from all winds, and ready to sally forth and take an attacking force upon the flank. While he pondered upon these advantages he could not conceal from himself that he had once sat down and dreamed beside this second inlet, thinking it to be the channel. The doubt arose whether, if he was so easily misled in such a large, tangible, and purely physical matter, he might not be deceived also in his ideas; whether, if tested, they might not fail; whether the world was not right and he wrong.

If the governor of a castle like the one he envisioned built on the strait also had warships, they could stay in this secondary channel, protected from all winds, and ready to launch an attack on an invading force from the side. As he thought about these advantages, he couldn't ignore the fact that he had once sat and dreamt by this other inlet, believing it to be the main channel. He began to doubt whether, if he could be so easily misled in something so significant, real, and physical, he might also be wrong about his ideas; whether, if put to the test, they might not hold up; whether the world might be right and he the one who was mistaken.

The very clearness and many-sided character of his mind often hindered and even checked altogether the best founded of his impressions, the more especially when he, as it were, stood still and thought. In reverie, the subtlety of his mind entangled him; in action, he was almost always right. Action prompted his decision. Descending from the hill he now took some refreshment, and then pushed out again in the canoe. So powerful was the current in the narrowest part of the strait that it occupied him two hours in paddling as many miles.

The clarity and complexity of his mind often got in the way of even his most well-founded impressions, especially when he paused to think. In daydreams, the intricacies of his thoughts tangled him up; but in action, he was almost always spot on. Taking action fueled his decisions. After coming down from the hill, he had a snack and then set out again in the canoe. The current was so strong in the narrowest part of the strait that it took him two hours to paddle just a couple of miles.

When he was free of the channel, he hoisted sail and directed his course straight out for an island which stood almost opposite the entrance. But as he approached, driven along at a good pace, suddenly the canoe seemed to be seized from beneath. He knew in a moment that he had grounded on soft mud, and sprang up to lower the sail, but before he could do so the canoe came to a standstill on the mud-bank, and the waves following behind, directly she stopped, broke over the stern. Fortunately they were but small, having only a mile or so to roll from the shore, but they flung enough water on board in a few minutes to spoil part of his provisions, and to set everything afloat that was loose on the bottom of the vessel.

When he was clear of the channel, he raised the sail and headed directly for an island that was almost across from the entrance. But as he got closer, moving at a good speed, suddenly the canoe felt like it was stuck from underneath. He realized right away that he had run aground in soft mud, and he jumped up to lower the sail. However, before he could do that, the canoe came to a stop on the mud bank, and the waves behind it crashed over the back as soon as it halted. Luckily, the waves were small since they had only a mile to travel from the shore, but they splashed enough water onboard in just a few minutes to ruin some of his supplies and to set everything loose at the bottom of the canoe adrift.

He was apprehensive lest she should fill, for he now perceived that he had forgotten to provide anything with which to bale her out. Something is always forgotten. Having got the sail down (lest the wind should snap the mast), he tried hard to force the canoe back with his longer paddle, used as a movable rudder. His weight and the resistance of the adhesive mud, on which she had driven with much force was too great; he could not shove her off. When he pushed, the paddle sank into the soft bottom, and gave him nothing to press against. After struggling for some time, he paused, beginning to fear that his voyage had already reached an end.

He was worried that she might fill with water, as he realized he had forgotten to bring anything to bail her out. It’s easy to forget something. After lowering the sail (to prevent the wind from snapping the mast), he tried hard to push the canoe back using his longer paddle as a kind of movable rudder. His weight and the sticky mud she had driven into were too much; he couldn’t push her off. When he pressed down, the paddle sank into the soft bottom, leaving him with nothing to push against. After struggling for a while, he stopped, starting to fear that his trip had already come to an end.

A minute's thought, more potent than the strength of ten men, showed him that the canoe required lightening. There was no cargo to throw overboard, nor ballast. He was the only weight. He immediately undressed, and let himself overboard at the prow, retaining hold of the stem. His feet sank deep into the ooze; he felt as if, had he let go, he should have gradually gone down into this quicksand of fine mud. By rapidly moving his feet he managed, however, to push the canoe; she rose considerably so soon as he was out of her, and, although he had hold of the prow, still his body was lighter in the water. Pushing, struggling, and pressing forward, he, by sheer impact, as it were, for his feet found no hold in the mud, forced her back by slow degrees.

A moment's thought, more powerful than the strength of ten men, made him realize that the canoe needed to be lighter. There was no cargo to toss overboard, nor was there any ballast. He was the only weight. He quickly stripped down and slid overboard at the front, holding onto the bow. His feet sank deep into the muck; he felt that if he let go, he would slowly sink into this quicksand of fine mud. However, by moving his feet quickly, he was able to push the canoe; it rose significantly as soon as he was out of it, and even though he held onto the front, his body was lighter in the water. Pushing, struggling, and moving forward, he gradually forced it back by sheer effort, as his feet found no grip in the mud.

The blows of the waves drove her forward almost as much as he pushed her back. Still, in time, and when his strength was fast decreasing, she did move, and he had the satisfaction of feeling the water deeper beneath him. But when he endeavoured to pull himself into the canoe over the prow, directly his motive power ceased, the waves undid the advance he had achieved, and he had to resume his labour. This time, thinking again, before he attempted to get into the canoe he turned her sideways to the wind, with the outrigger to leeward. When her sharp prow and rounded keel struck the mud-bank end on she ran easily along it. But, turned sideways, her length found more resistance, and though the waves sent her some way upon it, she soon came to a standstill. He clambered in as quickly as he could (it is not easy to get into a boat out of the water, the body feels so heavy), and, taking the paddle, without waiting to dress, worked away from the spot.

The force of the waves pushed her forward almost as much as he pushed her back. Eventually, as his strength began to fade, she did make some progress, and he felt the water getting deeper beneath him. But when he tried to pull himself into the canoe over the front, as soon as he stopped paddling, the waves took back the ground he had gained, and he had to start over. This time, he thought it through, and before he tried to get into the canoe, he turned it sideways to face the wind, with the outrigger to the side away from the wind. When the sharp front and rounded bottom hit the mudbank head-on, it moved smoothly along it. But, turned sideways, the boat met more resistance, and even though the waves pushed it a little onto the bank, it quickly came to a halt. He scrambled in as quickly as he could (it's not easy to get into a boat from the water; the body feels so heavy), and grabbing the paddle, without taking the time to change clothes, he paddled away from the spot.

Not till he had got some quarter of a mile back towards the mainland did he pause to dry himself and resume part of his clothing; the canoe being still partly full of water, it was no use to put on all. Resting awhile after his severe exertions, he looked back, and now supposed, from the colour of the water and the general indications, that these shallows extended a long distance, surrounding the islands at the mouth of the channel, so that no vessel could enter or pass out in a direct line, but must steer to the north or south until the obstacle was rounded. Afraid to attempt to land on another island, his only course, as the sun was now going down, was to return to the mainland, which he reached without much trouble, as the current favoured him.

Not until he had made it about a quarter of a mile back toward the mainland did he stop to dry off and put on some of his clothes; the canoe was still partly filled with water, so it didn’t make sense to put everything on. After resting for a bit following his tiring effort, he looked back and now figured, from the color of the water and the overall signs, that these shallows stretched on for a long way, surrounding the islands at the mouth of the channel, so that no boat could enter or get out in a straight line but would have to head north or south until it could go around the obstacle. Not wanting to try landing on another island, his only option, with the sun now setting, was to go back to the mainland, which he reached without much trouble since the current helped him.

He drew the canoe upon the ground as far as he could. It was not a good place to land, as the bottom was chalk, washed into holes by the waves, and studded with angular flints. As the wind was off the shore it did not matter; if it had blown from the east, his canoe might very likely have been much damaged. The shore was overgrown with hazel to within twenty yards of the water, then the ground rose and was clothed with low ash-trees, whose boughs seemed much stunted by tempest, showing how exposed the spot was to the easterly gales of spring. The south-west wind was shut off by the hills beyond. Felix was so weary that for some time he did nothing save rest upon the ground, which was but scantily covered with grass. An hour's rest, however, restored him to himself.

He dragged the canoe as far up on the ground as he could. It wasn’t a great spot to land because the bottom was chalk, eroded into holes by the waves, and littered with sharp flints. Since the wind was blowing offshore, it didn't matter; if it had been coming from the east, his canoe could have been seriously damaged. The shore was thick with hazel trees within twenty yards of the water, and then the ground sloped up and was covered in low ash trees, whose branches looked stunted by storms, showing how exposed this area was to the east winds of spring. The south-west wind was blocked by the hills further back. Felix was so tired that for a while he just lay on the ground, which was barely covered with grass. However, after an hour of rest, he felt rejuvenated.

He gathered some dry sticks (there were plenty under the ashes), struck his flint against the steel, ignited the tinder, and soon had a fire. It was not necessary for warmth, the June evening was soft and warm, but it was the hunter's instinct. Upon camping for the night the hunter, unless Bushmen are suspected to be in the neighbourhood, invariably lights a fire, first to cook his supper, and secondly, and often principally, to make the spot his home. The hearth is home, whether there be walls round it or not. Directly there are glowing embers the place is no longer wild, it becomes human. Felix had nothing that needed cooking. He took his cowhide from the canoe and spread it on the ground.

He gathered some dry sticks (there were plenty under the ashes), struck his flint against the steel, lit the tinder, and soon had a fire going. It wasn’t needed for warmth; the June evening was mild and warm, but it was part of the hunter’s instinct. When camping for the night, a hunter, unless he suspects Bushmen are nearby, always lights a fire—first to cook his dinner, and second, often more importantly, to claim the spot as his home. The hearth is home, whether there are walls around it or not. As soon as there are glowing embers, the place is no longer wild; it becomes human. Felix didn’t have anything that needed cooking. He took his cowhide from the canoe and spread it out on the ground.

A well-seasoned cowhide is the first possession of every hunter; it keeps him from the damp; and with a second, supported on three short poles stuck in the earth (two crossed at the top in front, forming a fork, and fastened with a thong, the third resting on these), he protects himself from the heaviest rain. This little tent is always built with the back to windward. Felix did not erect a second hide, the evening was so warm and beautiful he did not need it, his cloak would be ample for covering. The fire crackled and blazed at intervals, just far enough from him that he might feel no inconvenience from its heat.

A well-used cowhide is the first item every hunter has; it keeps him dry, and with a second one set up on three short poles stuck in the ground (two crossed at the top in front, forming a fork and tied together, with the third resting on these), he shields himself from heavy rain. This little tent is always made with the back facing into the wind. Felix didn’t set up a second hide because the evening was so warm and beautiful that he didn’t need it; his cloak would be enough for cover. The fire crackled and blazed at intervals, placed just far enough away from him that he didn’t feel any discomfort from its heat.

Thrushes sang in the ash wood all around him, the cuckoo called, and the chiff-chaff never ceased for a moment. Before him stretched the expanse of waters; he could even here see over the low islands. In the sky a streak of cloud was tinted by the sunset, slowly becoming paler as the light departed. He reclined in that idle, thoughtless state which succeeds unusual effort, till the deepening shadow and the sinking fire, and the appearance of a star, warned him that the night was really here. Then he arose, threw on more fuel, and fetched his cloak, his chest, and his boar spear from the canoe. The chest he covered with a corner of the hide, wrapped himself in the cloak, bringing it well over his face on account of the dew; then, drawing the lower corners of the hide over his feet and limbs, he stretched himself at full length and fell asleep, with the spear beside him.

Thrushes sang in the ash woods all around him, the cuckoo called, and the chiff-chaff never stopped for a moment. Before him lay the expanse of water; he could even see over the low islands. In the sky, a strip of cloud was colored by the sunset, slowly fading as the light disappeared. He relaxed in that lazy, mindless state that follows intense effort, until the deepening shadow, the dying fire, and the appearance of a star reminded him that night had truly arrived. Then he got up, added more fuel to the fire, and grabbed his cloak, chest, and boar spear from the canoe. He covered the chest with a corner of the hide, wrapped himself in the cloak, pulling it well over his face because of the dew; then, tucking the lower corners of the hide over his feet and legs, he lay down flat and fell asleep, with the spear beside him.

There was the possibility of Bushmen, but not much probability. There would be far more danger near the forest path, where they might expect a traveller and watch to waylay him, but they could not tell beforehand where he would rest that night. If any had seen the movements of his canoe, if any lighted upon his bivouac by chance, his fate was certain. He knew this, but trusted to the extreme improbability of Bushmen frequenting a place where there was nothing to plunder. Besides, he had no choice, as he could not reach the islands. If there was risk, it was forgotten in the extremity of his weariness.

There was a chance of encountering Bushmen, but it was unlikely. There would be much more danger along the forest path, where they might expect a traveler and wait to ambush him, but they couldn’t predict where he would camp for the night. If anyone had noticed the movements of his canoe, or if anyone stumbled upon his campsite by chance, his fate would be sealed. He was aware of this but relied on the unlikelihood of Bushmen appearing in a place with nothing to steal. Besides, he had no options since he couldn’t reach the islands. If there was any risk, it faded away in the depth of his exhaustion.


CHAPTER XV
SAILING ONWARDS


When Felix awoke, he knew at once by the height of the sun that the morning was far advanced. Throwing off his cloak, he stood up, but immediately crouched down again, for a vessel was passing but a short distance from the shore, and nearly opposite his encampment. She had two masts, and from the flags flying, the numerous bannerets, and the movements of so many men on board, he knew her to be a ship of war. He was anxious that he should not be seen, and regretted that his canoe was so much exposed, for the bush by which he had landed hid it only from one side. As the shore was so bare and open, if they looked that way the men on board would hardly fail to see it, and might even distinguish him. But whether they were too much engaged with their own affairs, or kept a careless look-out, no notice appeared to be taken, no boat was lowered.

When Felix woke up, he immediately realized by how high the sun was that it was already late morning. Throwing off his cloak, he got up, but then quickly crouched down again because a ship was passing by not too far from the shore, almost directly in front of his camp. It had two masts, and from the flags waving, the many small flags, and the hustle and bustle of so many people on board, he recognized it as a warship. He was anxious not to be seen and regretted that his canoe was so exposed, as the bushes where he had landed only concealed it from one side. Since the shore was so bare and open, if the men on the ship looked that way, they would likely see it and could even recognize him. But whether they were too busy with their own tasks or just not paying close attention, they didn’t seem to notice; no boats were lowered.

He watched the war-ship for nearly an hour before he ventured to move. Her course was to the eastward, inside the fringe of islands. That she was neither Irish nor Welsh he was certain from her build and from her flags; they were too distant for the exact designs upon them to be seen, but near enough for him to know that they were not those displayed by the foreigners. She sailed fast, having the wind nearly aft, which suited her two square sails.

He watched the warship for almost an hour before he dared to move. She was heading east, navigating through the group of islands. He was sure she wasn’t Irish or Welsh based on her design and flags; they were too far away to make out the details, but close enough for him to tell they weren’t the ones shown by the foreigners. She was sailing quickly, with the wind almost behind her, which worked well with her two square sails.

The wind had risen high during the night, and now blew almost a gale, so that he saw he must abandon for the present his project of sailing out upon the open water. The waves there would be too high for his canoe, which floated low in the water, and had but about six inches freeboard. They would wash over and possibly swamp her. Only two courses were open to him: either to sail inside the islands under shelter of the land, or to remain where he was till the breeze moderated. If he sailed inside the islands, following the northward course of the merchant vessel he had observed the previous evening, that would carry him past Eaststock, the eastern port of Sypolis, which city, itself inland, had two harbours, with the western of which (Weststock) it had communication by water.

The wind had picked up during the night and was now blowing almost like a gale, so he realized he had to put his plan to sail out onto the open water on hold. The waves would be too high for his canoe, which floated low in the water and had only about six inches of freeboard. They would crash over and could possibly swamp it. He had two options: either sail inside the islands where the land provided some shelter or stay where he was until the wind died down. If he sailed inside the islands, following the northward path of the merchant vessel he had seen the night before, he would pass Eaststock, the eastern port of Sypolis, which was inland and had two harbors, with the western one (Weststock) being connected by water.

Should he continue to sail on, he would soon reach that part of the northern continent which was occupied by the Irish outposts. On the other hand, to follow the war-ship, east by south, would, he knew, bring him by the great city of Aisi, famous for its commerce, its riches, and the warlike disposition of its king, Isembard. He was the acknowledged head of the forces of the League; but yet, with the inconsistency of the age, sometimes attacked other members of it. His furious energy was always disturbing the world, and Felix had no doubt he was now at war with some one or other, and that the war-ship he had seen was on its way to assist him or his enemies. One of the possibilities which had impelled him to this voyage was that of taking service with some king or commander, and so perhaps gradually rising himself to command.

If he kept sailing, he would soon reach the part of the northern continent where the Irish outposts were located. On the other hand, following the warship east-southeast would lead him by the great city of Aisi, known for its trade, wealth, and the aggressive nature of its king, Isembard. He was recognized as the leader of the League's forces; however, in the inconsistency of the times, he would sometimes attack other members. His intense energy was always causing turmoil in the world, and Felix had no doubt he was currently at war with someone, and that the warship he had seen was heading to assist him or his adversaries. One of the reasons that had driven him to embark on this voyage was the prospect of serving under a king or commander, and potentially rising to a position of command himself.

Such adventures were very common, knights often setting forth upon such expeditions when dissatisfied with their own rulers, and they were usually much welcomed as an addition to the strength of the camp they sought. But there was this difference: that such knights carried with them some substantial recommendation, either numerous retainers well armed and accustomed to battle, considerable treasure, or at least a reputation for prowess in the field. Felix had nothing to offer, and for nothing nothing is given.

Such adventures were quite common, with knights often going on these quests when they were unhappy with their own rulers, and they were usually welcomed as a boost to the strength of the camp they joined. But there was one key difference: these knights brought along some significant advantage, whether it was a group of well-armed and battle-experienced followers, a lot of treasure, or at the very least, a strong reputation for skill in combat. Felix had nothing to offer, and with nothing, you get nothing.

The world does not recognise intrinsic worth, or potential genius. Genius must accomplish some solid result before it is applauded and received. The unknown architect may say: "I have a design in my mind for an impregnable castle." But the world cannot see or appreciate the mere design. If by any personal sacrifice of time, dignity, or self-respect the architect, after long years, can persuade someone to permit him to build the castle, to put his design into solid stone which squadrons may knock their heads against in vain, then he is acknowledged. There is then a tangible result.

The world doesn’t recognize inherent value or potential genius. Genius needs to produce a concrete result before it gets any praise or acceptance. The unknown architect might say, “I have a design in my head for an invulnerable castle.” But the world can’t see or appreciate just the idea. If the architect, through years of personal sacrifice—whether it’s time, dignity, or self-respect—can finally convince someone to let him build the castle, turning his design into solid stone that armies may strike against in vain, only then is he acknowledged. At that point, there’s a tangible result.

Felix was in the position of the architect. He believed he had ideas, but he had nothing substantial, no result, to point to. He had therefore but little hope of success, and his natural hauteur and pride revolted against making application for enrolment which must be accompanied with much personal humiliation, since at best he could but begin in the common ranks. The very idea of asking was repugnant to him. The thought of Aurora, however, drew him on.

Felix was in the role of the architect. He thought he had ideas, but he had nothing concrete, no results, to show for it. Because of this, he felt little hope for success, and his natural arrogance and pride were against applying for enrollment, which would involve a lot of personal humiliation, since at best he would only be starting in the basic ranks. The very idea of asking for it sickened him. However, the thought of Aurora pushed him forward.

The pride was false, he said to himself, and arose from too high an estimate of his abilities; or it was the consequence of living so long entirely secluded from the world. He acknowledged to himself that he had not been beaten down to his level. Full of devotion to Aurora, he resolved to humble himself, to seek the humblest service in King Isembard's camp, to bow his spirit to the orders of men above him in rank but below him in birth and ability, to submit to the numberless indignities of a common soldier's life.

The pride was fake, he told himself, and came from overestimating his own abilities; or it was because he had spent so much time completely isolated from the world. He admitted to himself that he hadn’t been brought down to their level. Deeply devoted to Aurora, he decided to lower himself, to take on the most basic tasks in King Isembard's camp, to respect the orders of those above him in rank but below him in social status and skill, and to endure the countless humiliations of a regular soldier’s life.

He proceeded to launch the canoe, and had already placed the chest on board when it occurred to him that the difficulties he had encountered the previous evening, when his canoe was so nearly lost, arose from his ignorance of the channels. It would be advisable to ascend the hill, and carefully survey the coast as far as possible before setting forth. He did so. The war-ship was still visible from the summit, but while he looked she was hidden by the intervening islands. The white foam and angry appearance of the distant open water direct to the eastward, showed how wise he had been not to attempt its exploration. Under the land the wind was steady; yonder, where the gale struck the surface with all its force, the waves were large and powerful.

He started to launch the canoe and had already put the chest on board when he realized that the problems he faced the night before, when his canoe almost capsized, came from his lack of knowledge about the channels. It made sense to climb the hill and carefully look over the coastline as far as he could before heading out. So, he did. The warship was still visible from the top, but as he watched, it got obscured by the islands in between. The white foam and rough look of the distant open water to the east showed how smart he had been to avoid exploring that area. Along the shore, the wind was steady; out there, where the storm hit with full force, the waves were big and powerful.

From this spot he could see nearly the whole length of the strait, and, gazing up it in the direction he had come, he saw some boats crossing in the distance. As they moved so slowly, and appeared so broad, he conjectured that they were flat-bottomed punts, and, straining his eyes, he fancied he detected horses on board. He watched four cross, and presently the first punt returned, as if for another freight. He now noticed that there was a land route by which travellers or waggons came down from the northward, and crossed the strait by a ferry. It appeared that the ferry was not in the narrowest part of the strait, but nearer its western mouth, where the shores were flat, and covered with reeds and flags. He wondered that he had not seen anything of the landing-places, or of the ferry-boats, or some sign of this traffic when he passed, but concluded that the track was hidden among the dense growth of reed and flag, and that the punts, not being in use that day, had been drawn up, and perhaps covered with green boughs to shelter them from the heat of the summer sun.

From this spot, he could see almost the entire length of the strait, and looking up in the direction he had come, he noticed some boats crossing in the distance. Since they moved so slowly and appeared quite wide, he guessed they were flat-bottomed punts, and squinting, he thought he saw horses on board. He watched four cross, and soon the first punt returned, as if it was coming back for another load. He then noticed a land route where travelers or wagons came down from the north and crossed the strait by a ferry. It seemed that the ferry wasn’t at the narrowest part of the strait, but closer to its western end, where the shores were flat and filled with reeds and flags. He was surprised that he hadn’t seen any of the landing spots, ferry boats, or signs of this activity when he passed by, but he figured the path was hidden among the thick growth of reeds and flags, and that the punts, not being used that day, had been pulled up and maybe covered with green branches to protect them from the heat of the summer sun.

The fact of this route existing, however, gave additional importance to the establishment of a fort on the shore of the strait, as he had so long contemplated. By now, the first punt had obtained another load, and was re-crossing the channel. It was evident that a caravan of travellers or merchants had arrived, such persons usually travelling in large bodies for safety, so that the routes were often deserted for weeks together, and then suddenly covered with people. Routes, indeed, they were, and not roads; mere tracks worn through the forest and over the hills, often impassable from floods.

The fact that this route existed, however, made setting up a fort on the shore of the strait even more important, as he had been planning for so long. By now, the first boat had picked up another load and was crossing back over the channel. It was clear that a group of travelers or merchants had arrived, as these people typically traveled in large groups for safety, causing the routes to often be empty for weeks at a time, only to suddenly overflow with people. They were indeed routes, not roads; just paths worn through the forest and over the hills, often unpassable due to flooding.

Still further satisfied that his original idea of a castle here was founded on a correct estimate of the value of the spot, Felix resolved to keep the conception to himself, and not again to hazard it to others, who might despise him, but adopt his design. With one long last glance at the narrow streak of water which formed the central part, as it were, of his many plans, he descended the hill, and pushed off in the canoe.

Still convinced that his original idea of a castle here was based on a solid understanding of the area's value, Felix decided to keep the concept to himself and not risk sharing it with others who might look down on him but steal his idea. With one last long look at the narrow ribbon of water that was at the center of his various plans, he went down the hill and set off in the canoe.

His course this time gave him much less trouble than the day before, when he had frequently to change his tack. The steady, strong breeze came off the land, to which he was too close for any waves to arise, and hour after hour passed without any necessity to shift the sail, further than to ease or tighten the sheets as the course of the land varied. By degrees the wind came more and more across his course, at right angles to it, and then began to fall aft as he described an arc, and the land projected northwards.

His journey this time was much easier than the day before when he had to constantly adjust his direction. A steady, strong breeze blew in from the land, too close for any waves to form, and hour after hour went by without needing to change the sail, except to loosen or tighten the sheets as the coastline changed. Gradually, the wind shifted more across his path, at a right angle, and then started blowing from behind him as he followed a curved route and the land extended northwards.

He saw several small villages on the shore, and passed one narrow bay, which seemed, indeed, to penetrate into the land deeper than he could actually see. Suddenly, after four or five hours, sailing, he saw the tower of a church over the wooded hills. This he knew must indicate the position of Aisi. The question now came, whether he should sail into the harbour, when he would, of course, at once be seen, and have to undergo the examination of the officers; or should he land, and go on foot to the city? A minute's reflection assured him the latter was the better plan, for his canoe was of so unusual a construction, that it would be more than carefully examined, and not unlikely his little treasures would be discovered and appropriated. Without hesitation, therefore, and congratulating himself that there were no vessels in sight, he ran the canoe on shore among the flags and reeds which bordered it.

He spotted several small villages along the shore and passed a narrow bay that seemed to extend deeper into the land than he could actually see. After sailing for four or five hours, he suddenly caught sight of a church tower rising above the wooded hills. He recognized that this marked the location of Aisi. The dilemma he faced was whether to sail into the harbor, where he would immediately be seen and questioned by the officers, or to land and walk to the city. After a moment of thought, he concluded that landing was the better option because his canoe was so uniquely designed that it would undergo a thorough inspection, and it was likely that his small treasures would be discovered and taken. Without hesitation, and feeling relieved that no ships were in sight, he steered the canoe ashore among the flags and reeds lining the coast.

He drew her up as far as his strength permitted, and not only took down the sail, but unshipped the mast; then cutting a quantity of dead reeds, he scattered them over her, so that, unless a boat passed very close to the land, she would not be seen. While he had a meal he considered how he had better proceed. The only arms with which he excelled were the bow and arrow; clearly, therefore, if he wished an engagement, he should take these with him, and exhibit his skill. But well he knew the utter absence of law and justice except for the powerful. His bow, which he so greatly valued, and which was so well seasoned, and could be relied upon, might be taken from him.

He pulled her up as much as he could, and not only took down the sail but also removed the mast. Then, cutting a bunch of dead reeds, he spread them over her so that, unless a boat came very close to the shore, she wouldn't be seen. While he ate, he thought about how to move forward. The only weapons he was really good with were the bow and arrow; so clearly, if he wanted to fight, he should bring those and show off his skills. But he knew that there was no law or justice at all, except for those who were powerful. His bow, which he valued highly and which was well-seasoned and reliable, could easily be taken from him.

His arrows, so carefully prepared from chosen wood, and pointed with steel, might be seized. Both bow and arrows were far superior to those used by the hunters and soldiery, and he dreaded losing them. There was his crossbow, but it was weak, and intended for killing only small game, as birds, and at short range. He could make no display with that. Sword he had none for defence; there remained only his boar spear, and with this he resolved to be content, trusting to obtain the loan of a bow when the time came to display his skill, and that fortune would enable him to triumph with an inferior weapon.

His arrows, carefully made from selected wood and tipped with steel, could be taken away. Both the bow and arrows were much better than those used by hunters and soldiers, and he feared losing them. He had his crossbow, but it was weak and designed only for taking down small game like birds at close range. He couldn't show off with that. He had no sword for defense; all he had was his boar spear, and he decided to make do with it, hoping to borrow a bow when the time came to showcase his skills, trusting that luck would help him succeed with a lesser weapon.

After resting awhile and stretching his limbs, cramped in the canoe, he set out (carrying his boar-spear only) along the shore, for the thick growth of the firs would not let him penetrate in the direction he had seen the tower. He had to force his way through the reeds and flags and brushwood, which flourished between the firs and the water's edge. It was hard work walking, or rather pushing through these obstacles, and he rejoiced when he emerged upon the slope of a down where there was an open sward, and but a few scattered groups of firs. The fact of it being open, and the shortness of the sward, showed at once that it was used for grazing purposes for cattle and sheep. Here he could walk freely, and soon reached the top. Thence the city was visible almost underneath him.

After resting for a bit and stretching out his legs, cramped in the canoe, he set off (carrying only his boar-spear) along the shore, since the dense fir trees wouldn’t let him get through in the direction of the tower he had spotted. He had to push his way through the reeds, cattails, and brush that thrived between the firs and the water's edge. It was tough going, or rather battling through these obstacles, and he felt a sense of relief when he finally emerged onto the slope of a hill where there was open grass and just a few scattered groups of firs. The open space and the short grass made it clear that it was used for grazing cattle and sheep. Here he could walk freely, and he quickly made it to the top. From there, the city was almost directly below him.

It stood at the base of a low narrow promontory, which ran a long way into the Lake. The narrow bank, near where it joined the mainland, was penetrated by a channel or creek, about a hundred yards wide, or less, which channel appeared to enter the land and was lost from sight of among the trees. Beyond this channel a river ran into the lake, and in the Y, between the creek and the river, the city had been built.

It was located at the foot of a low, narrow promontory that stretched way out into the lake. The slim bank, close to where it met the mainland, had a channel or creek, roughly a hundred yards wide or maybe less, that seemed to lead inland and vanished from view among the trees. Beyond this channel, a river flowed into the lake, and in the Y formed between the creek and the river, the city had been established.

It was surrounded with a brick wall, and there were two large round brick towers on the land side, which indicated the position of the castle and palace. The space enclosed by the walls was not more than half a mile square, and the houses did not occupy nearly all of it. There were open places, gardens, and even small paddocks among them. None of the houses were more than two storeys high, but what at once struck a stranger was the fact that they were all roofed with red tiles, most of the houses of that day being thatched or covered with shingles of wood. As Felix afterwards learnt, this had been effected during the reign of the present king, whose object was to protect his city from being set on fire by burning arrows. The encircling wall had become a dull red hue from the long exposure to the weather, but the roofs were a brighter red. There was no ensign flying on either of the towers, from which he concluded that the king at that moment was absent.

It was surrounded by a brick wall, and there were two large round brick towers on the land side that marked the castle and palace's location. The area enclosed by the walls was no more than half a mile square, and the houses didn't take up nearly all of it. There were open spaces, gardens, and even small paddocks among them. None of the houses were more than two stories high, but what immediately caught a stranger's attention was that they all had red tile roofs, while most houses of that time were thatched or covered with wooden shingles. As Felix later learned, this change happened during the reign of the current king, whose goal was to protect his city from being set on fire by burning arrows. The surrounding wall had turned a dull red from long exposure to the elements, but the roofs were a brighter shade of red. There was no flag flying on either of the towers, which led him to conclude that the king was currently absent.


CHAPTER XVI
THE CITY


Slowly descending towards the city, Felix looked in vain for any means of crossing the channel or creek, which extended upon the side of it, and in which he counted twenty-two merchant vessels at anchor, or moored to the bank, besides a number of smaller craft and boats. The ship of war, which had arrived before him, was beached close up by a gate of the city, which opened on the creek or port, and her crew were busily engaged discharging her stores. As he walked beside the creek trying to call the attention of some boatman to take him across, he was impressed by the silence, for though the city wall was not much more than a stone's throw distant, there was none of the usual hum which arises from the movements of people. On looking closer he noticed, too, that there were few persons on the merchant vessels, and not one gang at work loading or unloading. Except the warder stalking to and fro on the wall, and the crew of the war-ship, there was no one visible. As the warder paced to and fro the blade of his partisan gleamed in the sunshine. He must have seen Felix, but with military indifference did not pay the slightest heed to the latter's efforts to attract his attention.

Slowly descending toward the city, Felix searched in vain for a way to cross the channel or creek that ran alongside it. He counted twenty-two merchant vessels anchored or moored to the bank, along with several smaller boats. The warship that had arrived before him was beached near a city gate that opened onto the creek or port, and her crew was busy unloading supplies. As he walked along the creek, trying to get the attention of a boatman to take him across, he was struck by the silence; despite the city wall being only a stone's throw away, there was none of the usual buzz from people moving about. Looking closer, he noticed there were few people on the merchant vessels, and not a single team was working to load or unload. Aside from the warder pacing back and forth on the wall and the crew of the warship, there was no one in sight. As the warder walked, the blade of his spear gleamed in the sunshine. He must have seen Felix, but with military indifference, he didn’t pay any attention to Felix's attempts to get his notice.

He now passed the war-ship, and shouted to the men at work, who were, he could see, carrying sheaves of arrows and bundles of javelins from the vessel and placing them on carts; but they did not trouble to reply. His common dress and ordinary appearance did not inspire them with any hope of payment from him if they obliged him with a boat. The utter indifference with which his approach was seen showed him the contempt in which he was held.

He now walked past the warship and shouted to the workers, who were busy carrying bundles of arrows and javelins from the ship and loading them onto carts; but they didn’t bother to respond. His simple clothes and average appearance didn’t give them any hope of getting paid if they helped him with a boat. The complete indifference with which they regarded his approach made it clear how little they thought of him.

Looking round to see if there were no bridge or ferry, he caught sight of the grey church tower which he had observed from afar while sailing. It was quite a mile from the city, and isolated outside the walls. It stood on the slope of the hill, over whose summit the tower was visible. He wandered up towards it, as there were usually people in or about the churches, which were always open day and night. If no one else, the porter in the lodge at the church door would be there, for he or his representative never left it, being always on the watch lest some thief should attempt to enter the treasury, or steal the sacred vessels.

Looking around to see if there was no bridge or ferry, he spotted the gray church tower that he had seen from a distance while sailing. It was about a mile from the city and stood alone outside the walls. It was perched on the slope of the hill, with the tower visible over the top. He walked towards it, as there were usually people in or around the churches, which were always open day and night. If no one else was there, the porter at the church door would be, since he or his representative never left, always keeping watch to prevent any thieves from trying to break into the treasury or steal the sacred vessels.

But as he ascended the hill he met a shepherd, whose dogs prepared to fly at him, recognising a stranger. For a moment the man seemed inclined to let them wreak their will, if they could, for he also felt inclined to challenge a stranger, but, seeing Felix lower his spear, it probably occurred to him that some of his dogs would be killed. He therefore ordered them down, and stayed to listen. Felix learnt that there was no bridge across the creek, and only one over the river; but there was a ferry for anybody who was known. No strangers were allowed to cross the ferry; they must enter by the main road over the bridge.

But as he climbed the hill, he ran into a shepherd whose dogs were ready to attack, sensing an outsider. For a moment, the man seemed ready to let them have their way, as he also wanted to confront a stranger, but seeing Felix lower his spear, he probably realized some of his dogs might get hurt. So, he called them off and paused to listen. Felix learned that there was no bridge across the creek and only one over the river, but there was a ferry for anyone who was known. Strangers weren’t allowed to use the ferry; they had to come in by the main road over the bridge.

"But how am I to get into the place then?" said Felix. The shepherd shook his head, and said he could not tell him, and walked away about his business.

"But how am I supposed to get into the place then?" Felix asked. The shepherd shook his head and said he didn't know, then walked away to tend to his work.

Discouraged at these trifling vexations, which seemed to cross his path at every step, Felix found his way to the ferry, but, as the shepherd had said, the boatman refused to carry him, being a stranger. No persuasion could move him; nor the offer of a small silver coin, worth about ten times his fare.

Discouraged by these petty annoyances that seemed to appear at every turn, Felix made his way to the ferry, but, as the shepherd had mentioned, the boatman refused to take him, simply because he was a stranger. No amount of persuasion could change his mind, even the offer of a small silver coin, which was worth about ten times the cost of his fare.

"I must then swim across," said Felix, preparing to take off his clothes.

"I guess I have to swim across," said Felix, getting ready to take off his clothes.

"Swim, if you like," said the boatman, with a grim smile; "but you will never land."

"Swim, if you want," said the boatman with a wry smile; "but you'll never make it to shore."

"Why not?"

"Why not?"

"Because the warder will let drive at you with an arrow."

"Because the guard will shoot at you with an arrow."

Felix looked, and saw that he was opposite the extreme angle of the city wall, a point usually guarded with care. There was a warder stalking to and fro; he carried a partisan, but, of course, might have his bow within reach, or could probably call to the soldiers of the guard.

Felix looked and saw that he was across from the far corner of the city wall, a spot that was typically watched closely. A guard was pacing back and forth; he held a spear, but he could easily have a bow nearby or could likely summon the soldiers on duty.

"This is annoying," said Felix, ready to give up his enterprise. "How ever can I get into the city?"

"This is so annoying," said Felix, about to abandon his plan. "How am I supposed to get into the city?"

The old boatman grinned, but said nothing, and returned to a net which he was mending. He made no answer to the further questions Felix put to him. Felix then shouted to the warder; the soldier looked once, but paid no more heed. Felix walked a little way and sat down on the grass. He was deeply discouraged. These repulses, trifles in themselves, assumed an importance, because his mind had long been strung up to a high pitch of tension. A stolid man would have thought nothing of them. After a while he arose, again asking himself how should he become a leader, who had not the perseverance to enter a city in peaceful guise?

The old boatman smiled but didn’t say anything and went back to fixing his net. He didn’t respond to Felix’s additional questions. Felix then yelled for the guard; the soldier glanced over but didn’t pay any more attention. Felix walked a bit and sat down on the grass. He felt very discouraged. These dismissals, insignificant on their own, felt bigger because his mind had been on edge for so long. A stoic person wouldn’t have thought much of them. After a while, he stood up, questioning how he could become a leader when he lacked the perseverance to enter a city peacefully.

Not knowing what else to do, he followed the creek round the foot of the hill, and so onwards for a mile or more. This bank was steep, on account of the down; the other cultivated, the corn being already high. The cuckoo sang (she loves the near neighbourhood of man) and flew over the channel towards a little copse. Almost suddenly the creek wound round under a low chalk cliff, and in a moment Felix found himself confronted by another city. This had no wall; it was merely defended by a ditch and earthwork, without tower or bastion.

Not knowing what else to do, he followed the creek around the base of the hill, continuing on for a mile or so. One bank was steep because of the slope; the other side was cultivated, with the corn already tall. The cuckoo sang (she enjoys being close to humans) and flew over the water toward a small grove. Almost suddenly, the creek twisted under a low chalk cliff, and in an instant, Felix found himself facing another city. This one had no wall; it was only protected by a ditch and an earthen rampart, with no tower or bastion.

The houses were placed thickly together; there were, he thought, six or seven times as many as he had previously seen, and they were thatched or shingled, like those in his own country. It stood in the midst of the fields, and the corn came up to the fosse; there were many people at work, but, as he noticed, most of them were old men, bowed and feeble. A little way farther he saw a second boathouse; he hastened thither, and the ferrywoman, for the boat was poled across by a stout dame, made not the least difficulty about ferrying him over. So delighted was Felix at this unexpected fortune, that he gave her the small silver coin, at sight of which he instantly rose high in her estimation.

The houses were packed closely together; he thought there were six or seven times as many as he had seen before, and they were thatched or shingled, similar to those in his own country. It was in the middle of the fields, and the corn grew right up to the ditch; there were many people working, but, as he noticed, most of them were old men, bent and weak. A little farther on, he saw a second boathouse; he hurried there, and the ferrywoman, since the boat was poled across by a strong woman, had no trouble at all ferrying him over. Felix was so thrilled with this unexpected fortune that he gave her the small silver coin, which instantly raised him high in her regard.

She explained to him, in answer to his inquiries, that this was also called Aisi; this was the city of the common folk. Those who were rich or powerful had houses in the walled city, the precinct of the Court. Many of the houses there, too, were the inns of great families who dwelt in the country in their castles, but when they came to the Court required a house. Their shields, or coats of arms, were painted over the doors. The walled city was guarded with such care, because so many attempts had been made to surprise it, and to assassinate the king, whose fiery disposition and constant wars had raised him up so many enemies. As much care was taken to prevent a single stranger entering as if he were the vanguard of a hostile army, and if he now went back (as he could do) to the bridge over the river, he would be stopped and questioned, and possibly confined in prison till the king returned.

She told him, in response to his questions, that this was also called Aisi; it was the city of everyday people. Those who were wealthy or powerful had homes in the walled city, the area surrounding the Court. Many of the houses there were also inns for prominent families who lived in the countryside in their castles, but when they came to the Court, they needed a place to stay. Their coats of arms were painted above the doors. The walled city was guarded very carefully because there had been many attempts to invade it and assassinate the king, whose fiery temperament and constant wars had made him many enemies. They took as much care to stop any stranger from entering as if he were the forerunner of an attacking army, and if he tried to go back (which he could do) to the bridge over the river, he would be stopped and questioned, and possibly imprisoned until the king returned.

"Where is the king?" asked Felix; "I came to try and take service with him."

"Where's the king?" Felix asked. "I came to see if I could work for him."

"Then you will be welcome," said the woman. "He is in the field, and has just sat down before Iwis."

"Then you’re welcome," said the woman. "He’s in the field and just sat down in front of Iwis."

"That was why the walled city seemed so empty, then." said Felix.

"That's why the walled city felt so empty, then," said Felix.

"Yes; all the people are with him; there will be a great battle this time."

"Yeah, everyone is on his side; there’s going to be a big battle this time."

"How far is it to Iwis?" said Felix.

"How far is it to Iwis?" Felix asked.

"Twenty-seven miles," replied the dame; "and if you take my advice, you had better walk twenty-seven miles there, than two miles back to the bridge over the river."

"Twenty-seven miles," the woman replied; "and if you want my advice, it's better to walk twenty-seven miles there than two miles back to the bridge over the river."

Someone now called from the opposite bank, and she started with the boat to fetch another passenger.

Someone on the other side of the river called out, and she set off in the boat to pick up another passenger.

"Thank you, very much," said Felix, as he wished her good day; "but why did not the man at the other ferry tell me I could cross here?"

"Thank you so much," said Felix, as he wished her a good day; "but why didn't the guy at the other ferry tell me I could cross here?"

The woman laughed outright. "Do you suppose he was going to put a penny in my way when he could not get it himself?"

The woman laughed out loud. "Do you really think he was going to throw a penny in my path when he couldn’t pick it up himself?"

So mean and petty is the world! Felix entered the second city and walked some distance through it, when he recollected that he had not eaten for some time. He looked in vain for an inn, but upon speaking to a man who was leaning on his crutch at a doorway, he was at once asked to enter, and all that the house afforded was put before him. The man with the crutch sat down opposite, and remarked that most of the folk were gone to the camp, but he could not because his foot had been injured. He then went on to tell how it had happened, with the usual garrulity of the wounded. He was assisting to place the beam of a battering-ram upon a truck (it took ten horses to draw it) when a lever snapped, and the beam fell. Had the beam itself touched him he would have been killed on the spot; as it was, only a part of the broken lever or pole hit him. Thrown with such force, the weight of the ram driving it, the fragment of the pole grazed his leg, and either broke one of the small bones that form the arch of the instep, or so bruised it that it was worse than broken. All the bone-setters and surgeons had gone to the camp, and he was left without attendance other than the women, who fomented the foot daily, but he had little hope of present recovery, knowing that such things were often months about.

So cruel and petty is the world! Felix entered the second city and walked for a while when he suddenly realized he hadn't eaten in a while. He searched in vain for an inn, but when he talked to a man leaning on his crutch in a doorway, he was immediately invited inside, and everything the house had to offer was put before him. The man with the crutch sat down across from him and mentioned that most people had gone to the camp, but he couldn't go because his foot was injured. He then went on to explain how it happened, chatting like many injured people do. He was helping to place the beam of a battering ram onto a truck (it took ten horses to pull it) when a lever snapped, and the beam fell. If the beam itself had hit him, he would have been killed instantly; as it was, only a piece of the broken lever struck him. Thrown with such force, with the weight of the ram behind it, the fragment of the pole grazed his leg, either breaking one of the small bones in the arch of his foot or bruising it so badly that it was worse than a break. All the bone-setters and doctors had gone to the camp, and he was left with no one to attend to him except for the women, who soaked his foot daily, but he had little hope of recovering soon, knowing that these things often took months.

He thought it lucky that it was no worse, for very few, he had noticed, ever recovered from serious wounds of spear or arrow. The wounded generally died; only the fortunate escaped. Thus he ran on, talking as much for his own amusement as that of his guest. He fretted because he could not join the camp and help work the artillery; he supposed the ram would be in position by now and shaking the wall with its blow. He wondered if Baron Ingulph would miss his face.

He felt lucky that it wasn't worse, because he had noticed that very few people ever recovered from serious spear or arrow wounds. Most of the wounded died; only the lucky ones made it out alive. So he kept running, chatting for his own entertainment as much as for his guest's. He was anxious because he couldn't join the camp and help with the artillery; he guessed the ram would be in place by now and pounding the wall with its impact. He wondered if Baron Ingulph would even notice he was gone.

"Who's he?" asked Felix.

"Who is he?" asked Felix.

"He is captain of the artillery," replied his host.

"He’s the captain of the artillery," replied his host.

"Are you his retainer?"

"Are you his assistant?"

"No; I am a servant."

"No; I'm a servant."

Felix started slightly, and did but just check himself from rising from the table. A "servant" was a slave; it was the euphemism used instead of the hateful word, which not even the most degraded can endure to bear. The class of the nobles to which he belonged deemed it a disgrace to sit down with a slave, to eat with him, even to accidently touch him. With the retainers, or free men, they were on familiar terms, though despotic to the last degree; the slave was less than the dog. Then, stealing a glance at the man's face, Felix saw that he had no moustache; he had not noticed this before. No slaves were allowed to wear the moustache.

Felix flinched slightly and barely stopped himself from getting up from the table. A "servant" was a slave; it was the polite term used instead of the hateful word that even the most degraded couldn’t stand to hear. The noble class he belonged to considered it disgraceful to sit down with a slave, to eat with him, or even to accidentally touch him. With retainers, or free men, they were on familiar terms, though they were completely despotic; the slave was considered less than a dog. Then, stealing a glance at the man's face, Felix noticed that he had no mustache; he hadn't realized this before. No slaves were allowed to wear a mustache.

This man having been at home ill some days had neglected to shave, and there was some mark upon his upper lip. As he caught his guest's glance, the slave hung his head, and asked his guest in a low and humble voice not to mention this fault. With his face slightly flushed, Felix finished his meal; he was confused to the last degree. His long training and the tone of the society in which he had moved (though so despised a member of it) prejudiced him strongly against the man whose hospitality was so welcome. On the other hand, the ideas which had for so long worked in his mind in his solitary intercommunings in the forest were entirely opposed to servitude. In abstract principle he had long since condemned it, and desired to abolish it. But here was the fact.

This man had been at home sick for several days and had neglected to shave, leaving a mark on his upper lip. When he caught his guest's gaze, the servant looked down and quietly asked his guest not to mention this flaw. With a slight flush on his face, Felix finished his meal, feeling extremely confused. His long experience and the attitudes of the society he belonged to (even as a disregarded member) made him strongly prejudiced against the man whose hospitality he appreciated. On the other hand, the ideas he had contemplated during his solitary thoughts in the forest completely opposed the idea of servitude. In principle, he had condemned it long ago and wanted to see it abolished. But here was the reality.

He had eaten at a slave's table, and sat with him face to face. Theory and practice are often strangely at variance. He felt it an important moment; he felt that he was himself, as it were, on the balance; should he adhere to the ancient prejudice, the ancient exclusiveness of his class, or should he boldly follow the dictate of his mind? He chose the latter, and extended his hand to the servant as he rose to say good-bye. The act was significant; it recognised man as distinct from caste. The servant did not know the conflict that had taken place; but to be shaken hands with at all, even by a retainer as he supposed Felix to be, was indeed a surprise. He could not understand it; it was the first time his hand had been taken by any one of superior position since he had been born. He was dumb with amazement, and could scarcely point out the road when asked; nor did he take the small coin Felix offered, one of the few he possessed. Felix therefore left it on the table and again started.

He had eaten at a servant's table and sat across from him. Theory and practice often clash in surprising ways. He sensed this was a crucial moment; he felt like he was at a crossroads, deciding whether to stick to the old prejudices and exclusivity of his class or to bravely follow his own beliefs. He chose the latter and reached out his hand to the servant as he stood up to say goodbye. The gesture was significant; it acknowledged the individual beyond social class. The servant didn’t realize the internal struggle that had just occurred, but being shaken hands with at all, even by someone he assumed was a subordinate like Felix, was genuinely surprising. He couldn’t comprehend it; it was the first time anyone of a higher status had taken his hand since he was born. He was speechless with astonishment and could barely give directions when asked; he also didn't take the small coin Felix offered, one of the few he had. So, Felix left it on the table and set off again.

Passing through the town, Felix followed the track which led in the direction indicated. In about half a mile it led him to a wider track, which he immediately recognised as the main way and road to the camp by the ruts and dust, for the sward had been trampled down for fifty yards wide, and even the corn was cut up by wheels and horses' hoofs. The army had passed, and he had but to follow its unmistakable trail.

Passing through the town, Felix followed the path that pointed the way. After about half a mile, he came to a wider path, which he instantly recognized as the main road to the camp, marked by the ruts and dust. The ground had been trampled down for fifty yards wide, and even the corn was damaged by wheels and horses' hooves. The army had gone by, and all he had to do was follow its clear trail.


CHAPTER XVII
THE CAMP


Felix walked steadily on for nearly three hours, when the rough track, the dust, and heat began to tell upon him, and he sat down beside the way. The sun was now declining, and the long June day tending to its end. A horseman passed, coming from the camp, and as he wore only a sword, and had a leathern bag slung from his shoulder, he appeared to be a courtier. The dust raised by the hoofs, as it rose and floated above the brushwood, rendered his course visible. Some time afterwards, while he still rested, being very weary with walking through the heat of the afternoon, he heard the sound of wheels, and two carts drawn by horses came along the track from the city.

Felix walked steadily for almost three hours when the rough path, dust, and heat started to wear him down, so he sat down by the side of the road. The sun was beginning to set, and the long June day was nearing its end. A horseman rode by, coming from the camp, and since he was only wearing a sword and had a leather bag slung over his shoulder, he looked like a courtier. The dust kicked up by the horse’s hooves rose and floated above the bushes, making his path noticeable. After a while, while he was still resting and feeling very tired from walking in the afternoon heat, he heard the sound of wheels, and two carts pulled by horses came along the track from the city.

The carts were laden with bundles of arrows, perhaps the same he had seen unloading that morning from the war-ship, and were accompanied only by carters. As they approached he rose, feeling that it was time to continue his journey. His tired feet were now stiff, and he limped as he stepped out into the road. The men spoke, and he walked as well as he could beside them, using his boar-spear as a staff. There were two carters with each cart; and presently, noting how he lagged, and could scarce keep pace with them, one of them took a wooden bottle from the load on his cart, and offered him a draught of ale.

The carts were loaded with bundles of arrows, probably the same ones he had seen being unloaded that morning from the warship, and they were just accompanied by the drivers. As they got closer, he stood up, realizing it was time to keep going on his journey. His tired feet were now stiff, and he limped as he stepped onto the road. The men talked, and he walked as best as he could alongside them, using his boar-spear like a walking stick. Each cart had two drivers; soon, noticing that he was falling behind and struggling to keep up, one of them took a wooden bottle from the load on his cart and offered him a drink of ale.

Thus somewhat refreshed, Felix began to talk, and learnt that the arrows were from the vessel in whose track he had sailed; that it had been sent loaded with stores for the king's use, by his friend the Prince of Quinton; that very great efforts had been made to get together a large army in this campaign; first, because the city besieged was so near home, and failure might be disastrous, and, secondly, because it was one of three which were all republics, and the other two would be certain to send it assistance. These cities stood in a plain, but a few miles apart, and in a straight line on the banks of the river. The king had just sat down before the first, vowing that he would knock them down, one after the other, like a row of ninepins.

Feeling somewhat refreshed, Felix started to talk and discovered that the arrows were from the ship he had followed; it had been sent full of supplies for the king by his friend, the Prince of Quinton. Great efforts had been made to gather a large army for this campaign; first, because the besieged city was so close to home and failure could be disastrous, and second, because it was one of three republics, and the other two would definitely provide support. These cities were located on a plain just a few miles apart and in a straight line along the riverbank. The king had just begun his siege of the first city, declaring that he would take them down one by one, like a line of bowling pins.

The carters asked him, in return, whose retainer he was, and he said that he was on his way to take service, and was under no banner yet.

The carters asked him whose servant he was, and he replied that he was on his way to serving someone but wasn’t affiliated with any group yet.

"Then," said the man who had given him a drink, "if you are free like that, you had better join the king's levy, and be careful to avoid the barons' war. For if you join either of the barons' war, they will know you to be a stranger, and very likely, if they see that you are quick and active, they will not let you free again, and if you attempt to escape after the campaign, you will find yourself mightily mistaken. The baron's captain would only have to say you had always been his man; and, as for your word, it would be no more than a dog's bark. Besides which, if you rebelled, it would be only to shave off that moustache of yours, and declare you a slave, and as you have no friends in camp, a slave you would be."

"Then," said the man who had given him a drink, "if you're that free, you should join the king's army and watch out for the barons' war. If you get involved in the barons' war, they'll realize you're an outsider, and chances are, if they see that you're quick and capable, they won't let you go. And if you try to escape after the campaign, you'll be in for a rude awakening. The baron's captain could easily claim you were his man all along, and your word would mean nothing—just like a dog's bark. Plus, if you rebelled, they'd just shave off that mustache of yours and label you a slave, and since you have no friends in camp, that's exactly what you'd become."

"That would be very unjust," said Felix. "Surely the king would not allow it?"

"That would be really unfair," Felix said. "Surely the king wouldn't permit that?"

"How is he to know?" said another of the carters. "My brother's boy was served just like that. He was born free, the same as all our family, but he was fond of roving, and when he reached Quinton, he was seen by Baron Robert, who was in want of men, and being a likely young fellow, they shaved his lip, and forced him to labour under the thong. When his spirit was cowed, and he seemed reconciled, they let him grow his moustache again, and there he is now, a retainer, and well treated. But still, it was against his will. Jack is right; you had better join the king's levy."

"How would he know?" said another of the carters. "My brother's son went through the same thing. He was born free, just like the rest of our family, but he loved to wander. When he got to Quinton, Baron Robert spotted him. The baron needed men, and since he was a strong young guy, they shaved his lip and forced him to work under harsh conditions. Once they broke his spirit and he seemed okay with it, they let him grow his mustache back, and now he's a loyal servant and treated well. But still, it was against his will. Jack's right; you should just join the king's army."

The king's levy is composed of his own retainers from his estates, of townsmen, who are not retainers of the barons, of any knights and volunteers who like to offer their services; and a king always desires as large a levy as possible, because it enables him to overawe his barons. These, when their "war", or forces, are collected together in camp, are often troublesome, and inclined to usurp authority. A volunteer is, therefore, always welcome in the king's levy.

The king's levy consists of his own soldiers from his lands, townspeople who aren't linked to the barons, and any knights and volunteers who want to lend their support. A king always wants as many troops as possible because it helps him keep his barons in check. When their "army" is gathered in a camp, they can be problematic and often try to take control. So, a volunteer is always a welcome addition to the king's levy.

Felix thanked them for the information they had given him, and said he should certainly follow their advice. He could now hardly keep up with the carts, having walked for so many hours, and undergone so much previous exertion. Finding this to be the case, he wished them good-night, and looked round for some cover. It was now dusk, and he knew he could go no farther. When they understood his intention, they consulted among themselves, and finally made him get up into one of the carts, and sit down on the bundles of arrows, which filled it like faggots. Thus he was jolted along, the rude wheels fitting but badly on the axle, and often sinking deep into a rut.

Felix thanked them for the information they had given him and said he would definitely follow their advice. He could hardly keep up with the carts after walking for so many hours and exerting himself so much. Realizing this, he wished them good night and looked for some shelter. It was now dusk, and he knew he couldn’t go any further. When they understood his plan, they discussed it among themselves and eventually made him climb into one of the carts, where he sat on the bundles of arrows that filled it like firewood. He was jolted along as the rough wheels fit poorly on the axle, often sinking deep into ruts.

They were now in thick forest, and the track was much narrower, so that it had become worn into a hollow, as if it were the dry bed of a torrent. The horses and the carters were weary, yet they were obliged to plod on, as the arms had to be delivered before the morrow. They spoke little, except to urge the animals. Felix soon dropped into a reclining posture (uneasy as it was, it was a relief), and looking up, saw the white summer stars above. After a time he lost consciousness, and slept soundly, quite worn out, despite the jolting and creaking of the wheels.

They were now in a dense forest, and the path had become much narrower, worn down into a groove like the dry bed of a stream. The horses and the drivers were exhausted, but they had to keep moving since the arms needed to be delivered by morning. They hardly talked, only encouraging the animals. Felix soon laid back (uncomfortable as it was, it felt like a relief) and looked up at the bright summer stars above. After a while, he lost awareness and fell into a deep sleep, totally worn out despite the bumping and creaking of the wheels.

The sound of a trumpet woke him with a start. His heavy and dreamless sleep for a moment had taken away his memory, and he did not know where he was. As he sat up two sacks fell from him; the carters had thrown them over him as a protection against the night's dew. The summer morning was already as bright as noonday, and the camp about him was astir. In half a minute he came to himself, and getting out of the cart looked round. All his old interest had returned, the spirit of war entered into him, the trumpet sounded again, and the morning breeze extended the many-coloured banners.

The sound of a trumpet jolted him awake. His deep, dreamless sleep had briefly wiped his memory, and he wasn’t sure where he was. As he sat up, two sacks fell off him; the drivers had tossed them over him to shield him from the night dew. The summer morning was already as bright as noon, and the camp around him was buzzing with activity. Within moments, he regained his bearings, climbed out of the cart, and looked around. His old excitement returned, the spirit of war filled him, the trumpet sounded again, and the morning breeze billowed the colorful banners.

The spot where he stood was in the rear of the main camp, and but a short distance from the unbroken forest. Upon either hand there was an intermingled mass of stores, carts, and waggons crowded together, sacks and huge heaps of forage, on and about which scores of slaves, drivers and others, were sleeping in every possible attitude, many of them evidently still under the influence of the ale they had drunk the night before. What struck him at once was the absence of any guard here in the rear. The enemy might steal out from the forest behind and help himself to what he chose, or murder the sleeping men, or, passing through the stores, fall on the camp itself. To Felix this neglect appeared inexplicable; it indicated a mental state which he could not comprehend, a state only to be described by negatives. There was no completeness, no system, no organization; it was a kind of haphazardness, altogether opposite to his own clear and well-ordered ideas.

The place where he stood was at the back of the main camp, just a short distance from the dense forest. On either side, there was a tangled mix of supplies, carts, and wagons crowded together, with sacks and large piles of forage. Numerous slaves, drivers, and others were sprawled out in every possible position, many still clearly under the influence of the ale they had drunk the night before. What hit him immediately was the lack of any guard at the back. The enemy could sneak out from the forest and take whatever they wanted, or attack the sleeping men, or move through the supplies to launch an assault on the camp itself. To Felix, this neglect seemed inexplicable; it reflected a mindset he couldn't grasp, one that could only be described by what it lacked. There was no completeness, no system, no organization; it felt chaotic, completely opposite to his own clear and orderly ideas.

The ground sloped gently downwards from the edge of the forest, and the place where he was had probably been ploughed, but was now trodden flat and hard. Next in front of the stores he observed a long, low hut built of poles, and roofed with fir branches; the walls were formed of ferns, straw, bundles of hay, anything that had come to hand. On a standard beside it, a pale blue banner, with the device of a double hammer worked in gold upon it, fluttered in the wind. Twenty or thirty, perhaps more, spears leant against one end of this rude shed, their bright points projecting yards above the roof. To the right of the booth as many horses were picketed, and not far from them some soldiers were cooking at an open fire of logs. As Felix came slowly towards the booth, winding in and out among the carts and heaps of sacks, he saw that similar erections extended down the slope for a long distance.

The ground gently sloped down from the edge of the forest, and the area he was in had likely been plowed, but was now flattened and hard from use. In front of the stores, he noticed a long, low hut made of poles and covered with fir branches; the walls were made from ferns, straw, bundles of hay, and anything else that was available. Beside it stood a pole with a pale blue banner fluttering in the wind, featuring a double hammer design embroidered in gold. Twenty or thirty, maybe more, spears leaned against one end of this makeshift shelter, their sharp tips sticking out several feet above the roof. To the right of the booth were just as many horses tied up, and not far from them, some soldiers were cooking over an open fire made of logs. As Felix made his way slowly toward the booth, weaving through the carts and piles of sacks, he noticed that similar structures stretched down the slope for quite a distance.

There were hundreds of them, some large, some small, not placed in any order, but pitched where chance or fancy led, the first-comers taking the sites that pleased them, and the rest crowding round. Beside each hut stood the banner of the owner, and Felix knew from this that they were occupied by the barons, knights, and captains of the army. The retainers of each baron bivouacked as they might in the open air; some of them had hunter's hides, and others used bundles of straw to sleep on. Their fire was as close to their lord's hut as convenient, and thus there were always plenty within call.

There were hundreds of them, some big, some small, not in any particular order, but set up wherever chance or preference led, with the first arrivals picking the spots they liked, and the others gathering around. Next to each hut stood the owner's flag, and Felix recognized from this that they belonged to the barons, knights, and leaders of the army. The retainers of each baron camped out as best they could in the open air; some had hunters' hides, while others used bundles of straw to sleep on. Their fire was as close to their lord's hut as possible, ensuring there were always plenty of them available when needed.

The servants, or slaves, also slept in the open air, but in the rear of their owner's booth, and apart from the free retainers. Felix noticed, that although the huts were pitched anyhow and anywhere, those on the lowest ground seemed built along a line, and, looking closer, he found that a small stream ran there. He learnt afterwards that there was usually an emulation among the commanders to set up their standards as near the water as possible, on account of convenience, those in the rear having often to lead their horses a long distance to water. Beyond the stream the ground rose again as gradually as it had declined. It was open and cultivated up to the walls of the besieged city, which was not three-quarters of a mile distant. Felix could not for the moment distinguish the king's head-quarters. The confused manner in which the booths were built prevented him from seeing far, though from the higher ground it was easy to look over their low roofs.

The servants, or slaves, also slept outdoors, but behind their owner's booth and separate from the free retainers. Felix noticed that even though the huts were set up haphazardly, those on the low ground seemed to be arranged in a line, and when he looked closer, he realized a small stream ran there. He later learned that there was often competition among the commanders to set up their standards as close to the water as possible for convenience, since those in the back often had to walk their horses a long way to water. Beyond the stream, the ground rose again as gradually as it had declined. It was open and farmed right up to the walls of the besieged city, which was less than three-quarters of a mile away. For the moment, Felix couldn't pick out the king's headquarters. The scattered way the booths were set up made it hard for him to see far, although from the elevated ground, it was easy to look over their low roofs.

He now wandered into the centre of the camp, and saw with astonishment groups of retainers everywhere eating, drinking, talking, and even playing cards or dice, but not a single officer of any rank. At last, stopping by the embers of a fire, he asked timidly if he might have breakfast. The soldiers laughed and pointed to a cart behind them, telling him to help himself. The cart was turned with the tail towards the fire, and laden with bread and sides of bacon, slices of which the retainers had been toasting at the embers.

He wandered into the center of the camp and was astonished to see groups of attendants everywhere eating, drinking, chatting, and even playing cards or dice, but not a single officer in sight. Finally, he stopped by the glowing embers of a fire and asked shyly if he could have breakfast. The soldiers laughed and pointed to a cart behind them, telling him to help himself. The cart was facing the fire, loaded with bread and sides of bacon, with slices that the attendants had been toasting over the embers.

He did as he was bid, and the next minute a soldier, not quite steady on his legs even at that hour, offered him the can, "for," said he, "you had best drink whilst you may, youngster. There is always plenty of drink and good living at the beginning of a war, and very often not a drop or a bite to be got in the middle of it." Listening to their talk as he ate his breakfast, Felix found the reason there were no officers about was because most of them had drunk too freely the night before. The king himself, they said, was put to bed as tight as a drum, and it took no small quantity to fill so huge a vessel, for he was a remarkably big man.

He did as he was told, and the next moment a soldier, a bit unsteady on his feet even at that hour, handed him the can, saying, "You should drink while you can, kid. There's usually plenty of booze and good food at the start of a war, but often there’s not a drop or a bite available in the middle of it." While listening to their conversation during breakfast, Felix realized that the reason there were no officers around was that most had drunk too much the night before. They said the king himself was put to bed completely hammered, and it took quite a lot to fill such a large frame, since he was an exceptionally big man.

After the fatigue of the recent march, they had, in fact, refreshed themselves, and washed down the dust of the track. They thought that this siege was likely to be a very tough business, and congratulated themselves that it was not thirty miles to Aisi, so that so long as they stayed there they might, perhaps, get supplies of provisions with tolerable regularity. "But if you're over the water, my lad," said the old fellow with the can, picking his teeth with a twig, "and have got to get your victuals by ship; by George, you may have to eat grass, or gnaw boughs like a horse."

After the exhausting march, they had, in fact, rested a bit and washed away the dust. They figured that this siege would probably be really challenging and felt relieved that it was only thirty miles to Aisi, so as long as they stayed there, they might be able to get supplies fairly regularly. "But if you're across the water, my friend," said the old man with the can, picking his teeth with a stick, "and you have to get your food by ship; by George, you might end up eating grass or chewing on branches like a horse."

None of these men wore any arms, except the inevitable knife; their arms were piled against the adjacent booth, bows and quivers, spears, swords, bills and darts, thrown together just as they had cast them aside, and more or less rusty from the dew. Felix thought that had the enemy come suddenly down in force they might have made a clean sweep of the camp, for there were no defences, neither breastwork, nor fosse, nor any set guard. But he forgot that the enemy were quite as ill-organized as the besiegers; probably they were in still greater confusion, for King Isembard was considered one of the greatest military commanders of his age, if not the very greatest.

None of these guys were carrying any weapons, except for the usual knife; their gear was stacked against the nearby booth—bows and quivers, spears, swords, bills, and darts—just tossed aside like they didn't care, and a bit rusty from the dew. Felix thought that if the enemy had attacked suddenly with a lot of force, they could have easily wiped out the camp because there were no defenses—no walls, no ditch, and no proper guards. But he forgot that the enemy was just as disorganized as they were; they were probably even more chaotic since King Isembard was viewed as one of the best military leaders of his time, if not the best.

The only sign of discipline he saw was the careful grooming of some horses, which he rightly guessed to be those ridden by the knights, and the equally careful polishing of pieces of armour before the doors of the huts. He wished now to inquire his way to the king's levy, but as the question rose to his lips he checked himself, remembering the caution the friendly carters had given him. He therefore determined to walk about the camp till he found some evidence that he was in the immediate neighbourhood of the king.

The only sign of order he noticed was the meticulous grooming of some horses, which he correctly figured belonged to the knights, and the careful polishing of pieces of armor in front of the huts. He wanted to ask how to get to the king's camp, but just as the question was about to leave his lips, he stopped himself, recalling the advice the friendly cart drivers had given him. So he decided to stroll around the camp until he found some indication that he was close to the king.

He rose, stood about a little while to allay any possible suspicion (quite needless precautions, for the soldiers were far too agreeably engaged to take the least notice of him), and then sauntered off with as careless an air as he could assume. Looking about him, first at a forge where the blacksmith was shoeing a horse, then at a grindstone, where a knight's sword was being sharpened, he was nearly knocked down by a horse, urged at some speed through the crowds. By a rope from the collar, three dead bodies were drawn along the ground, dusty and disfigured by bumping against stone and clod. They were those of slaves, hanged the preceding day, perhaps for pilfering, perhaps for a mere whim, since every baron had power of the gallows.

He stood up and lingered for a bit to avoid raising any suspicion (completely unnecessary since the soldiers were too focused on their own activities to notice him), and then strolled away with as casual an attitude as he could manage. As he looked around, first at a forge where a blacksmith was putting shoes on a horse, then at a grindstone where a knight's sword was being sharpened, he nearly got knocked over by a horse rushing through the crowd. Dragged along by a rope from its collar were three lifeless bodies, covered in dust and bruised from hitting the ground and stones. They were the bodies of slaves, hanged the day before, possibly for stealing or maybe just on a whim, since every baron had the authority to execute.

They were dragged through the camp, and out a few hundred yards beyond, and there left to the crows. This horrible sight, to which the rest were so accustomed and so indifferent that they did not even turn to look at it, deeply shocked him; the drawn and distorted features, the tongues protruding and literally licking the dust, haunted him for long after. Though his father, as a baron, possessed the same power, it had never been exercised during his tenure of the estate, so that Felix had not been hardened to the sight of executions, common enough elsewhere. Upon the Old House estate a species of negative humanity reigned; if the slaves were not emancipated, they were not hanged or cruelly beaten for trifles.

They were dragged through the camp and taken a few hundred yards away, where they were left for the crows. This horrifying sight, which the others had become so used to that they didn’t even glance at it, deeply disturbed him; the twisted and contorted faces, the tongues sticking out and literally touching the dirt, haunted him for a long time afterward. Although his father, as a baron, had the same power, he had never used it during his time managing the estate, so Felix hadn't become desensitized to the sight of executions, which were pretty common elsewhere. On the Old House estate, a kind of negative humanity prevailed; if the slaves weren’t freed, they weren’t hanged or brutally beaten for minor offenses.

Hastening from the spot, Felix came across the artillery, which consisted of battering rams and immense crossbows; the bows were made from entire trees, or, more properly, poles. He inspected these clumsy contrivances with interest, and entered into a conversation with some men who were fitting up the framework on which a battering ram was to swing. Being extremely conceited with themselves and the knowledge they had acquired from experience only (as the repeated blows of the block drive home the pile), they scarcely answered him. But, presently, as he lent a hand to assist, and bore with their churlishness without reply, they softened, and, as usual, asked him to drink, for here, and throughout the camp, the ale was plentiful, too plentiful for much progress.

Hastening away from the spot, Felix stumbled upon the artillery, which included battering rams and huge crossbows; the bows were crafted from whole trees, or more accurately, large poles. He examined these awkward devices with curiosity and struck up a conversation with some men who were assembling the framework for a battering ram. They were very full of themselves, confident in the knowledge they had gained from experience alone (just like the repeated strikes of the block drive the pile deeper), and barely acknowledged him. However, as he offered to help and tolerated their gruffness without complaint, they became more friendly and, as usual, invited him to drink, for here and all over the camp, the ale was abundant—perhaps too abundant for much progress to be made.

Felix took the opportunity and suggested a new form of trigger for the unwieldy crossbows. He saw that as at present discharged it must require some strength, perhaps the united effort of several men, to pull away the bolt or catch. Such an effort must disconcert the aim; these crossbows were worked upon a carriage, and it was difficult to keep the carriage steady even when stakes were inserted by the low wheels. It occurred to him at once that the catch could be depressed by a lever, so that one man could discharge the bow by a mere pressure of the hand, and without interfering with the aim. The men soon understood him, and acknowledged that it would be a great improvement. One, who was the leader of the gang, thought it so valuable an idea that he went off at once to communicate with the lieutenant, who would in his turn carry the matter to Baron Ingulph, Master of the Artillery.

Felix seized the chance and proposed a new way to trigger the clumsy crossbows. He realized that as they were currently designed, it took a lot of strength—possibly the combined effort of several men—to pull back the bolt or catch. Such effort would throw off their aim; these crossbows were mounted on a carriage, and it was hard to keep the carriage steady even when stakes were placed by the low wheels. He immediately thought that the catch could be activated by a lever, allowing one person to fire the bow with just a push of a hand, without disrupting the aim. The men quickly grasped his idea and agreed it would be a significant improvement. One of them, who led the group, found it so valuable that he hurried off to inform the lieutenant, who would then pass it on to Baron Ingulph, Master of the Artillery.

The others congratulated him, and asked to share in the reward that would be given to him for this invention. To whose "war" did he belong? Felix answered, after a little hesitation, to the king's levy. At this they whispered among themselves, and Felix, again remembering the carters' caution, said that he must attend the muster (this was a pure guess), but that he would return directly afterwards. Never for a moment suspecting that he would avoid the reward they looked upon as certain, they made no opposition, and he hurried away. Pushing through the groups, and not in the least knowing where he was going, Felix stumbled at last upon the king's quarters.

The others congratulated him and asked to share in the reward he would receive for this invention. To whose "war" did he belong? Felix replied, after a moment of hesitation, that he was part of the king's army. At this, they whispered among themselves, and Felix, remembering the carters' warning, said he had to go to the muster (which was a total guess), but that he would return right after. Never suspecting that he would dodge the reward they believed was certain, they didn't object, and he quickly left. Pushing through the crowds, and having no idea where he was headed, Felix eventually stumbled upon the king's quarters.


CHAPTER XVIII
THE KING'S LEVY


The king's booth stood apart from the rest; it was not much larger, but properly thatched with straw, and the wide doorway hung with purple curtains. Two standards stood beside it; one much higher than the other. The tallest bore the ensign of the kingdom; the lesser, the king's own private banner as a knight. A breastwork encircled the booth, enclosing a space about seventy yards in diameter, with a fosse, and stakes so planted as to repel assailants. There was but one gateway, opposite the general camp, and this was guarded by soldiers fully armed. A knight on horseback in armour, except his helmet, rode slowly up and down before the gate; he was the officer of the guard. His retainers, some thirty or forty men, were drawn up close by.

The king's booth was set apart from the rest; it wasn't much larger, but it was properly thatched with straw, and the wide doorway had purple curtains. Two flags stood beside it; one significantly taller than the other. The tallest displayed the kingdom's emblem; the smaller one showed the king's personal banner as a knight. A low wall surrounded the booth, creating a space about seventy yards in diameter, with a ditch and stakes placed to fend off attackers. There was only one entrance, facing the general camp, and it was guarded by fully armed soldiers. A knight on horseback, clad in armor except for his helmet, rode slowly back and forth in front of the gate; he was the officer of the guard. His followers, about thirty or forty men, were lined up nearby.

A distance of fifty yards intervened between this entrenchment and the camp, and was kept clear. Within the entrenchment Felix could see a number of gentlemen, and several horses caparisoned, but from the absence of noise and the fact that every one appeared to walk daintily and on tiptoe, he concluded that the king was still sleeping. The stream ran beside the entrenchment, and between it and the city; the king's quarters were at that corner of the camp highest up the brook, so that the water might not be fouled before it reached him.

A distance of fifty yards separated this fortification from the camp, and it was kept clear. Inside the fortification, Felix could see several gentlemen and a few dressed-up horses, but due to the lack of noise and the fact that everyone seemed to be walking carefully and on tiptoe, he guessed that the king was still sleeping. The stream flowed next to the fortification and ran between it and the city; the king's quarters were located at that corner of the camp highest up the stream, ensuring that the water wouldn't be tainted before it reached him.

The king's levy, however, did not seem to be hereabouts, for the booths nearest the head-quarters were evidently occupied by great barons, as Felix easily knew from their banners. There was here some little appearance of formality; the soldiery were not so noisy, and there were several officers moving among them. He afterwards discovered that the greater barons claimed the right to camp nearest the king, and that the king's levy was just behind their booths. But unable to discover the place, and afraid of losing his liberty if he delayed longer, Felix, after hesitating some time, determined to apply direct to the guard at the gate of the circular entrenchment.

The king's army didn’t seem to be around here because the tents closest to the headquarters were clearly occupied by major lords, which Felix recognized from their banners. There was a slight sense of formality; the soldiers were quieter, and several officers were moving among them. Later, he found out that the high-ranking lords had the right to camp nearest to the king, and the king's army was just behind their tents. However, since he couldn’t locate the spot and feared losing his freedom if he waited any longer, Felix, after some hesitation, decided to go straight to the guard at the entrance of the circular fortification.

As he crossed the open ground towards it, he noticed that the king's quarters were the closest to the enemy. Across the little stream were some corn-fields, and beyond these the walls of the city, scarcely half a mile distant. There was no outpost, the stream was but a brook, and could be crossed with ease. He marvelled at the lack of precaution; but he had yet to learn that the enemy, and all the armies of the age, were equally ignorant and equally careless.

As he walked across the open ground toward it, he noticed that the king's quarters were closest to the enemy. Across the small stream were some cornfields, and beyond that, the city walls, barely half a mile away. There was no outpost; the stream was just a brook and could be crossed easily. He was surprised by the lack of caution, but he still had to realize that the enemy, along with all the armies of the time, were just as unaware and careless.

With as humble a demeanour as he could assume, Felix doffed his cap and began to speak to the guard at the gateway of the entrenchment. The nearest man-at-arms immediately raised his spear and struck him with the butt. The unexpected blow fell on his left shoulder, and with such force as to render it powerless. Before he could utter a remonstrance, a second had seized his boar-spear, snapped the handle across his knee, and hurled the fragments from him. Others then took him by the shoulders and thrust him back across the open space to the camp, where they kicked him and left him, bruised, and almost stupefied with indignation. His offence was approaching the king's ground with arms in his hands.

With as humble a demeanor as he could manage, Felix took off his cap and started to talk to the guard at the entrance of the fort. The closest soldier immediately raised his spear and hit him with the butt. The unexpected blow landed on his left shoulder with enough force to make it go numb. Before he could protest, a second soldier grabbed his boar-spear, broke the handle over his knee, and threw the pieces away. Others then grabbed him by the shoulders and pushed him back across the open area to the camp, where they kicked him and left him bruised and nearly dazed with anger. His offense was approaching the king's grounds with weapons in his hands.

Later in the afternoon he found himself sitting on the bank of the stream far below the camp. He had wandered thither without knowing where he was going or what he was doing. His spirit for the time had been crushed, not so much by the physical brutality as by the repulse to his aspirations. Full of high hopes, and conscious of great ideas, he had been beaten like a felon hound.

Later in the afternoon, he found himself sitting on the bank of the stream far below the camp. He had wandered there without knowing where he was going or what he was doing. For the time being, he felt defeated, not so much by the physical brutality but by the rejection of his dreams. Full of high hopes and aware of great ideas, he had been beaten down like a guilty dog.

From this spot beside the brook the distant camp appeared very beautiful. The fluttering banners, the green roofs of the booths (of ferns and reeds and boughs), the movement and life, for bodies of troops were now marching to and fro, and knights in gay attire riding on horseback, made a pleasant scene on the sloping ground with the forest at the back. Over the stream the sunshine lit up the walls of the threatened city, where, too, many flags were waving. Felix came somewhat to himself as he gazed, and presently acknowledged that he had only had himself to blame. He had evidently transgressed a rule, and his ignorance of the rule was no excuse, since those who had any right to be in the camp at all were supposed to understand it.

From this spot beside the stream, the distant camp looked really beautiful. The fluttering banners, the green roofs of the booths made of ferns, reeds, and branches, the hustle and bustle of troops marching back and forth, and knights in colorful outfits riding on horseback created a lively scene on the sloping ground with the forest in the background. The sunshine reflecting off the city walls, which were under threat, illuminated the area where many flags were also waving. Felix slowly came back to himself as he looked on and soon realized that he had no one to blame but himself. He had clearly broken a rule, and not knowing the rule didn’t excuse him, since anyone who had the right to be in the camp was expected to understand it.

He got up, and returning slowly towards the camp, passed on his way the drinking-place, where a groom was watering some horses. The man called to him to help hold a spirited charger, and Felix mechanically did as he was asked. The fellow's mates had left him to do their work, and there were too many horses for him to manage. Felix led the charger for him back to the camp, and in return was asked to drink. He preferred food, and a plentiful supply was put before him. The groom, gossiping as he attended to his duties, said that he always welcomed the beginning of a war, for they were often half starved, and had to gnaw the bones, like the dogs, in peace. But when war was declared, vast quantities of provisions were got together, and everybody gorged at their will. The very dogs battened; he pointed to half a dozen who were tearing a raw shoulder of mutton to pieces. Before the campaign was over, those very dogs might starve. To what "war" did Felix belong? He replied to the king's levy.

He got up and began walking back to camp, passing by the watering spot where a stablehand was tending to some horses. The guy called out for his help with a spirited horse, and Felix automatically obliged. The guy's friends had left him to handle the work alone, and he had too many horses to manage. Felix led the horse back to camp for him, and in return, he was offered a drink. He preferred food, so a generous spread was served to him. As the stablehand chatted while working, he mentioned that he always looked forward to the start of a war because they often went hungry and had to chew on bones like dogs during peacetime. But when war was declared, a ton of supplies were gathered, and everyone feasted on whatever they wanted. Even the dogs got well-fed; he pointed to a few who were ripping apart a raw shoulder of mutton. By the time the campaign ended, those same dogs might be starving. To which "war" did Felix belong? He answered that he was part of the king's recruitment.


The groom said that this was the king's levy where they were; but under whose command was he? This puzzled Felix, who did not know what to say, and ended by telling the truth, and begging the fellow to advise him, as he feared to lose his liberty. The man said he had better stay where he was, and serve with him under Master Lacy, who was mean enough in the city, but liked to appear liberal when thus consorting with knights and gentlemen.

The groom said this was the king's army where they were; but who was in charge? This confused Felix, who didn’t know how to respond, and eventually admitted the truth, asking the guy for advice since he was afraid of losing his freedom. The man suggested he should stay put and serve alongside him under Master Lacy, who was kind of stingy in the city but liked to act generous when hanging out with knights and gentlemen.

Master Lacy was a merchant of Aisi, an owner of vessels. Like most of his fellows, when war came so close home, he was almost obliged to join the king's levy. Had he not done so it would have been recorded against him as a lack of loyalty. His privileges would have been taken from him, possibly the wealth he had accumulated seized, and himself reduced to slavery. Lacy, therefore, put on armour, and accompanied the king to the camp. Thus Felix, after all his aspirations, found himself serving as the knave of a mere citizen.

Master Lacy was a merchant from Aisi and owned ships. Like most of his peers, when war came so close to home, he felt almost forced to join the king's forces. If he hadn't, it would have been seen as a lack of loyalty against him. His privileges could have been taken away, possibly his wealth seized, and he could have been reduced to slavery. So, Lacy suited up in armor and went with the king to the camp. Thus, Felix, despite all his dreams, found himself serving as the servant of an ordinary citizen.

He had to take the horses down to water, to scour arms, to fetch wood from the forest for the fire. He was at the beck and call of all the other men, who never scrupled to use his services, and, observing that he never refused, put upon him all the more. On the other hand, when there was nothing doing, they were very kind and even thoughtful. They shared the best with him, brought wine occasionally (wine was scarce, though ale plentiful) as a delicacy, and one, who had dexterously taken a purse, presented him with half a dozen copper coins as his share of the plunder. Felix, grown wiser by experience, did not dare refuse the stolen money, it would have been considered as the greatest insult; he watched his opportunity and threw it away.

He had to take the horses to the water, clean weapons, and gather firewood from the forest. He was at the mercy of all the other guys, who had no hesitation in taking advantage of him. Since he never said no, they piled even more tasks onto him. On the flip side, whenever there was downtime, they were really nice and even considerate. They shared their best stuff with him, sometimes brought wine (which was rare, while ale was abundant) as a treat, and one guy, who cleverly stole a purse, gave him half a dozen copper coins as his cut from the loot. Felix, having learned from experience, didn't dare refuse the stolen money; rejecting it would have been a huge insult. Instead, he waited for the right moment and got rid of it.

The men, of course, quickly discovered his superior education, but that did not in the least surprise them, it being extremely common for unfortunate people to descend by degrees to menial offices, if once they left the estate and homestead to which they naturally belonged. There as cadets, however humble, they were certain of outward respect: once outside the influence of the head of the house, and they were worse off than the lowest retainer. His fellows would have resented any show of pride, and would speedily have made his life intolerable. As he showed none, they almost petted him, but at the same time expected him to do more than his share of the work.

The men quickly noticed his higher education, but it didn’t surprise them at all; it was quite common for unfortunate people to gradually fall into lowly jobs once they left the estate and home they naturally belonged to. There, as cadets, no matter how humble, they were guaranteed some respect. But once they stepped outside the head of the house’s influence, they were worse off than the lowest servant. His peers would have resented any display of pride and would quickly make his life unbearable. Since he didn’t show any, they almost treated him like a pet, but they also expected him to do more than his fair share of the work.

Felix listened with amazement to the revelations (revelations to him) of the inner life of the camp and court. The king's weaknesses, his inordinate gluttony and continual intoxication, his fits of temper, his follies and foibles, seemed as familiar to these grooms as if they had dwelt with him. As for the courtiers and barons, there was not one whose vices and secret crimes were not perfectly well known to them. Vice and crime must have their instruments; instruments are invariably indiscreet, and thus secrets escape. The palace intrigues, the intrigues with other states, the influence of certain women, there was nothing which they did not know.

Felix listened in amazement to the revelations (revelations to him) about the inner workings of the camp and court. The king's weaknesses, his excessive eating and constant drunkenness, his mood swings, his foolishness and quirks, seemed as familiar to these grooms as if they had lived with him. As for the courtiers and barons, there wasn’t a single one whose vices and hidden crimes weren’t perfectly well known to them. Vice and crime always need their accomplices; those accomplices are usually indiscreet, and that’s how secrets get out. The palace intrigues, the dealings with other states, the influence of certain women—there was nothing they didn’t know.

Seen thus from below, the whole society appeared rotten and corrupted, coarse to the last degree, and animated only by the lowest motives. This very gossip seemed in itself criminal to Felix, but he did not at the moment reflect that it was but the tale of servants. Had such language been used by gentlemen, then it would have been treason. As himself of noble birth, Felix had hitherto seen things only from the point of view of his own class. Now he associated with grooms, he began to see society from their point of view, and recognised how feebly it was held together by brute force, intrigue, cord and axe, and woman's flattery. But a push seemed needed to overthrow it. Yet it was quite secure, nevertheless, as there was none to give that push, and if any such plot had been formed, those very slaves who suffered the most would have been the very men to give information, and to torture the plotters.

From this perspective, society looked completely decayed and corrupted, crass to the extreme, and driven only by the basest instincts. Felix found the gossip itself to be somewhat sinful, but he didn’t realize that it was merely the chatter of servants. If gentlemen had spoken like that, it would have been considered treason. As someone of noble birth, Felix had only seen things through the lens of his own class until now. By mingling with stable hands, he started to view society from their perspective and recognized how weakly it was held together by brute force, manipulation, cords and axes, and women’s flattery. It felt like it just needed a nudge to topple it. But it was, in fact, quite stable, as there was no one willing to give that nudge, and if any plot had been hatched, those very slaves who endured the most would have been the ones to inform on the conspirators and punish them.

Felix had never dreamed that common and illiterate men, such as these grooms and retainers, could have any conception of reasons of State, or the crafty designs of courts. He now found that, though they could neither writer nor read, they had learned the art of reading man (the worst and lowest side of character) to such perfection that they at once detected the motive. They read the face; the very gait and gesture gave them a clue. They read man, in fact, as an animal. They understood men just as they understood the horses and hounds under their charge. Every mood and vicious indication in those animals was known to them, and so, too, with their masters.

Felix had never imagined that ordinary, uneducated people like these grooms and servants could have any understanding of political matters or the clever schemes of courts. He now realized that, although they couldn’t read or write, they had mastered the skill of reading people (the worst and lowest aspects of character) so well that they immediately recognized motivations. They interpreted expressions; even the way someone walked or moved gave them hints. They understood people just as they understood the horses and hounds they cared for. Every mood and negative behavior in those animals was familiar to them, just as it was with their owners.

Felix thought that he was himself a hunter, and understood woodcraft; he now found how mistaken he had been. He had acquired woodcraft as a gentleman; he now learned the knave's woodcraft. They taught him a hundred tricks of which he had had no idea. They stripped man of his dignity, and nature of her refinement. Everything had a blackguard side to them. He began to understand that high principles and abstract theories were only words with the mass of men.

Felix believed he was a hunter and had a good grasp of woodcraft; now he realized how wrong he had been. He had picked up woodcraft as a gentleman, but now he was learning the skills of a rogue. They introduced him to countless tricks he had never imagined. They took away man’s dignity and the sophistication of nature. Everything had a shady side. He started to understand that lofty principles and complex theories were just empty words to most people.

One day he saw a knight coolly trip up a citizen (one of the king's levy) in the midst of the camp and in broad daylight, and quietly cut away his purse, at least a score of persons looking on. But they were only retainers and slaves; there was no one whose word would for a moment have been received against the knight's, who had observed this, and plundered the citizen with impunity. He flung the lesser coins to the crowd, keeping the gold and silver for himself, and walked off amidst their plaudits.

One day he saw a knight calmly trip a citizen (one of the king's recruits) right in the middle of the camp and in broad daylight, and quietly take his purse while at least twenty people watched. But they were just retainers and servants; there was no one whose word would have been taken over the knight’s, who had witnessed this and robbed the citizen without any consequences. He tossed the lesser coins to the crowd, keeping the gold and silver for himself, and walked away amid their cheers.

Felix saw a slave nailed to a tree, his arms put round it so as to clasp it, and then nails driven through them. There he was left in his agony to perish. No one knew what his fault had been; his master had simply taken a dislike to him. A guard was set that no one should relieve the miserable being. Felix's horror and indignation could not have been expressed, but he was totally helpless.

Felix saw a slave nailed to a tree, his arms wrapped around it to hold on, and then nails driven through them. He was left there in pain to die. No one knew what he had done wrong; his master had just decided he didn't like him anymore. A guard was placed to ensure that no one could help the suffering man. Felix's horror and anger were beyond words, but he was completely powerless.

His own condition of mind during this time was such as could not be well analysed. He did not himself understand whether his spirit had been broken, whether he was really degraded with the men with whom he lived, or why he remained with them, though there were moments when it dawned upon him that this education, rude as it was, was not without its value to him. He need not practise these evils, but it was well to know of their existence. Thus he remained, as it were, quiescent, and the days passed on. He really had not much to do, although the rest put their burdens upon him, for discipline was so lax, that the loosest attendance answered equally well with the most conscientious. The one thing all the men about him seemed to think of was the satisfying of their appetites; the one thing they rejoiced at was the fine dry weather, for, as his mates told him, the misery of camp life in rain was almost unendurable.

His state of mind during this time was hard to analyze. He didn't really understand if he had been broken, if he was truly lowered to the level of the men he lived with, or why he stayed with them. Yet, there were times when it hit him that this crude education had some value for him. He didn't have to engage in these wrongdoings, but it was good to be aware of their existence. So, he remained somewhat inactive, and the days went by. He didn't really have much to do, even though the others piled their responsibilities on him, since discipline was so relaxed that even the most careless attendance was just as acceptable as the most diligent. The only thing the men around him seemed to care about was satisfying their desires; the one thing they celebrated was the nice dry weather because, as his friends told him, the misery of camp life in the rain was nearly unbearable.


CHAPTER XIX
FIGHTING


Twice Felix saw the king. Once there was a review of the horse outside the camp, and Felix, having to attend with his master's third charger (a mere show and affectation, for there was not the least chance of his needing it), was now and then very near the monarch. For that day at least he looked every whit what fame had reported him to be. A man of unusual size, his bulk rendered him conspicuous in the front of the throng. His massive head seemed to accord well with the possession of despotic power.

Twice Felix saw the king. Once there was a horse review outside the camp, and Felix had to attend with his master’s third horse (just for show, since there was no chance he would actually need it), so he was sometimes very close to the monarch. At least on that day, he looked exactly like the stories had described him. A man of unusual size, his bulk stood out in the front of the crowd. His big head seemed fitting for someone with absolute power.

The brow was a little bare, for he was no longer young, but the back of his head was covered with thick ringlets of brown hair, so thick as to partly conceal the coronet of gold which he wore. A short purple cloak, scarcely reaching to the waist, was thrown back off his shoulders, so that his steel corselet glistened in the sun. It was the only armour he had on; a long sword hung at his side. He rode a powerful black horse, full eighteen hands high, by far the finest animal on the ground; he required it, for his weight must have been great. Felix passed near enough to note that his eyes were brown, and the expression of his face open, frank, and pleasing. The impression left upon the observer was that of a strong intellect, but a still stronger physique, which latter too often ran away with and controlled the former. No one could look upon him without admiration, and it was difficult to think that he could so demean himself as to wallow in the grossest indulgence.

The forehead was a bit bare because he was no longer young, but the back of his head was covered in thick brown ringlets, so full that they partially hid the gold crown he wore. A short purple cloak, which barely reached his waist, was tossed back over his shoulders, revealing his shining steel corselet in the sunlight. That was the only armor he wore; a long sword hung at his side. He rode a powerful black horse, standing about eighteen hands high, clearly the finest animal around; he needed it because he must have weighed a lot. Felix got close enough to notice that his eyes were brown and that his expression was open, honest, and pleasant. The impression he left was of a strong mind, but an even stronger body, which often overshadowed and dominated the former. No one could look at him without admiration, and it was hard to believe he could lower himself to the most basic indulgences.

As for the review, though it was a brilliant scene, Felix could not conceal from himself that these gallant knights were extremely irregular in their movements, and not one single evolution was performed correctly, because they were constantly quarrelling about precedence, and one would not consent to follow the other. He soon understood, however, that discipline was not the object, nor regularity considered; personal courage and personal dexterity were everything. This review was the prelude to active operations, and Felix now hoped to have some practical lessons in warfare.

As for the review, even though it was an impressive scene, Felix couldn't hide from himself that these brave knights were really messy in their movements, and not a single maneuver was done correctly because they were constantly arguing about who should go first, and no one wanted to follow anyone else. However, he quickly realized that discipline wasn't the goal, nor was regularity important; personal bravery and skill were all that mattered. This review was just the beginning of active engagements, and Felix now hoped to get some hands-on lessons in warfare.

He was mistaken. Instead of a grand assault, or a regular approach, the fighting was merely a series of combats between small detachments and bodies of the enemy. Two or three knights with their retainers and slaves would start forth, cross the stream, and riding right past the besieged city endeavour to sack some small hamlet, or the homestead of a noble. From the city a sortie would ensue; sometimes the two bodies only threatened each other at a distance, the first retiring as the second advanced. Sometimes only a few arrows were discharged; occasionally they came to blows, but the casualties were rarely heavy.

He was wrong. Instead of a major attack or a typical strategy, the fighting was really just a series of skirmishes between small groups and enemy forces. Two or three knights, along with their followers and servants, would set out, cross the stream, and ride right past the besieged city to try to loot some small village or the estate of a noble. From the city, a counterattack would follow; sometimes the two groups just faced off from a distance, with the first retreating as the second moved forward. Sometimes only a few arrows were fired; occasionally they would engage in close combat, but the casualties were rarely significant.

One such party, while returning, was followed by a squadron of horsemen from the town towards the stream to within three hundred yards of the king's quarters. Incensed at this assurance, several knights mounted their horses and rode out to reinforce the returning detachment, which was loaded with booty. Finding themselves about to be supported, they threw down their spoils, faced about, and Felix saw for the first time a real and desperate melée. It was over in five minutes. The king's knights, far better horsed, and filled with desire to exhibit their valour to the camp, charged with such fury that they overthrew the enemy and rode over him.

One party, on their way back, was followed by a group of horsemen from the town to within three hundred yards of the king's camp. Angered by this confidence, several knights mounted their horses and rode out to support the returning group, which was loaded with loot. Realizing they were about to get backup, they dropped their spoils, turned around, and for the first time, Felix witnessed a real and desperate melée. It ended within five minutes. The king's knights, much better mounted and eager to showcase their bravery to the camp, charged with such intensity that they took down the enemy and rode right over them.

Felix saw the troops meet; there was a crash and cracking as the lances broke, four or five rolled from the saddle on the trodden corn, and the next moment the entangled mass of men and horses unwound itself as the enemy hastened back to the walls. Felix was eager to join in such an affray, but he had no horse nor weapon. Upon another occasion early one bright morning four knights and their followers, about forty in all, deliberately set out from the camp, and advanced up the sloping ground towards the city. The camp was soon astir watching their proceedings; and the king, being made acquainted with what was going on, came out from his booth. Felix, who now entered the circular entrenchment without any difficulty, got up on the mound with scores of others, where, holding to the stakes, they had a good view.

Felix watched as the troops clashed; there was a loud crash and the sound of breaking lances, and four or five riders fell off their horses onto the crushed corn. In the next moment, the tangled mass of men and horses separated as the enemy quickly retreated to the walls. Felix was eager to get involved in the fight, but he didn’t have a horse or any weapons. Later, on a bright morning, four knights and about forty of their followers set out from the camp and moved up the slope toward the city. The camp quickly buzzed with activity as everyone watched what was happening; when the king learned about it, he came out of his tent. Felix, who now entered the circular encampment easily, climbed up on the mound with many others, where they held onto the stakes for a better view.

The king stood on a bench and watched the troops advance, shading his eyes with his hand. As it was but half a mile to the walls they could see all that took place. When the knights had got within two hundred yards and arrows began to drop amongst them, they dismounted from their horses and left them in charge of the grooms, who walked them up and down, none remaining still a minute, so as to escape the aim of the enemy's archers. Then drawing their swords, the knights, who were in full armour, put themselves at the head of the band, and advanced at a steady pace to the wall. In their mail with their shields before them they cared not for such feeble archery, nor even for the darts that poured upon them when they came within reach. There was no fosse to the wall, so that, pushing forward, they were soon at the foot. So easily had they reached it that Felix almost thought the city already won. Now he saw blocks of stone, darts, and beams of wood cast at them from the parapet, which was not more than twelve feet above the ground.

The king stood on a bench and watched the troops move forward, shading his eyes with his hand. Since it was only half a mile to the walls, they could see everything happening. When the knights got within two hundred yards and arrows started falling among them, they dismounted from their horses and left them with the grooms, who walked them back and forth, none staying still for even a minute to avoid the aim of the enemy's archers. Then, drawing their swords, the fully armored knights took the lead and advanced steadily toward the wall. In their mail with shields in front, they didn’t worry about the weak arrows or even the darts that rained down when they got within range. There was no ditch in front of the wall, so they pushed forward and were soon at the base of it. They reached it so easily that Felix almost thought the city was already theirs. Now he saw stones, darts, and wooden beams thrown at them from the parapet, which was only about twelve feet above the ground.

Quite undismayed, the knights set up their ladders, of which they had but four, one each. The men-at-arms held these by main force against the wall, the besiegers trying to throw them away, and chopping at the rungs with their axes. But the ladders were well shod with iron to resist such blows, and in a moment Felix saw, with intense delight and admiration, the four knights slowly mount to the parapet and cut at the defenders with their swords. The gleam of steel was distinctly visible as the blades rose and fell. The enemy thrust at them with pikes, but seemed to shrink from closer combat, and a moment afterwards the gallant four stood on the top of the wall. Their figures, clad in mail and shield in hand, were distinctly seen against the sky. Up swarmed the men-at-arms behind them, and some seemed to descend on the other side. A shout rose from the camp and echoed over the woods. Felix shouted with the rest, wild with excitement.

Quite undeterred, the knights set up their ladders, of which they had only four, one for each of them. The men-at-arms held these firmly against the wall while the besiegers tried to push them away and chopped at the rungs with their axes. But the ladders were reinforced with iron to withstand such blows, and in no time, Felix watched with intense delight and admiration as the four knights slowly climbed to the parapet and swung their swords at the defenders. The glint of steel was clearly visible as the blades rose and fell. The enemy jabbed at them with pikes but seemed reluctant to engage in close combat, and moments later, the brave four stood on top of the wall. Their figures, clad in armor and shields in hand, were clearly visible against the sky. The men-at-arms surged up behind them, and some appeared to descend on the other side. A shout erupted from the camp and echoed through the woods. Felix joined in the shout with the rest, filled with excitement.

The next minute, while yet the knights stood on the wall, and scarcely seemed to know what to do next, there appeared at least a dozen men in armour running along the wall towards them. Felix afterwards understood that the ease with which the four won the wall at first was owing to there being no men of knightly rank among the defenders at that early hour. Those who had collected to repulse the assault were citizens, retainers, slaves, any, in fact who had been near. But now the news had reached the enemy's leaders, and some of them hastened to the wall. As these were seen approaching, the camp was hushed, and every eye strained on the combatants.

The next minute, while the knights were still standing on the wall and seemed unsure of what to do next, at least a dozen armored men appeared, running along the wall toward them. Felix later realized that the reason the four had captured the wall so easily at first was that there were no knights among the defenders at that early hour. Those who had gathered to fend off the attack were citizens, retainers, slaves—essentially anyone who had been nearby. But now the news had reached the enemy's leaders, and some of them rushed to the wall. As they were seen approaching, the camp fell silent, and every eye was focused on the fighters.

The noble four could not all meet their assailants, the wall was but wide enough for two to fight; but the other two had work enough the next minute, as eight or ten more men in mail advanced the other way. So they fought back to back, two facing one way, and two the other. The swords rose and fell. Felix saw a flash of light fly up into the air, it was the point of a sword broken off short. At the foot of the wall the men who had not had time to mount endeavoured to assist their masters by stabbing upwards with their spears.

The four nobles couldn't all face their attackers; the wall was only wide enough for two to fight at a time. But the other two had plenty to deal with seconds later as eight or ten more armored men approached from the other side. So they fought back to back, with two facing one direction and the other two facing the opposite way. Swords swung up and down. Felix saw a flash of light shoot into the air; it was the tip of a sword that had broken off. At the base of the wall, the men who hadn't had time to mount tried to help their leaders by stabbing upwards with their spears.

All at once two of the knights were hurled from the wall; one seemed to be caught by his men, the other came heavily to the ground. While they were fighting their immediate antagonists, others within the wall had come with lances; and literally thrust them from the parapet. The other two still fought back to back for a moment; then, finding themselves overwhelmed, they sprang down among their friends.

All of a sudden, two of the knights were thrown off the wall; one appeared to be caught by his teammates, while the other fell hard to the ground. As they battled their immediate opponents, others inside the wall arrived with lances and literally pushed them off the parapet. The other two continued to fight back to back for a moment, but when they realized they were outnumbered, they jumped down to join their friends.

The minute the two first fell, the grooms with the horses ran towards the wall, and despite the rain of arrows, darts, and stones from the parapet, Felix saw with relief three of the four knights placed on their chargers. One only could sit upright unassisted, two were supported in their saddles, and the fourth was carried by his retainers. Thus they retreated, and apparently without further hurt, for the enemy on the wall crowded so much together as to interfere with the aim of their darts, which, too, soon fell short. But there was a dark heap beneath the wall, where ten or twelve retainers and slaves, who wore no armour, had been slain or disabled. Upon these the loss invariably fell.

The moment the two first fell, the grooms with the horses rushed toward the wall, and despite the rain of arrows, darts, and stones coming from above, Felix felt relieved to see that three of the four knights were mounted on their horses. One was able to sit upright on his own, two were supported in their saddles, and the fourth was being carried by his attendants. They managed to retreat, seemingly without any more injuries, as the enemy on the wall got so crowded that it affected their shots, which soon fell short as well. However, there was a dark pile beneath the wall where ten or twelve attendants and unarmored slaves had been killed or injured. The loss consistently fell upon them.

None attempted to follow the retreating party, who slowly returned towards the camp, and were soon apparently in safety. But suddenly a fresh party of the enemy appeared upon the wall, and the instant afterwards three retainers dropped, as if struck by lightning. They had been hit by sling stones, whirled with great force by practised slingers. These rounded pebbles come with such impetus as to stun a man at two hundred yards. The aim, it is true, is uncertain, but where there is a body of troops they are sure to strike some one. Hastening on, leaving the three fallen men where they lay, the rest in two minutes were out of range, and came safely into camp. Everyone, as they crossed the stream, ran to meet them, the king included, and as he passed in the throng, Felix heard him remark that they had had a capital main of cocks that morning.

None tried to follow the retreating group, who slowly made their way back to the camp and seemed to be safe soon after. But suddenly, a new group of enemies appeared on the wall, and instantly, three soldiers fell, as if struck by lightning. They had been hit by sling stones, thrown with great force by skilled slingers. These smooth pebbles hit with such speed that they could stun a person from two hundred yards away. The aim can be unpredictable, but when there’s a group of troops, they’re bound to hit someone. Rushing on, leaving the three men where they had fallen, the others were out of range in two minutes and returned safely to camp. Everyone, including the king, ran to meet them as they crossed the stream, and as he moved through the crowd, Felix heard him say that they had a great match of cocks that morning.

Of the knights only one was much injured; he had fallen upon a stone, and two ribs were broken; the rest suffered from severe bruises, but had no wound. Six men-at-arms were missing, probably prisoners, for, as courageous as their masters, they had leapt down from the wall into the town. Eleven other retainers or slaves were slain, or had deserted, or were prisoners, and no trouble was taken about them. As for the three who were knocked over by the sling stones, there they lay until they recovered their senses, when they crawled into camp. This incident cooled Felix's ardour for the fray, for he reflected that, if injured thus, he too, as a mere groom, would be left. The devotion of the retainers to save and succour their masters was almost heroic. The mailed knights thought no more of their men, unless it was some particular favourite, than of a hound slashed by a boar's tusk in the chase.

Of the knights, only one was seriously hurt; he had fallen on a stone and broken two ribs. The others had severe bruises but no wounds. Six men-at-arms were missing, likely prisoners, because, as brave as their masters, they had jumped down from the wall into the town. Eleven other retainers or servants were either killed, deserted, or taken prisoner, and no one seemed to care about them. As for the three knocked down by the sling stones, they lay there until they regained their senses, then crawled back to camp. This incident dampened Felix's enthusiasm for the fight, as he realized that if he were injured like that, he, as just a groom, would be left behind. The loyalty of the retainers to protect and help their masters was almost heroic. The armored knights thought no more of their men, unless it was a particular favorite, than they would of a hound wounded by a boar's tusk during the hunt.

When the first flush of his excitement had passed, Felix, thinking over the scene of the morning as he took his horses down to water at the stream, became filled at first with contempt, and then with indignation. That the first commander of the age should thus look on while the wall was won before his eyes, and yet never send a strong detachment, or move himself with his whole army to follow up the advantage, seemed past understanding. If he did not intend to follow it up, why permit such desperate ventures, which must be overwhelmed by mere numbers, and could result only in the loss of brave men? And if he did permit it, why did he not, when he saw they were overthrown, send a squadron to cover their retreat? To call such an exhibition of courage "a main of cocks", to look on it as a mere display for his amusement, was barbarous and cruel in the extreme. He worked himself up into a state of anger which rendered him less cautious than usual in expressing his opinions.

When the initial rush of excitement wore off, Felix, reflecting on the morning's events while taking his horses to drink at the stream, was first filled with contempt and then with anger. It was unbelievable that the top commander of the time would just watch as the wall was taken right before his eyes, yet never send a solid detachment or move his entire army to capitalize on the advantage. If he had no intention of following up, why allow such reckless actions that were bound to be crushed by sheer numbers, resulting only in the loss of brave soldiers? And if he was okay with it, why didn’t he send a squadron to cover their retreat when he saw they were defeated? To treat such bravery as just a “main of cocks,” to view it as mere entertainment for himself, felt incredibly barbaric and cruel. He worked himself into a state of anger that made him less careful than usual in sharing his thoughts.

The king was not nearly so much at fault as Felix, arguing on abstract principles, imagined. He had long experience of war, and he knew its extreme uncertainty. The issue of the greatest battle often hung on the conduct of a single leader, or even a single man-at-arms. He had seen walls won and lost before. To follow up such a venture with a strong detachment must result in one of two things, either the detachment in its turn must be supported by the entire army, or it must eventually retreat. If it retreated, the loss of prestige would be serious, and might encourage the enemy to attack the camp, for it was only his prestige which prevented them. If supported by the entire army, then the fate of the whole expedition depended upon that single day.

The king wasn't nearly as much at fault as Felix, who was arguing based on abstract principles, thought. He had a lot of experience with war and understood its extreme uncertainty. The outcome of the biggest battle often depended on the actions of one commander or even a single soldier. He had witnessed victories and defeats before. Following such an endeavor with a strong detachment could lead to one of two outcomes: either the detachment would need support from the entire army, or it would eventually have to fall back. If it retreated, it would seriously damage their reputation and might encourage the enemy to attack the camp, since it was his reputation that kept them at bay. If it was supported by the whole army, then the success of the entire mission hinged on that one day.

The enemy had the advantage of the wall, of the narrow streets and enclosures within, of the houses, each of which would become a fortress, and thus in the winding streets a repulse might easily happen. To risk such an event would be folly in the last degree, before the town had been dispirited and discouraged by the continuance of the siege, the failure of their provisions, or the fall of their chief leaders in the daily combats that took place.

The enemy had the upper hand with the wall, the narrow streets, and the enclosed areas within them, where every house could turn into a fortress. In those winding streets, being pushed back could easily happen. It would be incredibly foolish to take that risk before the town had been worn down and demoralized by the ongoing siege, the lack of supplies, or the loss of their main leaders in the daily battles that occurred.

The army had no discipline whatever, beyond that of the attachment of the retainer to his lord, and the dread of punishment on the part of the slave. There were no distinct ranks, no organized corps. The knights followed the greater barons, the retainers the knights; the greater barons followed the king. Such an army could not be risked in an assault of this kind. The venture was not ordered, nor was it discouraged; to discourage, indeed, all attempts would have been bad policy; it was upon the courage and bravery of his knights that the king depended, and upon that alone rested his hopes of victory.

The army had no discipline whatsoever, except for the loyalty of the retainers to their lord and the fear of punishment among the slaves. There were no clear ranks or organized units. The knights followed the higher-ranking barons, the retainers followed the knights, and the higher-ranking barons followed the king. An army like this couldn't be relied upon for an assault of this nature. The mission was neither ordered nor discouraged; discouraging any attempts would have been poor strategy. The king relied solely on the courage and bravery of his knights, and that was his only hope for victory.

The great baron whose standard they followed would have sent them assistance if he had deemed it necessary. The king, unless on the day of battle, would not trouble about such a detail. As for the remark, that they had had "a good main of cocks that morning," he simply expressed the feeling of the whole camp. The spectacle Felix had seen was, in fact, merely an instance of the strength and of the weakness of the army and the monarch himself.

The great baron they followed would have sent them help if he thought it was necessary. The king, unless it was the day of battle, wouldn’t bother with such details. As for the comment that they had "a good main of cocks that morning," he just voiced what everyone in the camp was feeling. The scene Felix witnessed was, in reality, just a reflection of both the strength and the weaknesses of the army and the king himself.

Felix afterwards acknowledged these things to himself, but at the moment, full of admiration for the bravery of the four knights and their followers, he was full of indignation, and uttered his views too freely. His fellow-grooms cautioned him; but his spirit was up, and he gave way to his feelings without restraint. Now, to laugh at the king's weaknesses, his gluttony or follies, was one thing; to criticise his military conduct was another. The one was merely badinage, and the king himself might have laughed had he heard it; the other was treason, and, moreover, likely to touch the monarch on the delicate matter of military reputation.

Felix later admitted this to himself, but in that moment, filled with admiration for the bravery of the four knights and their followers, he was overwhelmed with anger and spoke his mind too openly. His fellow grooms warned him, but he was fired up and gave in to his emotions without holding back. Making jokes about the king's weaknesses, his greed, or foolishness was one thing; criticizing his military strategy was another. The first was just light-hearted teasing, and the king might have even laughed if he had heard it; the second was treason and could hit a nerve with the king regarding his military reputation.

Of this Felix quickly became aware. His mates, indeed, tried to shield him; but possibly the citizen, his master, had enemies in the camp, barons, perhaps, to whom he had lent money, and who watched for a chance of securing his downfall. At all events, early the next day Felix was rudely arrested by the provost in person, bound with cords, and placed in the provost's booth. At the same time, his master was ordered to remain within, and a guard was put over him.

Of this, Felix quickly became aware. His friends tried to protect him; but it’s possible that the citizen, his boss, had enemies in the camp—maybe barons he’d lent money to—who were looking for a chance to bring him down. In any case, early the next day, Felix was roughly arrested by the provost himself, tied up with ropes, and put in the provost's booth. At the same time, his boss was told to stay inside, and a guard was placed over him.


CHAPTER XX
IN DANGER


Hope died within Felix when he thus suddenly found himself so near the executioner. He had known so many butchered without cause, that he had, indeed, reason to despair. Towards the sunset he felt sure he should be dragged forth and hanged on the oak used for the purpose, and which stood near where the track from Aisi joined the camp. Such would most probably have been his fate, had he been alone concerned in this affair, but by good fortune he was able to escape so miserable an end. Still, he suffered as much as if the rope had finished him, for he had no means of knowing what would be the result.

Hope died within Felix when he suddenly found himself so close to the executioner. He had seen so many people killed without reason that he really had a reason to despair. As the sun began to set, he was sure he would be dragged out and hanged on the oak tree meant for that purpose, which stood near where the path from Aisi met the camp. That probably would have been his fate if he had been the only one involved in this situation, but fortunately, he managed to escape such a terrible end. Still, he suffered as much as if the rope had already finished him, because he had no way of knowing what the outcome would be.

His heart swelled with bitterness; he was filled with inexpressible indignation, his whole being rebelled against the blundering, as it were, of events which had thus thrown him into the jaws of death. In an hour or two, however, he sufficiently recovered from the shock to reflect that most probably they would give him some chance to speak for himself. There would not be any trial; who would waste time in trying so insignificant a wretch? But there might be some opportunity of speaking, and he resolved to use it to the utmost possible extent.

His heart was heavy with bitterness; he was filled with deep anger, and everything in him protested against the chaos that had thrown him into danger. After an hour or two, though, he managed to recover enough from the shock to realize that they would probably give him a chance to speak for himself. There wouldn't be a trial; who would waste time on such an insignificant person? But there might be an opportunity to speak, and he decided to make the most of it.

He would arraign the unskilful generalship of the king; he would not only point out his errors, but how the enemy could be defeated. He would prove that he had ideas and plans worthy of attention. He would, as it were, vindicate himself before he was executed, and he tried to collect his thoughts and to put them into form. Every moment the face of Aurora seemed to look upon him, lovingly and mournfully; but beside it he saw the dusty and distorted features of the copse he had seen drawn by the horse through the camp. Thus, too, his tongue would protrude and lick the dust. He endured, in a word, those treble agonies which the highly-wrought and imaginative inflict upon themselves.

He would call out the king's poor leadership; he wouldn’t just point out his mistakes, but also explain how to defeat the enemy. He would prove that he had ideas and plans that deserved attention. He would, in a way, defend himself before he was executed, trying to organize his thoughts and put them into words. Every moment, the face of dawn seemed to look at him, both affectionately and sadly; but next to it, he saw the dusty, twisted features of the thicket drawn by the horse through the camp. Similarly, his tongue would stick out and taste the dust. In short, he endured those triple agonies that the highly sensitive and imaginative inflict on themselves.

The hours passed, and still no one came near him; he called, and the guard appeared at the door, but only to see what was the matter, and finding his prisoner safe, at once resumed his walk to and fro. The soldier did not, for his own sake, dare to enter into conversation with a prisoner under arrest for such an offence; he might be involved, or suspected. Had it been merely theft or any ordinary crime, he would have talked freely enough, and sympathized with the prisoner. As time went on, Felix grew thirsty, but his request for water was disregarded, and there he remained till four in the afternoon. They then marched him out; he begged to be allowed to speak, but the soldiery did not reply, simply hurrying him forward. He now feared that he should be executed without the chance being afforded him to say a word; but, to his surprise, he found in a few minutes that they were taking him in the direction of the king's quarters. New fears now seized him, for he had heard of men being turned loose, made to run for their lives, and hunted down with hounds for the amusement of the Court.

The hours went by, and no one came near him; he called out, and the guard showed up at the door, but only to see what was going on. Finding his prisoner safe, he went back to pacing. The soldier didn’t dare to start a conversation with a prisoner arrested for such a serious offense; he could get involved or be suspected himself. If it had just been theft or any common crime, he would have chatted freely and sympathized with the prisoner. As time dragged on, Felix grew thirsty, but his request for water was ignored, and he stayed there until four in the afternoon. They finally took him out; he pleaded to be allowed to speak, but the soldiers didn’t answer, just hurried him along. He now worried that he might be executed without getting a chance to say anything. To his surprise, he soon realized they were taking him toward the king's quarters. New fears gripped him because he had heard stories of men being set loose, made to run for their lives, and hunted down by hounds for the Court's entertainment.

If the citizen's wealth had made him many enemies (men whom he had befriended, and who hoped, if they could be see him executed, to escape the payment of their debts), on the other hand, it had made him as many friends, that is, interested friends, who trusted by doing him service to obtain advances. These latter had lost no time, for greed is quite as eager as hate, and carried the matter at once to the king. What they desired was that the case should be decided by the monarch himself, and not by his chancellor, or a judge appointed for the purpose. The judge would be nearly certain to condemn the citizen, and to confiscate whatever he could lay hands on. The king might pardon, and would be content with a part only, where his ministers would grasp all.

If the citizen's wealth had created many enemies (men he had helped, who hoped that if they could see him executed, they would avoid paying their debts), it had also brought him just as many friends—those who were only interested in him and believed that by serving him, they could gain favors. These so-called friends wasted no time, since greed is as intense as hate, and quickly brought the matter to the king. What they wanted was for the king himself to make the decision, rather than his chancellor or a judge assigned to the case. The judge would likely condemn the citizen and seize anything he could find. The king might show mercy and would be satisfied with only a portion, while his ministers would take everything.

These friends succeeded in their object; the king, who hated all judicial affairs because they involved the trouble of investigation, shrugged his shoulders at the request, and would not have granted it had it not come out that the citizen's servant had declared him to be an incapable commander. At this the king started. "We are, indeed, fallen low," said he, "when a miserable trader's knave calls us incapable. We will see this impudent rascal." He accordingly ordered that the prisoner should be brought before him after dinner.

These friends got what they wanted; the king, who disliked any legal matters because they required effort to investigate, shrugged at the request and wouldn’t have granted it if it hadn’t come to light that the citizen's servant had called him an incompetent leader. At this, the king was taken aback. "We've really hit rock bottom," he said, "when a pathetic merchant’s servant dares to call us incompetent. We’ll deal with this obnoxious brat." He then ordered that the prisoner be brought before him after dinner.

Felix was led inside the entrenchment, unbound, and commanded to stand upright. There was a considerable assembly of the greater barons anxious to see the trial of the money-lender, who, though present, was kept apart from Felix lest the two should arrange their defence. The king was sleeping on a couch outside the booth in the shade; he was lying on his back breathing loudly with open mouth. How different his appearance to the time when he sat on his splendid charger and reviewed his knights! A heavy meal had been succeeded by as heavy a slumber. No one dared to disturb him; the assembly moved on tiptoe and conversed in whispers. The experienced divined that the prisoners were certain to be condemned, for the king would wake with indigestion, and vent his uneasy sensations upon them. Full an hour elapsed before the king awoke with a snort and called for a draught of water. How Felix envied that draught! He had neither eaten nor drunk since the night previous; it was a hot day, and his tongue was dry and parched.

Felix was brought inside the enclosure, untied, and told to stand up straight. A large group of the high-ranking barons had gathered to witness the trial of the money-lender, who, although present, was kept separate from Felix to prevent them from coordinating their defense. The king was napping on a couch outside the tent in the shade; he lay on his back, snoring loudly with his mouth open. He looked so different compared to when he rode his magnificent horse and reviewed his knights! A heavy meal had led to an equally heavy sleep. No one dared to disturb him; the assembly moved quietly and spoke in hushed tones. Those in the know suspected that the prisoners were sure to be found guilty, as the king would wake up feeling sluggish and take it out on them. An entire hour passed before the king woke with a snort and requested a drink of water. How much Felix envied that drink! He hadn’t eaten or drunk anything since the night before; it was a hot day, and his mouth was dry and parched.

The citizen was first accused; he denied any treasonable designs or expressions whatever; as for the other prisoner, till the time he was arrested he did not even know he had been in his service. He was some stroller whom his grooms had incautiously engaged, the lazy scoundrels, to assist them. He had never even spoken to him; it the knave told the truth he must acknowledge this.

The citizen was initially accused; he denied any plans or intentions of treason whatsoever. As for the other prisoner, he didn't even realize he had been working for him until he was arrested. He was just some drifter that his attendants had thoughtlessly hired, those lazy good-for-nothings, to help them out. He had never even spoken to him; if the scoundrel was telling the truth, he would have to admit this.

"How now," said the king, turning to Felix; "what do you say?"

"What's up?" said the king, turning to Felix. "What do you think?"

"It is true," replied Felix, "he has never spoken to me nor I to him. He knew nothing of what I said. I said it on my own account, and I say it again!"

"It’s true," Felix replied, "he's never talked to me, and I’ve never talked to him. He doesn’t know anything about what I said. I said it for my own reasons, and I’ll say it again!"

"And pray, sir knave," said the king, sitting up on his couch, for he was surprised to hear one so meanly dressed speak so correctly, and so boldly face him. "What was it you did say?"

"And please, you scoundrel," said the king, sitting up on his couch, for he was surprised to hear someone so poorly dressed speak so properly and so boldly confront him. "What was it you just said?"

"If your majesty will order me a single drop of water," said the prisoner, "I will repeat it word for word, but I have had nothing the whole day, and I can hardly move my tongue."

"If you’ll just give me a single drop of water," said the prisoner, "I’ll repeat it exactly, but I haven’t had anything all day, and I can barely move my tongue."

Without a word the king handed him the cup from which he had himself drunk. Never, surely, was water so delicious. Felix drained it to the bottom, handed it back (an officer took it), and with one brief thought of Aurora, he said: "Your majesty, you are an incapable commander."

Without saying a word, the king handed him the cup he had just drunk from. Never had water tasted so good. Felix emptied it, handed it back (an officer took it), and with a quick thought of Aurora, he said, "Your majesty, you are a terrible commander."

"Go on," said the king sarcastically; "why am I incapable?"

"Go on," the king said sarcastically, "why am I unable?"

"You have attacked the wrong city; these three are all your enemies, and you have attacked the first. They stand in a row."

"You've attacked the wrong city; these three are all your enemies, and you've hit the first one. They’re lined up."

"They stand in a row," repeated the king; "and we will knock them over like three nine-pins."

"They're lined up," the king repeated; "and we will knock them down like three bowling pins."

"But you have begun with the end one," said Felix, "and that is the mistake. For after you have taken the first you must take the second, and still after that the third. But you might have saved much trouble and time if----"

"But you've started with the last one," said Felix, "and that's the mistake. Once you take the first, you have to take the second, and then the third after that. But you could have saved a lot of trouble and time if----"

"If what?"

"What do you mean?"

"If you had assaulted the middle one first. For then, while the siege went on, you would have been able to prevent either of the other two towns from sending assistance, and when you had taken the first and put your garrison in it, neither of the others could have stirred, or reaped their corn, nor could they even communicate with each other, since you would be between them; and in fact you would have cut your enemies in twain."

"If you had attacked the middle one first. Then, while the siege continued, you could have prevented either of the other two towns from sending help. Once you took the first and established your troops there, neither of the others would have been able to move, harvest their crops, or even communicate with each other, since you would be in between them; in fact, you would have split your enemies in two."

"By St. John!" swore the king, "it is a good idea. I begin to think—but go on, you have more to say."

"By St. John!" swore the king, "that's a great idea. I'm starting to think—but go ahead, you have more to share."

"I think, too, your majesty, that by staying here as you have done this fortnight past without action, you have encouraged the other two cities to make more desperate resistance; and it seems to me that you are in a dangerous position, and may at any moment be overwhelmed with disaster, for there is nothing whatever to prevent either of the other two from sending troops to burn the open city of Aisi in your absence. And that danger must increase every day as they take courage by your idleness."

"I also think, Your Majesty, that by staying here for the past two weeks without taking action, you have prompted the other two cities to resist even more fiercely. It seems to me that you’re in a risky situation and could be hit with trouble at any moment. There’s nothing stopping either of the other two from sending forces to set fire to the unprotected city of Aisi while you’re not there. This threat will only grow stronger each day as they gain confidence from your inactivity."

"Idleness! There shall be idleness no longer. The man speaks the truth; we will consider further of this, we will move on Adelinton," turning to his barons.

"Idleness! No more idleness. The man speaks the truth; we will think this through, and we will proceed to Adelinton," he said, turning to his barons.

"If it please your majesty," said Baron Ingulph, "this man invented a new trigger for our carriage crossbows, but he was lost in the crowd, and we have sought for him in vain; my serjeant here has this moment recognised him."

"If it pleases your majesty," said Baron Ingulph, "this man invented a new trigger for our carriage crossbows, but he got lost in the crowd, and we've searched for him in vain; my sergeant here just recognized him."

"Why did you not come to us before, fellow?" said the king. "Let him be released; let him be entertained at our expense; give him clothes and a sword. We will see you further."

"Why didn't you come to us earlier, friend?" said the king. "Let him go; let us treat him at our cost; give him some clothes and a sword. We'll take it from there."

Overjoyed at this sudden turn of fortune, Felix forgot to let well alone. He had his audience with him for a moment; he could not resist as it were following up his victory. He thanked the king, and added that he could make a machine which would knock the walls yonder to pieces without it being necessary to approach nearer than half a bow-shot.

Overjoyed by this unexpected change in luck, Felix couldn't help but push his advantage. He had the audience's attention for a moment; he felt compelled to build on his success. He thanked the king and added that he could create a machine capable of destroying the walls over there without needing to get closer than half a bowshot.

"What is this?" said the king. "Ingulph, have you ever heard of such a machine?"

"What is this?" said the king. "Ingulph, have you ever seen a machine like this?"

"There is no such thing," said the Baron, beginning to feel that his professional reputation as the master of the artillery was assailed. "There is nothing of the kind known."

"There’s no such thing," said the Baron, starting to feel that his reputation as the expert in artillery was being challenged. "Nothing like that exists."

"It will shoot stones as big, as heavy as a man can lift," said Felix eagerly, "and easily knock towers to fragments."

"It will launch stones as big and heavy as a person can lift," Felix said excitedly, "and can easily smash towers to bits."

The king looked from one to another; he was incredulous. The Baron smiled scornfully. "Ask him, your majesty, how these stones are to be thrown; no bow could do it."

The king glanced around at everyone; he couldn't believe it. The Baron smirked dismissively. "Ask him, your majesty, how these stones are supposed to be thrown; no bow could manage that."

"How are the stones to be thrown?" said the king sharply. "Beware how you play with us."

"How are the stones supposed to be thrown?" the king said sharply. "Watch out how you mess with us."

"By the force of twisted ropes, your majesty."

"By the force of twisted ropes, your majesty."

They all laughed. The Baron said: "You see, your majesty, there is nothing of the kind. This is some jester."

They all laughed. The Baron said, "You see, Your Majesty, there's nothing like that. This is just some joke."

"The twisted rope should be a halter," said another courtier, one of those who hoped for the rich man's downfall.

"The twisted rope should be a noose," said another courtier, one of those who hoped for the wealthy man's downfall.

"It can be done, your majesty," cried Felix, alarmed. "I assure you, a stone of two hundredweight might be thrown a quarter of a mile."

"It can be done, your majesty," yelled Felix, worried. "I promise you, a stone weighing two hundred pounds could be thrown a quarter of a mile."

The assembly did not repress its contempt.

The assembly didn’t hide its disdain.

"The man is a fool," said the king, who now thought that Felix was a jester who had put a trick upon him. "But your joke is out of joint; I will teach such fellows to try tricks on us! Beat him out of camp."

"The man is an idiot," said the king, who now believed that Felix was a jester trying to pull a fast one on him. "But your joke is off. I’ll show these guys what happens when they mess with us! Kick him out of the camp."

The provost's men seized him, and in a moment he was dragged off his feet, and bodily carried outside the entrenchment. Thence they pushed him along, beating him with the butts of their spears to make him run the faster; the groups they passed laughed and jeered; the dogs barked and snapped at his ankles. They hurried him outside the camp, and thrusting him savagely with their spear butts sent him headlong. There they left him, with the caution which he did not hear, being insensible, that if he ventured inside the lines he would be at once hanged. Like a dead dog they left him on the ground.

The provost's men grabbed him, and in no time he was yanked off his feet and physically carried outside the fortifications. From there, they shoved him along, hitting him with the ends of their spears to make him run faster; the groups they passed laughed and mocked him; the dogs barked and snapped at his ankles. They rushed him out of the camp, and roughly pushing him with their spear butts sent him flying. There, they left him, not hearing the warning that if he tried to go back inside the lines, he would be hanged immediately. They left him on the ground like a dead dog.

Some hours later, in the dusk of the evening, Felix stole from the spot, skirting the forest like a wild animal afraid to venture from its cover, till he reached the track which led to Aisi. His one idea was to reach his canoe. He would have gone through the woods, but that was not possible. Without axe or wood-knife to hew a way, the tangled brushwood he knew to be impassable, having observed how thick it was when coming. Aching and trembling in every limb, not so much with physical suffering as that kind of inward fever which follows unmerited injury, the revolt of the mind against it, he followed the track as fast as his weary frame would let him. He had tasted nothing that day but the draught from the king's cup, and a second draught when he recovered consciousness, from the stream that flowed past the camp. Yet he walked steadily on without pause; his head hung forward, and his arms were listless, but his feet mechanically plodded on. He walked, indeed, by his will, and not with his sinews. Thus, like a ghost, for there was no life in him, he traversed the shadowy forest.

Some hours later, in the evening twilight, Felix slipped away from the area, moving around the forest like a frightened animal reluctant to leave its shelter, until he reached the path that led to Aisi. His only goal was to get to his canoe. He would have gone through the woods, but that wasn’t an option. Without an axe or knife to carve a path, he knew the thick, tangled brush was impassable, having noticed how dense it was on his way in. Aching and trembling in every part of his body, not just from physical pain but from that inner restlessness that comes after an undeserved injury, and the mind's resistance to it, he followed the path as quickly as his exhausted body would allow. He had consumed nothing that day except for a sip from the king's cup, and a second sip from the stream near the camp when he regained consciousness. Still, he kept walking without stopping; his head hung low, and his arms were limp, but his feet moved on automatically. He walked, in fact, by sheer willpower, not by strength. Thus, like a ghost, for there was no vitality in him, he navigated through the shadowy forest.

The dawn came, and still he kept onwards. As the sun rose higher, having now travelled fully twenty miles, he saw houses on the right of the trail. They were evidently those of retainers or workmen employed on the manor, for a castle stood at some distance.

The dawn arrived, and he continued on his way. As the sun climbed higher, having now traveled a full twenty miles, he spotted houses to the right of the trail. They clearly belonged to servants or workers on the manor, as a castle stood not far away.

An hour later he approached the second or open city of Aisi, where the ferry was across the channel. In his present condition he could not pass through the town. No one there knew of his disgrace, but it was the same to him as if they had. Avoiding the town itself, he crossed the cultivated fields, and upon arriving at the channel he at once stepped in, and swam across to the opposite shore. It was not more than sixty yards, but, weary as he was, it was an exhausting effort. He sat down, but immediately got up and struggled on.

An hour later, he made his way to the second city of Aisi, where the ferry was located across the channel. In his current state, he couldn't go through the town. No one there knew about his shame, but it felt the same to him as if they did. Skirting the town, he crossed the farmland, and when he reached the channel, he jumped in and swam to the other side. It was only about sixty yards, but given how tired he was, it felt exhausting. He sat down for a moment, but then quickly stood up and pressed on.

The church tower on the slope of the hill was a landmark by which he easily discovered the direction of the spot where he had hidden the canoe. But he felt unable to push through the belt of brushwood, reeds, and flags beside the shore, and therefore struck through the firs, following a cattle track, which doubtless led to another grazing ground. This ran parallel with the shore, and when he judged himself about level with the canoe he left it, and entered the wood itself. For a little way he could walk, but the thick fir branches soon blocked his progress, and he could progress only on hands and knees, creeping beneath them. There was a hollow space under the lower branches free from brushwood.

The church tower on the hill was a landmark that helped him find the direction to the spot where he had hidden the canoe. However, he felt unable to push through the thick brush, reeds, and flags by the shore, so he took a cattle track through the fir trees, which likely led to another grazing area. This path ran parallel to the shore, and when he thought he was about level with the canoe, he left it and entered the woods. For a short distance, he could walk, but the dense fir branches soon blocked his way, forcing him to crawl on his hands and knees beneath them. There was a clear space under the lower branches that was free of brushwood.

Thus he painfully approached the Lake, and descending the hill, after an hour's weary work emerged among the rushes and reeds. He was within two hundred yards of the canoe, for he recognised the island opposite it. In ten minutes he found it undisturbed and exactly as he had left it, except that the breeze had strewn the dry reeds with which it was covered with willow leaves, yellow and dead (they fall while all the rest are green), which had been whirled from the branches. Throwing himself upon the reeds beside the canoe, he dropped asleep as if he had been dead.

So he slowly made his way to the Lake, and after an hour of hard work climbing down the hill, he finally emerged among the rushes and reeds. He was only two hundred yards away from the canoe, as he recognized the island in front of it. In ten minutes, he found it undisturbed and exactly as he had left it, except that the breeze had scattered the dry reeds covering it with yellow, dead willow leaves (they fall while all the others are still green), which had blown down from the branches. Collapsing onto the reeds next to the canoe, he fell asleep as if he were dead.

He awoke as the sun was sinking and sat up, hungry in the extreme, but much refreshed. There were still some stores in the canoe, of which he ate ravenously. But he felt better now; he felt at home beside his boat. He could hardly believe in the reality of the hideous dream through which he had passed. But when he tried to stand, his feet, cut and blistered, only too painfully assured him of its reality. He took out his hunter's hide and cloak and spread himself a comfortable bed. Though he had slept so long he was still weary. He reclined in a semi-unconscious state, his frame slowly recovering from the strain it had endured, till by degrees he fell asleep again. Sleep, nothing but sleep, restores the overtaxed mind and body.

He woke up as the sun was setting and sat up, extremely hungry, but feeling much better. There were still some supplies in the canoe, which he ate eagerly. But he felt good now; he felt at home next to his boat. He could hardly believe the terrible dream he had gone through was real. But when he tried to stand, his feet, cut and blistered, painfully reminded him it was. He took out his hunter's hide and cloak and made himself a comfortable bed. Even though he had slept for a long time, he was still tired. He lay down in a semi-conscious state, his body slowly recovering from the strain it had been through, until gradually he fell asleep again. Sleep, nothing but sleep, repairs the overworked mind and body.


CHAPTER XXI
A VOYAGE


The sun was up when Felix awoke, and as he raised himself the beauty of the Lake before him filled him with pleasure. By the shore it was so calm that the trees were perfectly reflected, and the few willow leaves that had fallen floated without drifting one way or the other. Farther out the islands were lit up with the sunlight, and the swallows skimmed the water, following the outline of their shores. In the Lake beyond them, glimpses of which he could see through the channel or passage between, there was a ripple where the faint south-western breeze touched the surface. His mind went out to the beauty of it. He did not question or analyse his feelings; he launched his vessel, and left that hard and tyrannical land for the loveliness of the water.

The sun was up when Felix woke up, and as he got out of bed, the beauty of the lake in front of him filled him with joy. By the shore, it was so calm that the trees were perfectly mirrored, and the few willow leaves that had fallen floated without drifting in any direction. Further out, the islands were basking in sunlight, and the swallows skimmed over the water, tracing the outlines of the shores. In the lake beyond, visible through the narrow passage, there was a ripple where the light south-west breeze brushed against the surface. He was captivated by its beauty. He didn’t question or analyze his feelings; he launched his boat and left that harsh and oppressive land for the charm of the water.

Paddling out to the islands he passed through between them, and reached the open Lake. There he hoisted the sail, the gentle breeze filled it, the sharp cutwater began to divide the ripples, a bubbling sound arose, and steering due north, straight out to the open and boundless expanse, he was carried swiftly away.

Paddling out to the islands he passed through, he reached the open lake. There, he hoisted the sail, the gentle breeze filled it, the sharp bow began to cut through the ripples, a bubbling sound rose up, and steering due north, straight out to the wide and endless expanse, he was swiftly carried away.

The mallards, who saw the canoe coming, at first scarcely moved, never thinking that a boat would venture outside the islands, within whose line they were accustomed to see vessels, but when the canoe continued to bear down upon them, they flew up and descended far away to one side. When he had sailed past the spot where these birds had floated, the Lake was his own. By the shores of the islands the crows came down for mussels. Moorhens swam in and out among the rushes, water-rats nibbled at the flags, pikes basked at the edge of the weeds, summer-snipes ran along the sand, and doubtless an otter here and there was in concealment. Without the line of the shoals and islets, now that the mallards had flown, there was a solitude of water. It was far too deep for the longest weeds, nothing seemed to exist here. The very water-snails seek the shore, or are drifted by the currents into shallow corners. Neither great nor little care for the broad expanse.

The mallards, who saw the canoe coming, barely moved at first, never expecting a boat to come outside the islands where they were used to seeing vessels. But when the canoe kept approaching, they took off and flew far away to one side. Once he passed the spot where those birds had been floating, the Lake was his. Along the shores of the islands, the crows came down for mussels. Moorhens swam in and out among the reeds, water rats snacked on the flags, pikes sunbathed at the edge of the weeds, summer snipes ran along the sand, and surely an otter was hiding somewhere. Outside the line of the shoals and islets, now that the mallards had flown, there was a quiet stretch of water. It was too deep for the longest weeds; nothing seemed to be here. Even the water snails sought the shore or were carried by the currents into shallow spots. Neither big nor small bothered about the wide expanse.

The canoe moved more rapidly as the wind came now with its full force over the distant woods and hills, and though it was but a light southerly breeze, the broad sail impelled the taper vessel swiftly. Reclining in the stern, Felix lost all consciousness of aught but that he was pleasantly borne along. His eyes were not closed, and he was aware of the canoe, the Lake, the sunshine, and the sky, and yet he was asleep. Physically awake, he mentally slumbered. It was rest. After the misery, exertion, and excitement of the last fortnight it was rest, intense rest for body and mind. The pressure of the water against the handle of the rudder-paddle, the slight vibration of the wood, as the bubbles rushed by beneath, alone perhaps kept him from really falling asleep. This was something which could not be left to itself; it must be firmly grasped, and that effort restrained his drowsiness.

The canoe sped up as the wind picked up strength over the distant woods and hills. Even though it was just a gentle southerly breeze, the large sail pushed the slender vessel forward quickly. Reclining in the back, Felix was completely lost in the pleasure of being carried along. His eyes were open, and he noticed the canoe, the lake, the sunshine, and the sky, yet he felt like he was asleep. Physically awake, he was mentally dreaming. It was a time of rest. After the stress, hard work, and excitement of the past two weeks, it was deep relaxation for both his body and mind. The pressure of the water against the rudder’s handle and the slight vibrations of the wood as the bubbles floated by were probably the only things keeping him from actually falling asleep. This was something that needed to be controlled; it required a firm grip, and that effort held back his drowsiness.

Three hours passed. The shore was twelve or fifteen miles behind, and looked like a blue cloud, for the summer haze hid the hills, more than would have been the case in clearer weather.

Three hours went by. The shore was twelve or fifteen miles away and appeared like a blue cloud, as the summer haze concealed the hills more than it would have in clearer weather.

Another hour, and at last Felix, awakening from his slumberous condition, looked round and saw nothing but the waves. The shore he had left had entirely disappeared, gone down; if there were land more lofty on either hand, the haze concealed it. He looked again; he could scarcely comprehend it. He knew the Lake was very wide, but it had never occurred to him that he might possibly sail out of sight of land. This, then was why the mariners would not quit the islands; they feared the open water. He stood up and swept the horizon carefully, shading his eyes with his hand; there was nothing but a mist at the horizon. He was alone with the sun, the sky, and the Lake. He could not surely have sailed into the ocean without knowing it? He sat down, dipped his hand overboard and tasted the drops that adhered; the water was pure and sweet, warm from the summer sunshine.

Another hour passed, and finally Felix, waking up from his drowsy state, looked around and saw nothing but waves. The shore he had left was completely gone, vanished; if there were higher land on either side, the haze was hiding it. He looked again; he could hardly believe it. He knew the Lake was very wide, but it had never occurred to him that he might sail out of sight of land. This was why the sailors wouldn't leave the islands; they were afraid of the open water. He stood up and carefully scanned the horizon, shielding his eyes with his hand; there was nothing but mist in the distance. He was alone with the sun, the sky, and the Lake. Surely, he couldn't have sailed into the ocean without realizing it? He sat back down, dipped his hand over the edge, and tasted the drops that clung to it; the water was pure and sweet, warmed by the summer sun.

There was not so much as a swift in the upper sky; nothing but slender filaments of white cloud. No swallows glided over the surface of the water. If there were fishes he could not see them through the waves, which were here much larger; sufficiently large, though the wind was light, to make his canoe rise and fall with their regular rolling. To see fishes a calm surface is necessary, and, like other creatures, they haunt the shallows and the shore. Never had he felt alone like this in the depths of the farthest forest he had penetrated. Had he contemplated beforehand the possibility of passing out of sight of land, when he found that the canoe had arrived he would probably have been alarmed and anxious for his safety. But thus stumbling drowsily into the solitude of the vast Lake, he was so astounded with his own discovery, so absorbed in thinking of the immense expanse, that the idea of danger did not occur to him.

There wasn’t a bird in the sky; just thin strands of white clouds. No swallows skimmed over the water’s surface. If there were fish, he couldn’t see them through the waves, which were much larger here; large enough, despite the light wind, to make his canoe rise and fall with their steady rolling. You need a calm surface to see fish, and like other creatures, they stick to the shallows and the shore. He had never felt so alone as he did deep in the farthest forest he had explored. If he had thought about the chance of drifting out of sight of land, when he realized the canoe had drifted away, he probably would have felt scared and worried for his safety. But as he drowsily stumbled into the solitude of the vast Lake, he was so amazed by his own discovery, so lost in thoughts about the immense expanse, that the thought of danger didn’t even cross his mind.

Another hour passed, and he now began to gaze about him more eagerly for some sight of land, for he had very little provision with him, and he did not wish to spend the night upon the Lake. Presently, however, the mist on the horizon ahead appeared to thicken, and then became blue, and in a shorter time than he expected land came in sight. This arose from the fact of its being low, so that he had approached nearer than he knew before recognising it. At the time when he was really out of sight of the coast, he was much further from the hilly land left behind than from the low country in front, and not in the mathematical centre, as he had supposed, of the Lake. As it rose and came more into sight, he already began to wonder what reception he should meet with from the inhabitants, and whether he should find them as hard of heart as the people he had just escaped from. Should he, indeed, venture among them at all? Or should he remain in the woods till he had observed more of their ways and manners? These questions were being debated in his mind, when he perceived that the wind was falling.

Another hour passed, and he started to look around eagerly for any sign of land, since he didn’t have much food with him and didn’t want to spend the night on the lake. Soon, though, the mist on the horizon ahead seemed to thicken and then turned blue, and in less time than he expected, land appeared on the horizon. This was because it was low, so he had gotten closer than he realized before spotting it. At the time he was truly out of sight of the coast, he was much farther from the hilly land he had left behind than from the low country in front of him, not in the exact center of the lake as he had thought. As the land came into view, he began to wonder what kind of reception he would get from the people there and whether they would be as cold-hearted as those he had just escaped. Should he even venture among them? Or should he stay in the woods until he figured out more about their ways and customs? These questions were swirling in his mind when he noticed that the wind was dying down.

As the sun went past the meridian the breeze fell, till, in the hottest part of the afternoon, and when he judged that he was not more than eight miles from shore, it sank to the merest zephyr, and the waves by degrees diminished. So faint became the breeze in half-an-hour's time, and so intermittent, that he found it patience wasted even to hold the rudder-paddle. The sail hung and was no longer bellied out; as the idle waves rolled under, it flapped against the mast. The heat was now so intolerable, the light reflected from the water increasing the sensation, that he was obliged to make himself some shelter by partly lowering the sail, and hauling the yard athwart the vessel, so that the canvas acted as an awning. Gradually the waves declined in volume, and the gentle breathing of the wind ebbed away, till at last the surface was almost still, and he could feel no perceptible air stirring.

As the sun passed its highest point in the sky, the breeze died down until, in the hottest part of the afternoon, he guessed he was no more than eight miles from shore, and it dwindled to a barely noticeable whisper. The waves gradually calmed. Within half an hour, the breeze became so weak and sporadic that he felt it was pointless to even hold the rudder-paddle. The sail drooped and no longer caught the wind; as the lazy waves rolled underneath, it flapped against the mast. The heat was now unbearable, and the glare from the water intensified the discomfort, so he had to create some shade by partially lowering the sail and pulling the yard across the boat, making the canvas act as an awning. Slowly, the waves shrank in size, and the soft whisper of the wind faded away, until finally the surface was nearly still, and he could feel no noticeable air moving.

Weary of sitting in the narrow boat, he stood up, but he could not stretch himself sufficiently for the change to be of much use. The long summer day, previously so pleasant, now appeared scarcely endurable. Upon the silent water the time lingered, for there was nothing to mark its advance, not so much as a shadow beyond that of his own boat. The waves having now no crest, went under the canoe without chafing against it, or rebounding, so that they were noiseless. No fishes rose to the surface. There was nothing living near, except a blue butterfly, which settled on the mast, having ventured thus far from land. The vastness of the sky, over-arching the broad water, the sun, and the motionless filaments of cloud, gave no repose for his gaze, for they were seemingly still. To the weary gaze motion is repose; the waving boughs, the foam-tipped waves, afford positive rest to look at. Such intense stillness as this of the summer sky was oppressive; it was like living in space itself, in the ether above. He welcomed at last the gradual downward direction of the sun, for, as the heat decreased, he could work with the paddle.

Tired of sitting in the cramped boat, he stood up, but he couldn’t stretch enough for it to feel any better. The long summer day, once so enjoyable, now seemed almost unbearable. Time dragged on over the still water, with nothing to indicate its passage, not even a shadow beyond his own boat. The waves now had no crest, slipping under the canoe quietly, without rubbing against it or bouncing back, making no sound at all. No fish came to the surface. There was nothing alive nearby except for a blue butterfly that landed on the mast, having ventured this far from shore. The vast sky above the wide water, the sun, and the unmoving wisps of clouds offered no relief for his gaze, as they appeared utterly still. To a tired eye, motion is restful; the swaying branches and frothy waves provide a welcome distraction. Such intense stillness of the summer sky felt oppressive; it was like existing in pure space, in the ether above. He finally welcomed the gradual descent of the sun, as the decreasing heat allowed him to paddle more comfortably.

Presently he furled the sail, took his paddle, and set his face for the land. He laboured steadily, but made no apparent progress. The canoe was heavy, and the outrigger or beam, which was of material use in sailing, was a drawback to paddling. He worked till his arms grew weary, and still the blue land seemed as far off as ever.

Currently, he rolled up the sail, grabbed his paddle, and faced the land. He worked hard, but didn’t seem to get anywhere. The canoe was heavy, and the outrigger, which was useful for sailing, made paddling more difficult. He kept going until his arms were tired, yet the blue land still looked just as far away as before.

But by the time the sun began to approach the horizon, his efforts had produced some effect, the shore was visible, and the woods beyond. They were still five miles distant, and he was tired; there was little chance of his reaching it before night. He put his paddle down for refreshment and rest, and while he was thus engaged, a change took place. A faint puff of air came; a second, and a third; a tiny ripple ran along the surface. Now he recollected that he had heard that the mariners depended a great deal on the morning and the evening—the land and the Lake—breeze as they worked along the shore. This was the first breath of the Land breeze. It freshened after a while, and he re-set his sail.

But by the time the sun started to sink toward the horizon, his efforts had made some progress; the shore was visible, along with the woods beyond. They were still five miles away, and he was tired; there was little chance of him reaching it before nightfall. He set his paddle down to take a break and rest, and while he was doing that, something changed. A light puff of air came; then a second and a third; a small ripple appeared on the surface. Now he remembered that he had heard that sailors relied a lot on the morning and evening breezes from land and the lake as they worked along the shore. This was the first hint of the land breeze. It picked up after a while, and he adjusted his sail.

An hour or so afterwards he came near the shore; he heard the thrushes singing, and the cuckoo calling, long before he landed. He did not stay to search about for a creek, but ran the canoe on the strand, which was free of reeds or flags, a sign that the waves often beat furiously there, rolling as they must for so many miles. He hauled the canoe up as high as he could, but presently when he looked about him he found that he was on a small and narrow island, with a channel in the rear. Tired as he was, yet anxious for the safety of his canoe, he pushed off again, and paddled round and again beached her with the island between her and the open Lake. Else he feared if a south wind should blow she might be broken to pieces on the strand before his eyes. It was prudent to take the precaution, but, as it happened, the next day the Lake was still.

About an hour later, he got close to the shore; he heard the thrushes singing and the cuckoo calling long before he landed. He didn’t bother looking for a creek but ran the canoe onto the beach, which was clear of reeds or flags, a sign that the waves often crashed violently there, rolling as they likely did for many miles. He pulled the canoe up as high as he could, but when he looked around, he realized he was on a small, narrow island, with a channel behind him. As tired as he was, he still worried about the safety of his canoe, so he pushed off again and paddled around, then beached it again with the island between the canoe and the open Lake. He feared that if a south wind picked up, it could smash the canoe against the shore right before his eyes. It was a smart precaution to take, but as it turned out, the next day, the Lake was calm.

He could see no traces of human occupation upon the island, which was of small extent and nearly bare, and therefore, in the morning, paddled across the channel to the mainland, as he thought. But upon exploring the opposite shore, it proved not to be the mainland, but merely another island. Paddling round it, he tried again, but with the same result; he found nothing but island after island, all narrow, and bearing nothing except bushes. Observing a channel which seemed to go straight in among these islets, he resolved to follow it, and did so (resting at noon-time) the whole morning. As he paddled slowly in, he found the water shallower, and weeds, bulrushes, and reeds became thick, except quite in the centre.

He saw no signs of human life on the island, which was small and almost bare, so in the morning, he paddled across the channel, thinking he was heading to the mainland. But when he explored the other shore, it turned out not to be the mainland, just another island. He paddled around it and tried again, but got the same result; he found only island after island, all narrow with nothing on them except bushes. Noticing a channel that seemed to lead straight among these islets, he decided to follow it and did so, taking a break at noon, for the whole morning. As he paddled slowly in, the water became shallower, and weeds, bulrushes, and reeds got thicker, except right in the center.

After the heat of midday had gone over, he resumed his voyage, and still found the same; islets and banks, more or less covered with hawthorn bushes, willow, elder, and alder, succeeded to islets, fringed round their edges with reeds and reed canary-grass. When he grew weary of paddling, he landed and stayed the night; the next day he went on again, and still for hour after hour rowed in and out among these banks and islets, till he began to think he should never find his way out.

After the midday heat faded, he continued his journey and found the same scenery: small islands and riverbanks, more or less filled with hawthorn bushes, willows, elder, and alders, alternating with islands lined around their edges with reeds and canary grass. When he got tired of paddling, he would land and spend the night; the next day, he would set off again, rowing in and out among these banks and islands for hours until he started to feel like he would never find his way out.

The farther he penetrated the more numerous became the waterfowl. Ducks swam among the flags, or rose with a rush and splashing. Coots and moorhens dived and hid in the reeds. The lesser grebe sank at the sound of the paddle like a stone. A strong northern diver raised a wave as he hurried away under the water, his course marked by the undulation above him. Sedge-birds chirped in the willows; black-headed buntings sat on the trees, and watched him without fear. Bearded titmice were there, clinging to the stalks of the sedges, and long-necked herons rose from the reedy places where they love to wade. Blue dragon-flies darted to and fro, or sat on water-plants as if they were flowers. Snakes swam across the channels, vibrating their heads from side to side. Swallows swept over his head. Pike "struck" from the verge of the thick weeds as he came near. Perch rose for insects as they fell helpless into the water.

The further he went in, the more waterfowl he saw. Ducks swam among the reeds, or took off with a rush and splash. Coots and moorhens dived and hid in the rushes. A little grebe sank like a stone at the sound of the paddle. A strong northern diver created a wave as he quickly swam away underwater, leaving a trail of ripples behind him. Sedge warblers chirped in the willows; black-headed buntings perched in the trees, watching him without fear. Bearded titmice clung to the stalks of the sedges, and long-necked herons took off from their favorite wading spots among the reeds. Blue dragonflies zipped around or rested on water plants as if they were flowers. Snakes swam across the channels, moving their heads side to side. Swallows flew overhead. Pike "struck" from the edge of the thick weeds as he approached. Perch rose to catch insects as they fell helplessly onto the water.

He noticed that the water, though so thick with reeds, was as clear as that in the open Lake; there was no scum such as accumulates in stagnant places. From this he concluded that there must be a current, however slight, perhaps from rivers flowing into this part of the Lake. He felt the strongest desire to explore farther till he reached the mainland, but he reflected that mere exploration was not his object; it would never obtain Aurora for him. There were no signs whatever of human habitation, and from reeds and bulrushes, however interesting, nothing could be gained. Reluctantly, therefore, on the third morning, having passed the night on one of the islets, he turned his canoe, and paddled southwards towards the Lake.

He noticed that the water, although filled with reeds, was as clear as that in the open lake; there was no scum like what collects in stagnant areas. From this, he concluded that there had to be a current, however slight, perhaps from rivers feeding into this part of the lake. He felt a strong urge to explore further until he reached the mainland, but he reminded himself that mere exploration wasn’t his goal; it wouldn’t win him Aurora. There were no signs of human habitation at all, and from the reeds and bulrushes, no real gain could come. Reluctantly, on the third morning, after spending the night on one of the islets, he turned his canoe and paddled south towards the lake.

He did not for a moment attempt to retrace the channel by which he had entered; it would have been an impossibility; he took advantage of any clear space to push through. It took him as long to get out as it had to get in; it was the afternoon of the fourth day when he at last regained the coast. He rested the remainder of the afternoon, wishing to start fresh in the morning, having determined to follow the line of the shore eastwards, and so gradually to circumnavigate the Lake. If he succeeded in nothing else, that at least would be something to relate to Aurora.

He didn’t even try to go back the way he came; that would have been impossible. He took advantage of any clear space to push through. It took him just as long to get out as it did to get in; it was the afternoon of the fourth day when he finally made it back to the coast. He rested for the rest of the afternoon, wanting to start fresh in the morning, and decided to follow the shoreline eastward to gradually circle the lake. If he didn’t achieve anything else, at least that would be something to share with Aurora.

The morning rose fair and bright, with a south-westerly air rather than a breeze. He sailed before it; it was so light that his progress could not have exceeded more than three miles an hour. Hour after hour passed away, and still he followed the line of the shore, now going a short way out to skirt an island, and now nearer it to pass between sandbanks. By noon he was so weary of sitting in the canoe that he ran her ashore, and rested awhile.

The morning was beautiful and bright, with a gentle southwesterly wind. He sailed along with it; it was so light that he couldn't have been going more than three miles an hour. Hour after hour went by, and he kept following the shoreline, sometimes going a bit out to avoid an island, and other times getting closer to pass between sandbanks. By noon, he was so tired of sitting in the canoe that he pulled it ashore and rested for a while.

It was the very height of the heat of the day when he set forth again, and the wind lighter than in the morning. It had, however, changed a little, and blew now from the west, almost too exactly abaft to suit his craft. He could not make a map while sailing, or observe his position accurately, but it appeared to him that the shore trended towards the south-east, so that he was gradually turning an arc. He supposed from this that he must be approaching the eastern end of the Lake. The water seemed shallower, to judge from the quantity of weeds. Now and then he caught glimpses between the numerous islands of the open Lake, and there, too, the weeds covered the surface in many places.

It was the peak of the hottest part of the day when he set off again, and the wind was lighter than in the morning. However, it had shifted a bit and was now blowing from the west, almost exactly behind him, which wasn't ideal for his boat. He couldn’t make a map while sailing or get an accurate read on his position, but it seemed to him that the shore was heading towards the southeast, so he was gradually making a turn. He assumed that meant he must be getting closer to the eastern end of the lake. The water appeared shallower, judging by the amount of weeds. Occasionally, he caught sight of the open lake between the many islands, and there too, the weeds covered the surface in several spots.

In an hour or two the breeze increased considerably, and travelling so much quicker, he found it required all his dexterity to steer past the islands and clear the banks upon which he was drifting. Once or twice he grazed the willows that overhung the water, and heard the keel of the canoe drag on the bottom. As much as possible he bore away from the mainland, steering south-east, thinking to find deeper water, and to be free of the islets. He succeeded in the first, but the islets were now so numerous that he could not tell where the open Lake was. The farther the afternoon advanced, the more the breeze freshened, till occasionally, as it blew between the islands, it struck his mast almost with the force of a gale. Felix welcomed the wind, which would enable him to make great progress before evening. If such favouring breezes would continue, he could circumnavigate the waters in a comparatively short time, and might return to Aurora, so far, at least, successful. Hope filled his heart, and he sang to the wind.

In an hour or two, the breeze picked up significantly, and traveling much faster, he found it took all his skill to navigate past the islands and avoid the banks where he was drifting. Once or twice, he brushed against the willows that hung over the water and felt the canoe's keel drag on the bottom. As much as he could, he steered away from the mainland, heading southeast, hoping to find deeper water and avoid the islets. He managed to find deeper water, but the islets were now so numerous that he couldn't tell where the open lake was. As the afternoon went on, the breeze grew stronger, and at times, as it rushed between the islands, it hit his mast with nearly gale-force strength. Felix welcomed the wind, as it would allow him to cover a lot of ground before evening. If these favorable breezes kept up, he could circle the waters in a relatively short time and might return to Aurora, feeling at least somewhat accomplished. Hope filled his heart, and he sang to the wind.

The waves could not rise among these islands, which intercepted them before they could roll far enough to gather force, so that he had all the advantage of the gale without its risks. Except a light haze all round the horizon, the sky was perfectly clear, and it was pleasant now the strong current of air cooled the sun's heat. As he came round the islands he constantly met and disturbed parties of waterfowl, mallards, and coots. Sometimes they merely hid in the weeds, sometimes they rose, and when they did so passed to his rear.

The waves couldn't build up around these islands, which stopped them before they could gather enough strength, so he enjoyed the benefits of the strong wind without the dangers. Aside from a light mist around the horizon, the sky was completely clear, and it felt nice as the refreshing breeze cooled down the heat of the sun. As he navigated around the islands, he frequently encountered and startled groups of waterfowl, like mallards and coots. Sometimes they just hid in the plants, and other times they flew up, but when they did, they moved behind him.


CHAPTER XXII
DISCOVERIES


This little circumstance of the mallards always flying over him and away behind, when flushed, presently made Felix speculate on the cause, and he kept a closer watch. He now saw (what had, indeed, been going on for some time) that there was a ceaseless stream of waterfowl, mallards, ducks, coots, moorhens, and lesser grebes coming towards him, swimming to the westward. As they met him they parted and let him through, or rose and went over. Next he noticed that the small birds on the islands were also travelling in the same direction, that is against the wind. They did not seem in any haste, but flitted from islet to islet, bush to tree, feeding and gossiping as they went; still the movement was distinct.

This little thing about the mallards always flying over him and off behind when disturbed made Felix curious about why, so he started paying closer attention. He now noticed (which had actually been happening for a while) that there was a constant flow of waterfowl—mallards, ducks, coots, moorhens, and lesser grebes—coming towards him, swimming westward. As they got to him, they split aside to let him pass or flew over him. Then he noticed that the small birds on the islands were also heading in the same direction, which was against the wind. They didn’t seem to be in a rush but moved from islet to islet, bush to tree, feeding and chatting as they went; still, the movement was clear.

Finches, linnets, blackbirds, thrushes, wrens, and whitethroats, and many others, all passed him, and he could see the same thing going on to his right and left. Felix became much interested in this migration, all the more singular as it was the nesting-time, and hundreds of these birds must have left their nests with eggs or young behind them. Nothing that he could think of offered an adequate explanation. He imagined he saw shoals of fishes going the same way, but the surface of the water being ruffled, and the canoe sailing rapidly, he could not be certain. About an hour after he first observed the migration the stream of birds ceased suddenly.

Finches, linnets, blackbirds, thrushes, wrens, and whitethroats, along with many others, flew past him, and he could see the same activity happening to his right and left. Felix became really fascinated by this migration, especially since it was nesting season, and hundreds of these birds must have left their nests with eggs or young ones behind. Nothing he could think of provided a satisfactory explanation. He thought he saw schools of fish moving the same direction, but the water's surface was choppy, and the canoe was moving quickly, so he couldn’t be sure. About an hour after he first noticed the migration, the stream of birds suddenly stopped.

There were no waterfowls in the water, and no finches in the bushes. They had evidently all passed. Those in the van of the migratory army were no doubt scattered and thinly distributed, so that he had been meeting the flocks a long while before he suspected it. The nearer he approached their centre the thicker they became, and on getting through that he found a solitude. The weeds were thicker than ever, so that he had constantly to edge away from where he supposed the mainland to lie. But there were no waterfowls and no birds on the islets. Suddenly as he rounded a large island he saw what for the moment he imagined to be a line of white surf, but the next instant he recognised a solid mass, as it were, of swallows and martins flying just over the surface of the water straight towards him. He had no time to notice how far they extended before they had gone by him with a rushing sound. Turning to look back, he saw them continue directly west in the teeth of the wind.

There were no ducks in the water, and no finches in the bushes. They had clearly all moved on. Those at the front of the migratory group were probably scattered and hard to find, so he had been encountering small flocks long before he realized it. The closer he got to their main group, the denser they became, and once he passed through that, he found complete silence. The weeds were thicker than ever, which meant he had to continually steer away from where he thought the mainland was. But there were no ducks and no birds on the islets. Suddenly, as he rounded a large island, he thought he saw a line of white surf, but in an instant he recognized it as a solid mass of swallows and martins flying just above the water's surface straight toward him. He didn't have time to see how far they stretched before they rushed past him with a loud sound. Looking back, he saw them flying directly west against the wind.

Like the water and the islands, the sky was now cleared of birds, and not a swallow remained. Felix asked himself if he were running into some unknown danger, but he could not conceive any. The only thing that occurred to him was the possibility of the wind rising to a hurricane; that gave him no alarm, because the numerous islands would afford shelter. So complete was the shelter in some places, that as he passed along his sail drew above, while the surface of the water, almost surrounded with bushes and willows, was smooth. No matter to how many quarters of the compass the wind might veer, he should still be able to get under the lee of one or other of the banks.

Like the water and the islands, the sky was now clear of birds, and there wasn't a single swallow left. Felix wondered if he was heading into some unknown danger, but he couldn't imagine what it might be. The only thing that crossed his mind was the chance of the wind picking up to a hurricane; that didn’t alarm him because the many islands would provide shelter. In some spots, the shelter was so complete that as he passed through, his sail billowed above while the water's surface, almost surrounded by bushes and willows, was calm. No matter how the wind might shift, he would still be able to find shelter behind one or another of the banks.

The sky remained without clouds; there was nothing but a slight haze, which he sometimes fancied looked thicker in front or to the eastward. There was nothing whatever to cause the least uneasiness; on the contrary, his curiosity was aroused, and he was desirous of discovering what it was that had startled the birds. After a while the water became rather more open, with sandbanks instead of islands, so that he could see around him for a considerable distance. By a large bank, behind which the ripple was stilled, he saw a low wave advancing towards him, and moving against the wind. It was followed by two others at short intervals, and though he could not see them, he had no doubt shoals of fishes were passing and had raised the undulations.

The sky was clear; there was just a light haze that he sometimes thought looked a bit thicker in front or to the east. There was nothing to feel uneasy about; instead, his curiosity was piqued, and he wanted to find out what had scared the birds. After a while, the water opened up more, revealing sandbanks instead of islands, allowing him to see quite a distance around him. By a large sandbank, where the ripples were calm, he noticed a low wave coming toward him, moving against the wind. It was followed by two more waves shortly after, and even though he couldn't see them, he was sure that schools of fish were passing through, causing the ripples.

The sedges on the sandbanks appeared brown and withered, as if it had been autumn instead of early summer. The flags were brown at the tip, and the aquatic grasses had dwindled. They looked as if they could not grow, and had reached but half their natural height. From the low willows the leaves were dropping, faded and yellow, and the thorn bushes were shrivelled and covered with the white cocoons of caterpillars. The farther he sailed the more desolate the banks seemed, and trees ceased altogether. Even the willows were fewer and stunted, and the highest thorn bush was not above his chest. His vessel was now more exposed to the wind, so that he drove past the banks and scattered islands rapidly, and he noticed that there was not so much as a crow on them. Upturned mussel-shells, glittering in the sunshine, showed where crows had been at work, but there was not one now visible.

The sedges on the sandbanks looked brown and dried up, as if it was autumn instead of early summer. The flags were brown at the tips, and the aquatic grasses had shrunk. They seemed unable to grow and had reached only half their natural height. The leaves were falling from the low willows, faded and yellow, and the thorn bushes were shriveled and covered in white caterpillar cocoons. The farther he sailed, the more desolate the banks appeared, and trees completely disappeared. Even the willows were fewer and stunted, and the tallest thorn bush barely reached his chest. His boat was now more exposed to the wind, so he quickly passed the banks and scattered islands, noticing that there wasn't even a crow in sight. Upturned mussel shells glimmering in the sunlight showed where crows had been, but not a single one was visible now.

Felix thought that the water had lost its clearness and had become thick, which he put down to the action of the wavelets disturbing the sand in the shallows. Ahead the haze, or mist, was now much thicker, and was apparently not over a mile distant. It hid the islands and concealed everything. He expected to enter it immediately, but it receded as he approached. Along the strand of an island he passed there was a dark line like a stain, and in still water under the lee the surface was covered with a floating scum. Felix, on seeing this, at once concluded that he had unknowingly entered a gulf, and had left the main Lake, for the only place he had ever seen scum before was at the extremity of a creek near home, where the water was partly stagnant on a marshy level. The water of the Lake was proverbial for its purity and clearness.

Felix thought the water had lost its clarity and had become murky, which he attributed to the tiny waves stirring up the sand in the shallow areas. Up ahead, the haze or mist was now much thicker and seemed to be less than a mile away. It obscured the islands and hid everything. He expected to enter it right away, but it moved further away as he got closer. Along the shore of an island he passed, there was a dark line that looked like a stain, and in the still water sheltered from the wind, the surface was covered with a floating residue. Seeing this, Felix immediately concluded that he had unknowingly entered a gulf and had left the main Lake, because the only place he had ever seen scum before was at the end of a creek near his home, where the water was partly stagnant in a marshy area. The Lake's water was famous for its purity and clarity.

He kept, therefore, a sharp look-out, expecting every moment to sight the end of the gulf or creek in which he supposed himself sailing, so that he might be ready to lower his sail. By degrees the wind had risen till it now blew with fury, but the numerous sandflats so broke up the waves that he found no inconvenience from them. One solitary gull passed over at a great height, flying steadily westwards against the wind. The canoe now began to overtake fragments of scum drifting before the wind, and rising up and down on the ripples. Once he saw a broad piece rise to the surface together with a quantity of bubbles. None of the sandbanks now rose more than a foot or so above the surface, and were entirely bare, mere sand and gravel.

He kept a sharp lookout, expecting to see the end of the bay or creek he thought he was sailing in, so he could quickly lower his sail. Gradually, the wind picked up and was now blowing fiercely, but the many sandbars broke up the waves enough that he didn’t feel any discomfort from them. A single gull flew high above, heading steadily west against the wind. The canoe started to catch bits of foam drifting with the wind, bobbing up and down on the ripples. At one point, he saw a wide patch surface along with a bunch of bubbles. None of the sandbanks were now more than about a foot above the surface, and they were completely bare, just sand and gravel.

The mist ahead was sensibly nearer, and yet it eluded him; it was of a faint yellow, and though so thin, obscured everything where it hovered. From out of the mist there presently appeared a vast stretch of weeds. They floated on the surface and undulated to the wavelets, a pale yellowish green expanse. Felix was hesitating whether to lower his sail or attempt to drive over them, when, as he advanced and the mist retreated, he saw open water beyond. The weeds extended on either hand as far as he could see, but they were only a narrow band, and he hesitated no longer. He felt the canoe graze the bottom once as he sailed over the weeds. The water was free of sandbanks beyond them, but he could see large islands looming in several directions.

The mist ahead was definitely closer, yet it still evaded him; it was a light yellow color and, although thin, it obscured everything in its path. Suddenly, out of the mist, a vast expanse of weeds appeared. They floated on the surface and swayed with the small waves, creating a pale yellowish-green stretch. Felix was unsure whether to lower his sail or try to paddle over them when, as he moved forward and the mist pulled back, he spotted open water ahead. The weeds stretched out to both sides as far as he could see, but they formed just a narrow band, so he wasted no time. He felt the canoe scrape the bottom as he glided over the weeds. Beyond them, the water was clear of sandbanks, but he could see large islands rising up in several directions.

Glancing behind him he perceived that the faint yellow mist had closed in and now encircled him. It came with two or three hundred yards, and was not affected by the wind, rough as it was. Quite suddenly he noticed that the water on which the canoe floated was black. The wavelets which rolled alongside were black, and the slight spray that occasionally flew on board was black, and stained the side of the vessel. This greatly astonished and almost shocked him; it was so opposite and contrary to all his ideas about the Lake, the very mirror of purity. He leant over, and dipped up a little in the palm of his hand; it did not appear black in such a small quantity, it seemed a rusty brown, but he became aware of an offensive odour. The odour clung to his hand, and he could not remove it, to his great disgust. It was like nothing he had ever smelt before, and not in the least like the vapour of marshes.

Glancing behind him, he noticed that the faint yellow mist had closed in and now surrounded him. It extended for two or three hundred yards and wasn’t affected by the wind, no matter how rough it was. Suddenly, he saw that the water beneath the canoe was black. The little waves rolling alongside were black, and the slight spray that occasionally splashed on board was black too, staining the side of the vessel. This greatly surprised and almost shocked him; it was so contrary to all his ideas about the Lake, which he thought of as the very essence of purity. He leaned over and scooped up a little water in the palm of his hand; it didn’t look black in such a small amount—it seemed a rusty brown—but he noticed a foul smell. The smell stuck to his hand, and he couldn’t wash it off, much to his disgust. It was unlike anything he had ever smelled before, and not at all like the scent of marshes.

By now being some distance from any island, the wavelets increased in size, and spray flew on board, wetting everything with this black liquid. Instead of level marshes and the end of the gulf, it appeared as if the water were deep, and also as if it widened. Exposed to the full press of the gale, Felix began to fear that he should not be able to return very easily against it. He did not know what to do. The horrid blackness of the water disposed him to turn about and tack out; on the other hand, having set out on a voyage of discovery, and having now found something different to the other parts of the Lake, he did not like to retreat. He sailed on, thinking to presently pass these loathsome waters.

Being now far from any island, the waves grew larger, and spray flew onto the deck, soaking everything with this black liquid. Instead of flat marshes and the end of the bay, it seemed like the water was deeper and wider. Facing the full force of the storm, Felix started to worry that he wouldn’t be able to return easily against it. He didn’t know what to do. The dreadful darkness of the water made him want to turn back and sail away; however, having set out on a journey of exploration and now encountering something different from the other parts of the lake, he was reluctant to retreat. He continued sailing, hoping to soon navigate past these disgusting waters.

He was now hungry, and indeed thirsty, but was unable to drink because he had no water-barrel. No vessel sailing on the Lake ever carried a water-barrel, since such pure water was always under their bows. He was cramped, too, with long sitting in the canoe, and the sun was perceptibly sloping in the west. He determined to land and rest, and with this purpose steered to the right under the lee of a large island, so large, indeed, that he was not certain it was not part of the mainland or one side of the gulf. The water was very deep close up to the shore, but, to his annoyance, the strand appeared black, as if soaked with the dark water. He skirted along somewhat farther, and found a ledge of low rocks stretching out into the Lake, so that he was obliged to run ashore before coming to these.

He was now hungry and really thirsty, but he couldn’t drink since he didn’t have a water barrel. No boat sailing on the lake ever carried a water barrel because such clean water was always right beneath them. He also felt cramped after sitting in the canoe for so long, and the sun was noticeably setting in the west. He decided to land and rest, so he steered to the right, seeking the shelter of a large island—so large, in fact, that he wasn't sure it wasn't part of the mainland or one side of the gulf. The water was very deep right up to the shore, but, to his frustration, the beach looked black as if it were soaked with dark water. He moved along a bit further and found a ledge of low rocks stretching out into the lake, which meant he had to run ashore before reaching them.

On landing, the black strand, to his relief, was fairly firm, for he had dreaded sinking to the knees in it; but its appearance was so unpleasant that he could not bring himself to sit down. He walked on towards the ledge of rocks, thinking to find a pleasanter place there. They were stratified, and he stepped on them to climb up, when his foot went deep into the apparently hard rock. He kicked it, and his shoe penetrated it as if it had been soft sand. It was impossible to climb up the reef. The ground rose inland, and curious to see around him as far as possible, he ascended the slope.

On landing, the black sand was pretty solid, which relieved him since he had been worried about sinking into it up to his knees. However, it looked so unappealing that he couldn't bring himself to sit down. He walked toward the rock ledge, hoping to find a nicer spot there. The rocks were layered, and as he stepped on them to climb up, his foot sank deep into what seemed to be hard rock. He kicked it, and his shoe went right through as if it were soft sand. Climbing up the reef was impossible. The ground sloped upward inland, and curious to see his surroundings as much as possible, he climbed the incline.

From the summit, however, he could not see farther than on the shore, for the pale yellow mist rose up round him, and hid the canoe on the strand. The extreme desolation of the dark and barren ground repelled him; there was not a tree, bush, or living creature, not so much as a buzzing fly. He turned to go down, and then for the first time noticed that the disk of the sun was surrounded with a faint blue rim, apparently caused by the yellow vapour. So much were the rays shorn of their glare, that he could look at the sun without any distress, but its heat seemed to have increased, though it was now late in the afternoon.

From the summit, though, he couldn't see any farther than the shore because a pale yellow mist surrounded him, obscuring the canoe on the beach. The extreme desolation of the dark and barren ground made him uneasy; there wasn't a tree, bush, or living creature, not even a buzzing fly. He turned to head down and then for the first time noticed that the sun was surrounded by a faint blue halo, likely caused by the yellow mist. The sunlight was so dulled that he could look at the sun without any discomfort, but its heat seemed to have intensified, even though it was now late in the afternoon.

Descending towards the canoe, he fancied the wind had veered considerably. He sat down in the boat, and took some food; it was without relish, as he had nothing to drink, and the great heat had tired him. Wearily, and without thinking, he pushed off the canoe; she slowly floated out, when, as he was about to hoist up the sail, a tremendous gust of wind struck him down on the thwarts, and nearly carried him overboard. He caught the mast as he fell, or over he must have gone into the black waves. Before he could recover himself, she drifted against the ledge of rocks, which broke down and sank before the bow, so that she passed over uninjured.

Descending toward the canoe, he sensed that the wind had shifted quite a bit. He sat down in the boat and grabbed some food; it was tasteless since he had nothing to drink, and the intense heat had worn him out. Exhausted and without thinking, he pushed off the canoe; it slowly floated away when, just as he was about to raise the sail, a powerful gust of wind knocked him onto the seats and almost tossed him overboard. He grabbed the mast as he fell, or he surely would have gone into the dark waves. Before he could regain his composure, the canoe drifted against the rocky ledge, which crumbled and sank beneath the bow, allowing it to pass over unharmed.

Felix got out a paddle, and directed the canoe as well as he could; the fury of the wind was irresistible, and he could only drive before it. In a few minutes, as he was swept along the shore, he was carried between it and another immense reef. Here, the waves being broken and less powerful, he contrived to get the heavy canoe ashore again, and, jumping out, dragged her up as far as he could on the land. When he had done this, he found to his surprise that the gale had ceased. The tremendous burst of wind had been succeeded by a perfect calm, and the waves had already lost their violent impetus.

Felix took out a paddle and steered the canoe as best as he could; the intensity of the wind was overpowering, and he could only go with it. In just a few minutes, as he was pushed along the shore, he found himself caught between it and a massive reef. Here, with the waves being calmer and less forceful, he managed to get the heavy canoe back on land, and after jumping out, he dragged it as far up as he could. Once he did this, he was surprised to realize that the storm had stopped. The fierce gusts of wind had been replaced by complete stillness, and the waves had already lost their violent force.

This was a relief, for he had feared that the canoe would be utterly broken to pieces; but soon he began to doubt if it were an unmixed benefit, as without a wind he could not move from this dismal place that evening. He was too weary to paddle far. He sat on the canoe to rest himself, and, whether from fatigue or other causes, fell asleep. His head heavily dropping on his chest partly woke him several times, but his lassitude overcame the discomfort, and he slept on. When he got up he felt dazed and unrefreshed, as if sleeping had been hard work. He was extremely thirsty, and oppressed with the increasing heat. The sun had sunk, or rather was so low that the high ground hid it from sight.

This was a relief, as he had been worried that the canoe would be completely wrecked; but soon he started to wonder if it was actually a good thing, since without wind he couldn't move from this gloomy spot that evening. He was too tired to paddle very far. He sat on the canoe to rest, and, whether from exhaustion or something else, he fell asleep. His head drooped heavily onto his chest, waking him up a few times, but his fatigue made him ignore the discomfort, and he kept sleeping. When he finally got up, he felt dazed and not refreshed, as if sleeping had been hard work. He was extremely thirsty and weighed down by the rising heat. The sun had set or was so low that the high ground blocked it from view.


CHAPTER XXIII
STRANGE THINGS


The thought struck Felix that perhaps he might find a spring somewhere in the island, and he started at once up over the hill. At the top he paused. The sun had not sunk, but had disappeared as a disk. In its place was a billow of blood, for so it looked, a vast up-heaved billow of glowing blood surging on the horizon. Over it flickered a tint of palest blue, like that seen in fire. The black waters reflected the glow, and the yellow vapour around was suffused with it. Though momentarily startled, Felix did not much heed these appearances; he was still dazed and heavy from his sleep.

The thought crossed Felix's mind that he might find a spring somewhere on the island, so he immediately started up the hill. When he reached the top, he stopped. The sun hadn't set completely, but it was gone as a disk. Instead, there was a huge wave of what looked like glowing blood rising on the horizon. A faint blue tint flickered over it, similar to the color seen in flames. The dark waters mirrored the glow, and the surrounding yellow mist was filled with it. Although he was briefly taken aback, Felix didn't pay much attention to these sights; he was still groggy and sluggish from his sleep.

He went on, looking for a spring, sometimes walking on firm ground, sometimes sinking to the ankle in a friable soil like black sand. The ground looked, indeed, as if it had been burnt, but there were no charred stumps of timber such as he had seen on the sites of forest fires. The extreme dreariness seemed to oppress his spirits, and he went on and on in a heavy waking dream. Descending into a plain, he lost sight of the flaming sunset and the black waters. In the level plain the desolation was yet more marked; there was not a grass-blade or plant; the surface was hard, black, and burned, resembling iron, and indeed in places it resounded to his feet, though he supposed that was the echo from hollow passages beneath.

He kept going, searching for a spring, sometimes walking on solid ground, other times sinking to his ankles in loose soil that felt like black sand. The ground really did look burnt, but there weren’t any charred tree stumps like those he had seen after forest fires. The overwhelming bleakness seemed to weigh down his spirits, and he continued in a heavy, dreamlike state. As he descended into a flat area, he lost sight of the blazing sunset and the dark waters. In the flat terrain, the desolation was even more pronounced; there wasn’t a single blade of grass or plant; the surface was hard, black, and scorched, looking like iron, and in some places it echoed beneath his feet, though he assumed that was just the sound of hollow spaces underground.

Several times he shook himself, straightened himself up, and endeavoured to throw off the sense of drowsy weight which increased upon him. He could not do so; he walked with bent back, and crept, as it were, over the iron land which radiated heat. A shimmer like that of water appeared in front; he quickened his pace, but could not get to it, and realized presently that it was a mirage which receded as he advanced. There was no pleasant summer twilight; the sunset was succeeded by an indefinite gloom, and while this shadow hung overhead the yellow vapour around was faintly radiant. Felix suddenly stopped, having stepped, as he thought, on a skeleton.

Several times, he shook himself, stood up straight, and tried to shake off the heavy feeling of drowsiness that kept weighing him down. He couldn’t manage it; he walked hunched over and crept along the heat-soaked ground. A shimmer like water appeared ahead; he picked up his pace but couldn’t reach it and soon realized it was a mirage that pulled away as he moved forward. There was no nice summer twilight; the sunset gave way to an indistinct darkness, and while this shadow loomed overhead, the yellow mist around him had a faint glow. Felix suddenly stopped, believing he had stepped on a skeleton.

Another glance, however, showed that it was merely the impression of one, the actual bones had long since disappeared. The ribs, the skull, and limbs were drawn on the black ground in white lines as if it had been done with a broad piece of chalk. Close by he found three or four more, intertangled and superimposed as if the unhappy beings had fallen partly across each other, and in that position had mouldered away leaving nothing but their outline. From among a variety of objects that were scattered about Felix picked up something that shone; it was a diamond bracelet of one large stone, and a small square of blue china tile with a curious heraldic animal drawn on it. Evidently these had belonged to one or other of the party who had perished.

Another look, though, revealed that it was just the outline of someone; the actual bones had long since vanished. The ribs, skull, and limbs were sketched on the black ground in white lines as if done with a thick piece of chalk. Nearby, he found three or four more, tangled and layered as if the unfortunate people had fallen partially atop one another and, in that position, had decayed away, leaving only their outlines. Among various scattered objects, Felix picked up something shiny; it was a diamond bracelet with one large stone and a small square of blue ceramic tile with a strange heraldic animal drawn on it. Clearly, these items belonged to one of the group that had perished.

Though startled at the first sight, it was curious that Felix felt so little horror; the idea did not occur to him that he was in danger as these had been. Inhaling the gaseous emanations from the soil and contained in the yellow vapour, he had become narcotized, and moved as if under the influence of opium, while wide awake, and capable of rational conduct. His senses were deadened, and did not carry the usual vivid impression to the mind; he saw things as if they were afar off. Accidentally looking back, he found that his footmarks, as far as he could see, shone with a phosphoric light like that of "touchwood" in the dark. Near at hand they did not shine; the appearance did not come till some few minutes had elapsed. His track was visible behind till the vapour hid it. As the evening drew on the vapour became more luminous, and somewhat resembled an aurora.

Though startled at first, it was strange that Felix felt so little fear; he didn't think he was in danger like the others had. Breathing in the gas from the ground and the yellow mist, he had become dazed, moving as if he were under the influence of opium, while still being wide awake and capable of rational thought. His senses were dulled, and he didn’t perceive things with the usual clarity; he saw things as if they were far away. Accidentally glancing back, he noticed that his footprints, as far as he could see, glowed with a phosphorescent light like "touchwood" in the dark. Up close, they didn’t shine; the glow appeared only after a few minutes. His path was visible behind him until the mist obscured it. As evening approached, the mist became more luminous, resembling an aurora.

Still anxious for water, he proceeded as straight ahead as he could, and shortly became conscious of an indefinite cloud which kept pace with him on either side. When he turned to look at either of the clouds, the one looked at disappeared. It was not condensed enough to be visible to direct vision, yet he was aware of it from the corner of his eye. Shapeless and threatening, the gloomy thickness of the air floated beside him like the vague monster of a dream. Sometimes he fancied that he saw an arm or a limb among the folds of the cloud, or an approach to a face; the instant he looked it vanished. Marching at each hand these vapours bore him horrible company.

Still desperate for water, he moved forward as straight as he could, soon becoming aware of an indistinct cloud keeping pace with him on either side. Whenever he turned to look at one of the clouds, the one he focused on would disappear. It wasn’t dense enough to be seen directly, but he sensed it from the corner of his eye. Shapeless and menacing, the thick, gloomy air floated beside him like a vague monster from a dream. Sometimes, he imagined he saw an arm or a limb among the folds of the cloud, or a hint of a face; the moment he looked directly at it, it vanished. Marching on either side, these vapors provided him with a terrifying presence.

His brain became unsteady, and flickering things moved about him; yet, though alarmed, he was not afraid; his senses were not acute enough for fear. The heat increased; his hands were intolerably hot as if he had been in a fever, he panted; but did not perspire. A dry heat like an oven burned his blood in his veins. His head felt enlarged, and his eyes seemed alight; he could see these two globes of phosphoric light under his brows. They seemed to stand out so that he could see them. He thought his path straight, it was really curved; nor did he know that he staggered as he walked.

His mind felt unsteady, and strange flickering things moved around him; yet, even though he was startled, he wasn't scared; his senses weren't sharp enough for fear. The heat grew stronger; his hands felt unbearably hot as if he had a fever, and he was breathless, but he didn't sweat. A dry, oven-like heat burned his blood in his veins. His head felt swollen, and his eyes seemed to glow; he could see two glowing orbs of light under his brows. They stood out enough for him to notice them. He thought his path was straight, but it was actually curved; he also didn't realize that he was staggering as he walked.

Presently a white object appeared ahead; and on coming to it, he found it was a wall, white as snow, with some kind of crystal. He touched it, when the wall fell immediately, with a crushing sound as if pulverised, and disappeared in a vast cavern at his feet. Beyond this chasm he came to more walls like those of houses, such as would be left if the roofs fell in. He carefully avoided touching them, for they seemed as brittle as glass, and merely a white powder having no consistency at all. As he advanced these remnants of buildings increased in number, so that he had to wind in and out round them. In some places the crystallized wall had fallen of itself, and he could see down into the cavern; for the house had either been built partly underground, or, which was more probable, the ground had risen. Whether the walls had been of bricks or stone or other material he could not tell; they were now like salt.

Currently, a white object appeared in front of him; and when he got closer, he realized it was a wall, as white as snow, made of some kind of crystal. He touched it, and the wall immediately collapsed with a loud crashing sound, as if it had been crushed to dust, and vanished into a large cavern at his feet. Beyond this gap, he encountered more walls resembling those of houses, similar to what would be left if the roofs had caved in. He carefully avoided touching them, as they seemed as fragile as glass, reduced to nothing but a white powder with no solidity. As he moved forward, the remnants of buildings multiplied, forcing him to navigate around them. In some areas, the crystallized wall had crumbled on its own, allowing him to see down into the cavern; either the house had been partially built underground, or, more likely, the ground had risen. He couldn't tell whether the walls were made of bricks, stone, or other materials; they now looked like salt.

Soon wearying of winding round these walls, Felix returned and retraced his steps till he was outside the place, and then went on towards the left. Not long after, as he still walked in a dream and without feeling his feet, he descended a slight slope and found the ground change in colour from black to a dull red. In his dazed state he had taken several steps into this red before he noticed that it was liquid, unctuous and slimy, like a thick oil. It deepened rapidly and was already over his shoes; he returned to the black shore and stood looking out over the water, if such it could be called.

Soon getting tired of moving around these walls, Felix turned back and retraced his steps until he was outside the place, then headed to the left. Not long after, still lost in thought and not really aware of his feet, he went down a slight slope and noticed the ground change color from black to a dull red. In his dazed state, he had taken several steps into this red before realizing it was liquid, greasy, and slimy, like thick oil. It quickly deepened and was already over his shoes; he returned to the black shore and stood looking out over the water, if it could even be called that.

The luminous yellow vapour had now risen a height of ten or fifteen feet, and formed a roof both over the land and over the red water, under which it was possible to see for a great distance. The surface of the red oil or viscid liquid was perfectly smooth, and, indeed, it did not seem as if any wind could rouse a wave on it, much less that a swell should be left after the gale had gone down. Disappointed in his search for water to drink, Felix mechanically turned to go back.

The bright yellow vapor had now risen to a height of ten or fifteen feet, forming a ceiling over the land and the red water, under which it was possible to see far into the distance. The surface of the red oil or thick liquid was completely smooth, and it really seemed like no wind could stir up a wave on it, let alone leave a swell after the storm had passed. Disappointed in his search for drinking water, Felix turned to head back without thinking.

He followed his luminous footmarks, which he could see a long way before him. His trail curved so much that he made many short cuts across the winding line he had left. His weariness was now so intense that all feeling had departed. His feet, his limbs, his arms, and hands were numbed. The subtle poison of the emanations from the earth had begun to deaden his nerves. It seemed a full hour or more to him till he reached the spot where the skeletons were drawn in white upon the ground.

He followed his bright footprints, which he could see far ahead of him. His trail curved so much that he took many shortcuts across the winding line he had left. His exhaustion was so intense that he could no longer feel anything. His feet, limbs, arms, and hands were numb. The subtle poison from the earth’s emissions had started to dull his nerves. It felt like it took him a full hour or more to get to the place where the skeletons were outlined in white on the ground.

He passed a few yards to one side of them, and stumbled over a heap of something which he did not observe, as it was black like the level ground. It emitted a metallic sound, and looking he saw that he had kicked his foot against a great heap of money. The coins were black as ink; he picked up a handful and went on. Hitherto Felix had accepted all that he saw as something so strange as to be unaccountable. During his advance into this region in the canoe he had in fact become slowly stupefied by the poisonous vapour he had inhaled. His mind was partly in abeyance; it acted, but only after some time had elapsed. He now at last began to realize his position; the finding of the heap of blackened money touched a chord of memory. These skeletons were the miserable relics of men who had ventured, in search of ancient treasures, into the deadly marshes over the site of the mightiest city of former days. The deserted and utterly extinct city of London was under his feet.

He walked a few yards to one side of them and tripped over a pile of something he didn’t notice because it was as black as the ground. It made a clinking sound, and when he looked, he saw he had kicked a huge pile of money. The coins were as black as ink; he picked up a handful and kept going. Up until now, Felix had taken everything he saw as so strange that it was hard to explain. While paddling into this area in the canoe, he had gradually become dazed by the toxic fumes he had breathed in. His mind was partially on hold; it worked, but only after a delay. Now, he finally started to grasp his situation; finding the heap of blackened money triggered a memory. These skeletons were the sad remnants of men who had ventured in search of ancient treasures into the deadly swamps over the ruins of the mightiest city of the past. The abandoned and completely extinct city of London was beneath his feet.

He had penetrated into the midst of that dreadful place, of which he had heard many a tradition: how the earth was poison, the water poison, the air poison, the very light of heaven, falling through such an atmosphere, poison. There were said to be places where the earth was on fire and belched forth sulphurous fumes, supposed to be from the combustion of the enormous stores of strange and unknown chemicals collected by the wonderful people of those times. Upon the surface of the water there was a greenish-yellow oil, to touch which was death to any creature; it was the very essence of corruption. Sometimes it floated before the wind, and fragments became attached to reeds or flags far from the place itself. If a moorhen or duck chanced to rub the reed, and but one drop stuck to its feathers, it forthwith died. Of the red water he had not heard, nor of the black, into which he had unwittingly sailed.

He had ventured into the heart of that terrifying place, about which he had heard many stories: how the soil was toxic, the water toxic, the air toxic, and even the very light from the sky, filtered through such an atmosphere, was toxic. There were said to be areas where the ground was ablaze, releasing sulfurous fumes, supposedly from the burning of vast amounts of strange and unknown chemicals collected by the extraordinary people from those times. On the surface of the water, there was a greenish-yellow oil, which meant death to any creature that touched it; it was the pure essence of decay. Sometimes it drifted with the wind, and bits would cling to reeds or flags far from its original location. If a moorhen or a duck happened to brush against a reed and even one drop stuck to its feathers, it would die immediately. He had not heard about the red water or the black water into which he had unknowingly sailed.

Ghastly beings haunted the site of so many crimes, shapeless monsters, hovering by night, and weaving a fearful dance. Frequently they caught fire, as it seemed, and burned as they flew or floated in the air. Remembering these stories, which in part, at least, now seemed to be true, Felix glanced aside, where the cloud still kept pace with him, and involuntarily put his hands to his ears lest the darkness of the air should whisper some horror of old times. The earth on which he walked, the black earth, leaving phosphoric footmarks behind him, was composed of the mouldered bodies of millions of men who had passed away in the centuries during which the city existed. He shuddered as he moved; he hastened, yet could not go fast, his numbed limbs would not permit him.

Ghastly beings haunted the site of so many crimes, formless monsters floating at night and performing a frightening dance. They often seemed to catch fire, burning as they flew or hovered in the air. Remembering these stories, which now felt partly real, Felix glanced aside, where the cloud still followed him, and instinctively put his hands to his ears to block out any whispers of old horrors. The ground he walked on, the dark earth that left glowing footprints behind him, was made up of the decayed bodies of millions who had died over the centuries the city had existed. He shuddered as he moved; he hurried, yet couldn't go fast, his stiff limbs wouldn't allow it.

He dreaded lest he should fall and sleep, and wake no more, like the searchers after treasure; treasure which they had found only to lose for ever. He looked around, supposing that he might see the gleaming head and shoulders of the half-buried giant, of which he recollected he had been told. The giant was punished for some crime by being buried to the chest in the earth; fire incessantly consumed his head and played about it, yet it was not destroyed. The learned thought, if such a thing really existed, that it must be the upper part of an ancient brazen statue, kept bright by the action of acid in the atmosphere, and shining with reflected light. Felix did not see it, and shortly afterwards surmounted the hill, and looked down upon his canoe. It was on fire!

He was terrified that he might fall asleep and never wake up again, like treasure hunters who find something valuable only to lose it forever. He glanced around, hoping to catch a glimpse of the gleaming head and shoulders of the half-buried giant he remembered hearing about. The giant was punished for some crime by being buried up to his chest in the ground; fire constantly consumed his head and flickered around it, yet it remained unharmed. Scholars believed that if such a thing really existed, it must be the top part of an ancient bronze statue, kept shiny by the acid in the atmosphere and reflecting light. Felix didn’t see it, and soon after climbed over the hill and looked down at his canoe. It was on fire!


CHAPTER XXIV
FIERY VAPOURS


Felix tried to run, but his feet would not rise from the ground; his limbs were numb as in a nightmare; he could not get there. His body would not obey his will. In reality he did move, but more slowly than when he walked. By degrees approaching the canoe his alarm subsided, for although it burned it was not injured; the canvas of the sail was not even scorched. When he got to it the flames had disappeared; like Jack-o'-the-lantern, the phosphoric fire receded from him. With all his strength he strove to launch her, yet paused, for over the surface of the black water, now smooth and waveless, played immense curling flames, stretching out like endless serpents, weaving, winding, rolling over each other. Suddenly they contracted into a ball, which shone with a steady light, and was as large as the full moon. The ball swept along, rose a little, and from it flew out long streamers till it was unwound in fiery threads.

Felix tried to run, but his feet wouldn’t lift off the ground; his limbs felt numb like in a nightmare; he couldn’t move fast enough. His body wouldn’t follow his commands. In reality, he did move, but slower than when he walked. Gradually getting closer to the canoe, his fear lessened because, although it was burning, it wasn’t damaged; the sail’s canvas wasn’t even scorched. When he reached it, the flames had vanished; like a Jack-o'-lantern, the eerie fire faded away from him. With all his strength, he struggled to launch it, but hesitated, as enormous curling flames danced over the smooth, black water, stretching out like endless serpents, weaving, winding, and rolling over each other. Suddenly, they contracted into a glowing ball, shining steadily and as large as a full moon. The ball moved along, rose slightly, and from it shot out long streamers until it unwound into fiery threads.

But remembering that the flames had not even scorched the canvas, he pushed the canoe afloat, determined at any risk to leave this dreadful place. To his joy he felt a faint air rising; it cooled his forehead, but was not enough to fill the sail. He paddled with all the strength he had left. The air seemed to come from exactly the opposite direction to what it had previously blown, some point of east he supposed. Labour as hard as he would, the canoe moved slowly, being so heavy. It seemed as if the black water was thick and clung to her, retarding motion. Still, he did move, and in time (it seemed, indeed, a time) he left the island, which disappeared in the luminous vapours. Uncertain as to the direction, he got his compass, but it would not act; the needle had no life, it swung and came to rest, pointing any way as it chanced. It was demagnetized. Felix resolved to trust to the wind, which he was certain blew from the opposite quarter, and would therefore carry him out. The stars he could not see for the vapour, which formed a roof above him.

But remembering that the flames hadn't even singed the canvas, he pushed the canoe into the water, determined to leave this horrible place at any cost. To his relief, he felt a slight breeze; it cooled his forehead but wasn’t strong enough to fill the sail. He paddled with all the strength he had left. The wind seemed to be coming from the exact opposite direction it had before, probably from the east. No matter how hard he tried, the canoe moved slowly because it was so heavy. It felt like the dark water was thick and clinging to it, slowing him down. Still, he did move, and eventually (it felt like a long time) he left the island, which faded into the glowing mist. Unsure of where to go, he pulled out his compass, but it wouldn’t work; the needle was dead, swinging around and settling randomly. It had been demagnetized. Felix decided to rely on the wind, which he was sure was blowing from the opposite direction, and would carry him away. He couldn’t see the stars because of the mist that formed a ceiling above him.

The wind was rising, but in uncertain gusts; however, he hoisted the sail, and floated slowly before it. Nothing but excitement could have kept him awake. Reclining in the canoe, he watched the serpent-like flames playing over the surface, and forced himself by sheer power of will not to sleep. The two dark clouds which had accompanied him to the shore now faded away, and the cooling wind enabled him to bear up better against his parching thirst. His hope was to reach the clear and beautiful Lake; his dread that in the uncertain light he might strike a concealed sandbank and become firmly fixed.

The wind was picking up, but it was really erratic; still, he raised the sail and drifted slowly with it. Only excitement kept him from dozing off. Leaning back in the canoe, he watched the snake-like flames dancing on the water’s surface and made himself stay awake by sheer willpower. The two dark clouds that had followed him to the shore were now gone, and the cool breeze helped him cope with his raging thirst. He hoped to reach the clear, beautiful lake, but he was afraid that in the dim light he might hit a hidden sandbank and get stuck.

Twice he passed islands, distinguishable as masses of visible darkness. While the twisted flames played up to the shore, and the luminous vapour overhung the ground, the island itself appeared as a black mass. The wind became by degrees steadier, and the canoe shot swiftly over the water. His hopes rose; he sat up and kept a keener look-out ahead. All at once the canoe shook as if she had struck a rock. She vibrated from one end to the other, and stopped for a moment in her course. Felix sprang up alarmed. At the same instant a bellowing noise reached him, succeeded by a frightful belching and roaring, as if a volcano had burst forth under the surface of the water; he looked back but could see nothing. The canoe had not touched ground; she sailed as rapidly as before.

Twice he passed islands that looked like dark shapes against the water. As the twisted flames flickered along the shore and a glowing mist hung over the ground, the island itself appeared as a solid mass of blackness. Gradually, the wind picked up, and the canoe sped swiftly across the water. His hopes lifted; he sat up and kept a closer watch ahead. Suddenly, the canoe jolted as if it had hit a rock. It shook from one end to the other and paused for a moment. Felix jumped up, startled. At that moment, a loud roaring sound reached him, followed by a terrifying rumble and hiss, as if a volcano had erupted beneath the surface of the water; he looked back but saw nothing. The canoe hadn’t touched the ground; it continued to glide as quickly as before.

Again the shock, and again the hideous roaring, as if some force beneath the water were forcing itself up, vast bubbles rising and turning. Fortunately it was at a great distance. Hardly was it silent before it was reiterated for the third time. Next Felix felt the canoe heave up, and he was aware that a large roller had passed under him. A second and a third followed. They were without crests, and were not raised by the wind; they obviously started from the scene of the disturbance. Soon afterwards the canoe moved quicker, and he detected a strong current setting in the direction he was sailing.

Again, there was the shock, and once more the terrifying roaring, as if some force beneath the water was pushing its way up, huge bubbles rising and swirling. Fortunately, it was far away. Just as it fell silent, the noise came back for a third time. Next, Felix felt the canoe lift, realizing that a large wave had passed underneath him. A second and a third followed. They had no crests and weren’t stirred up by the wind; they clearly originated from where the disturbance was happening. Soon after, the canoe began to move faster, and he noticed a strong current pulling in the direction he was heading.

The noise did not recur, nor did any more rollers pass under. Felix felt better and less dazed, but his weariness and sleepiness increased every moment. He fancied that the serpent flames were less brilliant and farther apart, and that the luminous vapour was thinner. How long he sat at the rudder he could not tell; he noticed that it seemed to grow darker, the serpent flames faded away, and the luminous vapour was succeeded by something like the natural gloom of night. At last he saw a star overhead, and hailed it with joy. He thought of Aurora; the next instant he fell back in the canoe firm asleep.

The noise didn't happen again, and no more rollers passed beneath. Felix felt better and less confused, but his tiredness and sleepiness kept increasing. He thought the serpent flames weren’t as bright and were spaced farther apart, and that the glowing mist was getting thinner. He wasn’t sure how long he sat at the rudder; he noticed that it seemed to get darker, the serpent flames faded away, and the glowing mist was replaced by something like the natural darkness of night. Finally, he saw a star above him and felt a rush of joy. He thought of Aurora; the next moment, he fell back in the canoe and was fast asleep.

His arm, however, still retained the rudder-paddle in position, so that the canoe sped on with equal swiftness. She would have struck more than one of the sandbanks and islets had it not been for the strong current that was running. Instead of carrying her against the banks this warded her off, for it drew her between the islets in the channels where it ran fastest, and the undertow, where it struck the shore, bore her back from the land. Driving before the wind, the canoe swept onward steadily to the west. In an hour it had passed the line of the black water, and entered the sweet Lake. Another hour and all trace of the marshes had utterly disappeared, the last faint glow of the vapour had vanished. The dawn of the coming summer's day appeared, and the sky became a lovely azure. The canoe sailed on, but Felix remained immovable in slumber.

His arm, however, still held the paddle in place, so the canoe kept moving swiftly. It would have hit several sandbanks and islands if it weren’t for the strong current. Instead of pushing her against the banks, the current pulled her through the channels between the islands where it flowed fastest, and the undertow that hit the shore kept her away from land. With the wind at her back, the canoe continued steadily westward. In an hour, it had crossed the line of the dark water and entered the clear lake. Another hour passed, and all signs of the marshes had completely vanished, the last faint glow of the mist disappeared. The dawn of the approaching summer day broke, and the sky turned a beautiful blue. The canoe sailed on, but Felix remained still in his sleep.

Long since the strong current had ceased, it scarcely extended into the sweet waters, and the wind only impelled the canoe. As the sun rose the breeze gradually fell away, and in an hour or so there was only a light air. The canoe had left most of the islets and was approaching the open Lake when, as she passed almost the last, the yard caught the overhanging branch of a willow, the canoe swung round and grounded gently under the shadow of the tree. For some time the little wavelets beat against the side of the boat; gradually they ceased, and the clear and beautiful water became still. Felix slept till nearly noon, when he awoke and sat up. At the sudden movement a pike struck, and two moorhens scuttled out of the water into the grass on the shore. A thrush was singing sweetly, whitethroats were busy in the bushes, and swallows swept by overhead.

Long after the strong current had stopped, it barely reached the calm waters, and the wind only moved the canoe. As the sun rose, the breeze slowly faded, and in about an hour, there was just a light air. The canoe had passed most of the islets and was nearing the open Lake when, as it passed almost the last one, the sail caught an overhanging branch of a willow, causing the canoe to swing around and settle gently in the shade of the tree. For a while, the little waves lapped against the side of the boat; gradually, they quieted down, and the clear, beautiful water became still. Felix slept until nearly noon, when he woke up and sat up. At his sudden movement, a pike darted away, and two moorhens hurried out of the water into the grass on the shore. A thrush was singing sweetly, whitethroats were active in the bushes, and swallows swooped by overhead.

Felix drew a long deep breath of intense relief; it was like awakening in Paradise. He snatched up a cup, dipped, and satisfied his craving thirst, then washed his hands over the side, and threw the water over his face. But when he came to stand up and move, he found that his limbs were almost powerless. Like a child he tottered, his joints had no strength, his legs tingled as if they had been benumbed. He was so weak he crawled on all fours along to the mast, furled the sail kneeling, and dragged himself rather than stepped ashore with the painter. The instant he had fastened the rope to a branch, he threw himself at full length on the grass, and grasped a handful of it. Merely to touch the grass after such an experience was intense delight.

Felix took a deep breath of relief, feeling like he had just woken up in Paradise. He grabbed a cup, filled it, and quenched his thirst, then washed his hands in the water and splashed his face. But when he tried to stand up and move, he realized his limbs were nearly powerless. Like a child, he wobbled; his joints felt weak, and his legs tingled as if they were asleep. He was so weak that he crawled on all fours to the mast, knelt to stow the sail, and dragged himself rather than walked ashore with the line. As soon as he tied the rope to a branch, he collapsed on the grass and grabbed a handful of it. Just touching the grass after everything he had been through felt incredibly satisfying.

The song of the thrush, the chatter of the whitethroats, the sight of a hedge-sparrow, gave him inexpressible pleasure. Lying on the sward he watched the curves traced by the swallows in the sky. From the sedges came the curious cry of the moorhen; a bright kingfisher went by. He rested as he had never rested before. His whole body, his whole being was resigned to rest. It was fully two hours before he rose and crept on all fours into the canoe for food. There was only sufficient left for one meal, but that gave him no concern now he was out of the marshes; he could fish and use his crossbow.

The song of the thrush, the chatter of the whitethroats, and the sight of a hedge-sparrow brought him immense joy. Lying on the grass, he watched the swallows trace their curves in the sky. From the reeds, he heard the curious call of the moorhen as a bright kingfisher flew by. He rested like never before. His whole body and mind were completely relaxed. It was a full two hours before he got up and crawled into the canoe for food. There was only enough left for one meal, but that didn’t bother him now that he was out of the marshes; he could fish and use his crossbow.

He now observed what had escaped him during the night, the canoe was black from end to end. Stem, stern, gunwale, thwart, outrigger, mast and sail were black. The stain did not come off on being touched, it seemed burnt in. As he leaned over the side to dip water, and saw his reflection, he started; his face was black, his clothes were black, his hair black. In his eagerness to drink, the first time, he had noticed nothing. His hands were less dark; contact with the paddle and ropes had partly rubbed it off, he supposed. He washed, but the water did not materially diminish the discoloration.

He now noticed what he had missed during the night: the canoe was completely black. The bow, stern, gunwale, seat, outrigger, mast, and sail were all black. The stain didn’t come off when touched; it seemed burnt in. As he leaned over the side to scoop up some water and saw his reflection, he was taken aback; his face was black, his clothes were black, and his hair was black. In his eagerness to drink the first time, he hadn’t noticed anything. His hands were less dark; he assumed that contact with the paddle and ropes had partially rubbed it off. He washed, but the water didn’t significantly reduce the discoloration.

After eating, he returned to the grass and rested again; and it was not till the sun was sinking that he felt any return of vigour. Still weak, but able now to walk, leaning on a stick, he began to make a camp for the coming night. But a few scraps, the remnant of his former meal, were left; on these he supped after a fashion, and long before the white owl began his rounds Felix was fast asleep on his hunter's hide from the canoe. He found next morning that the island was small, only a few acres; it was well-wooded, dry, and sandy in places. He had little inclination or strength to resume his expedition; he erected a booth of branches, and resolved to stay a few days till his strength returned.

After eating, he went back to the grass and rested again; it wasn't until the sun started to set that he began to feel some energy coming back. Still weak but now able to walk with a stick for support, he started to set up a camp for the night. There were just a few scraps left from his previous meal, and he managed to have a bit of a dinner on those. Long before the white owl started its rounds, Felix was fast asleep on his hunter's hide from the canoe. The next morning, he discovered that the island was small, only a few acres; it was well-wooded, dry, and sandy in some areas. He had little interest or strength to continue his journey, so he built a shelter out of branches and decided to stay for a few days until he regained his strength.

By shooting wildfowl, and fishing, he fared very well, and soon recovered. In two days the discoloration of the skin had faded to an olive tint, which, too, grew fainter. The canoe lost its blackness, and became a rusty colour. By rubbing the coins he had carried away he found they were gold; part of the inscription remained, but he could not read it. The blue china-tile was less injured than the metal; after washing it, it was bright. But the diamond pleased him most; it would be a splendid present for Aurora. Never had he seen anything like it in the palaces; he believe it was twice the size of the largest possessed by any king or prince.

By hunting birds and fishing, he did really well and recovered quickly. In just two days, the discoloration on his skin faded to an olive shade, which continued to lighten. The canoe lost its dark color and turned rusty. When he rubbed the coins he had taken with him, he discovered they were gold; part of the inscription remained, but he couldn't read it. The blue china tile was less damaged than the metal; after cleaning it, it looked bright. But the diamond thrilled him the most; it would make a fantastic gift for Aurora. He had never seen anything like it in the palaces; he believed it was twice the size of the largest owned by any king or prince.

It was as big as his finger-nail, and shone and gleamed in the sunlight, sparkling and reflecting the beams. Its value must be very great. But well he knew how dangerous it would be to exhibit it; on some pretext or other he would be thrown into prison, and the gem seized. It must be hidden with the greatest care till he could produce it in Thyma Castle, when the Baron would protect it. Felix regretted now that he had not searched further; perhaps he might have found other treasures for Aurora; the next instant he repudiated his greed, and was only thankful that he had escaped with his life. He wondered and marvelled that he had done so, it was so well known that almost all who had ventured in had perished.

It was as big as his fingernail, shining and sparkling in the sunlight, reflecting the rays all around. Its worth must have been tremendous. But he knew all too well how risky it would be to show it off; he could easily end up in prison on some excuse, and the gem could be taken from him. It had to be hidden away very carefully until he could present it at Thyma Castle, where the Baron would protect it. Felix wished he had searched more thoroughly; maybe he could have found more treasures for Aurora. But then he pushed aside his greed and felt grateful that he had escaped with his life. He was amazed that he had managed to do so, knowing that nearly everyone who had ventured in had met with their demise.

Reflecting on the circumstances which had accompanied his entrance to the marshes, the migration of the birds seemed almost the most singular. They were evidently flying from some apprehended danger, and that most probably would be in the air. The gale at that time, however, was blowing in a direction which would appear to ensure safety to them; into, and not out of, the poisonous marshes. Did they, then, foresee that it would change? Did they expect it to veer like a cyclone and presently blow east with the same vigour as it then blew west? That would carry the vapour from the inky waters out over the sweet Lake, and might even cause the foul water itself to temporarily encroach on the sweet. The more he thought of it, the more he felt convinced that this was the explanation; and, as a fact, the wind, after dropping, did arise again and blow from the east, though, as it happened, not with nearly the same strength. It fell, too, before long, fortunately for him. Clearly the birds had anticipated a cyclone, and that the wind turning would carry the gases out upon them to their destruction. They had therefore hurried away, and the fishes had done the same.

Thinking back on what had happened when he first entered the marshes, the migration of the birds seemed particularly strange. They were clearly fleeing from some anticipated danger, likely something in the air. At that moment, however, the wind was blowing in a direction that seemed safe for them; into the poisonous marshes, not away from them. Did they somehow know it would change? Did they expect it to shift like a cyclone and soon blow east with the same intensity it was blowing west? That would push the fumes from the dark waters over the clean Lake, and might even temporarily cause the contaminated water to invade the clean one. The more he considered it, the more he believed this was the reason; and indeed, after the wind died down, it picked up again and blew from the east, though not nearly as strongly. It calmed down soon after, which was lucky for him. Clearly, the birds had foreseen a cyclone, expecting that the wind shift would bring the gases toward them, leading to their doom. They had therefore rushed away, and the fish had done the same.

The velocity of the gale which had carried him into the black waters had proved his safety, by driving before it the thicker and most poisonous portion of the vapour, compressing it towards the east, so that he had entered the dreaded precincts under favourable conditions. When it dropped, while he was on the black island, he soon began to feel the effect of the gases rising imperceptibly from the soil, and had he not had the good fortune to escape so soon, no doubt he would have fallen a victim. He could not congratulate himself sufficiently upon his good fortune. The other circumstances appeared to be due to the decay of the ancient city, to the decomposition of accumulated matter, to phosphorescence and gaseous exhalations. The black rocks that crumbled at a touch were doubtless the remains of ancient buildings saturated with the dark water and vapours. Inland similar remains were white, and resembled salt.

The speed of the storm that had carried him into the dark waters had actually saved him by pushing away the thickest and most toxic part of the mist, forcing it eastward, which allowed him to enter the haunted area under more favorable conditions. When the wind died down while he was on the dark island, he quickly started to feel the effects of the gases slowly rising from the ground, and if he hadn't managed to escape so soon, he definitely would have become a victim. He couldn't praise his luck enough. The other factors seemed to stem from the decay of the ancient city, the breakdown of accumulated matter, phosphorescence, and gas emissions. The crumbling black rocks he touched were likely remnants of ancient buildings soaked in the dark water and vapors. In contrast, the inland remains were white and looked like salt.

But the great explosions which occurred as he was leaving, and which sent heavy rollers after him, were not easily understood, till he remembered that in Sylvester's "Book of Natural Things" it was related that "the ancient city had been undermined with vast conduits, sewers, and tunnels, and that these communicated with the sea". It had been much disputed whether the sea did or did not still send its tides up to the site of the old quays. Felix now thought that the explosions were due to compressed air, or more probably to gases met with by the ascending tide.

But the loud explosions that happened as he was leaving, and that sent heavy waves after him, were not easy to understand until he recalled that in Sylvester's "Book of Natural Things," it mentioned that "the ancient city had been undermined with vast conduits, sewers, and tunnels, and that these connected with the sea." It had been heavily debated whether the sea still sent its tides up to where the old quays were. Felix now thought that the explosions were caused by compressed air, or more likely by gases encountered by the rising tide.


CHAPTER XXV
THE SHEPHERDS


For four days Felix remained on the island recovering his strength. By degrees the memory of the scenes he had witnessed grew less vivid, and his nerves regained their tone. The fifth morning he sailed again, making due south with a gentle breeze from the west, which suited the canoe very well. He considered that he was now at the eastern extremity of the Lake, and that by sailing south he should presently reach the place where the shore turned to the east again. The sharp prow of the canoe cut swiftly through the waves, a light spray flew occasionally in his face, and the wind blew pleasantly. In the cloudless sky swallows and swifts were wheeling, and on the water half a dozen mallards moved aside to let him pass.

For four days, Felix stayed on the island recovering his strength. Gradually, the memories of the scenes he had seen became less vivid, and his nerves recovered. On the fifth morning, he set sail again, heading due south with a gentle breeze from the west, which was perfect for the canoe. He believed he was now at the eastern edge of the lake, and by sailing south, he would soon reach the point where the shore turned east once more. The sharp bow of the canoe sliced smoothly through the waves, a light spray occasionally splashing his face, and the wind felt pleasant. In the clear sky, swallows and swifts were soaring, and on the water, half a dozen mallards moved aside to let him pass.

About two hours after he started he encountered a mist, which came softly over the surface of the water with the wind, and in an instant shut out all view. Even the sun was scarcely visible. It was very warm, and left no moisture. In five minutes he passed through and emerged again in the bright sunlight. These dry, warm mists are frequently seen on the Lake in summer, and are believed to portend a continuance of fine weather.

About two hours after he started, he ran into a mist that gently rolled over the surface of the water with the wind, instantly blocking all visibility. Even the sun was hardly noticeable. It was very warm, without any dampness. In just five minutes, he passed through and came out again into the bright sunlight. These warm, dry mists are often seen on the Lake in summer and are thought to indicate that good weather will continue.

Felix kept a good distance from the mainland, which was hilly and wooded, and with few islands. Presently he observed in the extreme distance, on his right hand, a line of mountainous hills, which he supposed to be the southern shore of the Lake, and that he was sailing into a gulf or bay. He debated with himself whether he should alter his course and work across to the mountains, or to continue to trace the shore. Unless he did trace the shore, he could scarcely say that he had circumnavigated the Lake, as he would leave this great bay unexplored. He continued, therefore, to sail directly south.

Felix kept a good distance from the mainland, which was hilly and wooded, with only a few islands. He noticed far off to his right a line of mountains, which he thought was the southern shore of the lake, and that he was sailing into a bay. He wondered whether he should change his course and head toward the mountains or keep following the shore. If he didn't follow the shore, he could hardly claim he had sailed around the lake, since he would leave this big bay unexplored. So, he continued to sail directly south.

The wind freshened towards noon, and the canoe flew at a great pace. Twice he passed through similar mists. There were now no islands at all, but a line of low chalk cliffs marked the shore. Considering that it must be deep, and safe to do so, Felix bore in closer to look at the land. Woods ran along the hills right to the verge of the cliff, but he saw no signs of inhabitants, no smoke, boat, or house. The sound of the surf beating on the beach was audible, though the waves were not large. High over the cliff he noted a kite soaring, with forked tail, at a great height.

The wind picked up around noon, and the canoe moved swiftly. He passed through the same kind of fog twice. There were no islands anymore, just a stretch of low chalk cliffs along the shore. Since it seemed deep enough and safe, Felix paddled closer to examine the land. Woods covered the hills all the way to the edge of the cliff, but he didn’t see any signs of people—no smoke, boats, or houses. He could hear the sound of the surf crashing on the beach, even though the waves weren’t big. High above the cliff, he spotted a kite soaring at a great height, its tail forked.

Immediately afterwards he ran into another mist or vapour, thicker, if anything, and which quite obscured his view. It seemed like a great cloud on the surface of the water, and broader than those he had previously entered. Suddenly the canoe stopped with a tremendous jerk, which pitched him forward on his knees, the mast cracked, and there was a noise of splitting wood. As soon as he could get up, Felix saw, to his bitter sorrow, that the canoe had split longitudinally; the water came up through the split, and the boat was held together only by the beams of the outrigger. He had run aground on a large sharp flint embedded in a chalk floor, which had split the poplar wood of the canoe like an axe. The voyage was over, for the least strain would cause the canoe to part in two, and if she were washed off the ground she would be water-logged. In half a minute the mist passed, leaving him in the bright day, shipwrecked.

Immediately after, he ran into another mist or vapor, even thicker, which completely blocked his view. It looked like a big cloud on the surface of the water, wider than those he had previously entered. Suddenly, the canoe stopped with a huge jolt, throwing him forward onto his knees, the mast cracked, and he heard the sound of wood splitting. As soon as he managed to get up, Felix, to his great distress, saw that the canoe had split lengthwise; water was streaming in through the crack, and the boat was held together only by the beams of the outrigger. He had run aground on a large sharp flint stuck in a chalk bottom, which had split the poplar wood of the canoe like an axe. The journey was over, as even the slightest pressure would cause the canoe to break in two, and if it got washed off the ground, it would be waterlogged. In less than a minute, the mist cleared, leaving him in bright daylight, shipwrecked.

Felix now saw that the waters were white with suspended chalk, and sounding with the paddle, found that the depth was but a few inches. He had driven at full speed on a reef. There was no danger, for the distance to the shore was hardly two hundred yards, and judging by the appearance of the water, it was shallow all the way. But his canoe, the product of so much labour, and in which he had voyaged so far, his canoe was destroyed. He could not repair her; he doubted whether it could have been done successfully even at home with Oliver to help him. He could sail no farther; there was nothing for it but to get ashore and travel on foot. If the wind rose higher, the waves would soon break clean over her, and she would go to pieces.

Felix now noticed that the water was cloudy with chalk, and when he checked the depth with the paddle, he found it to be only a few inches. He had crashed into a reef at full speed. There was no immediate danger, as the shore was hardly two hundred yards away, and judging by how the water looked, it was likely shallow the whole way. However, his canoe, which he had worked so hard to build and had traveled so far in, was now destroyed. He couldn't fix it; he doubted he could have repaired it successfully even at home with Oliver's help. He couldn't go any further by sailing; he had no choice but to get to shore and continue on foot. If the wind picked up, the waves would soon crash over the canoe and break it apart.

With a heavy heart, Felix took his paddle and stepped overboard. Feeling with the paddle, he plumbed the depth in front of him, and, as he expected, walked all the way to the shore, no deeper than his knees. This was fortunate, as it enabled him to convey his things to land without loss. He wrapped up the tools and manuscripts in one of his hunter's hides. When the whole cargo was landed, he sat down sorrowfully at the foot of the cliff, and looked out at the broken mast and sail, still flapping uselessly in the breeze.

With a heavy heart, Felix picked up his paddle and stepped into the water. Feeling around with the paddle, he checked the depth in front of him and, as he expected, walked all the way to the shore, with the water only reaching his knees. This was lucky because it allowed him to get his things to land safely. He wrapped his tools and manuscripts in one of his hunting hides. Once everything was on shore, he sat down sadly at the base of the cliff and looked out at the broken mast and sail, still flapping uselessly in the wind.

It was a long time before he recovered himself, and set to work mechanically to bury the crossbow, hunter's hides, tools, and manuscripts, under a heap of pebbles. As the cliff, though low, was perpendicular, he could not scale it, else he would have preferred to conceal them in the woods above. To pile pebbles over them was the best he could do for the present; he intended to return for them when he discovered a path up the cliff. He then started, taking only his bow and arrows.

It took him a while to collect himself, but he eventually got to work, methodically burying the crossbow, hunting hides, tools, and manuscripts under a pile of pebbles. Although the cliff was low, it was steep, so he couldn't climb it; otherwise, he would have preferred to hide them in the woods above. Covering them with pebbles was the best he could do for now; he planned to come back for them once he found a way up the cliff. He then headed out, taking only his bow and arrows.

But no such path was to be found; he walked on and on till weary, and still the cliff ran like a wall on his left hand. After an hour's rest, he started again; and, as the sun was declining, came suddenly to a gap in the cliff, where a grassy sward came down to the shore. It was now too late, and he was too weary, to think of returning for his things that evening. He made a scanty meal, and endeavoured to rest. But the excitement of losing the canoe, the long march since, the lack of good food, all tended to render him restless. Weary, he could not rest, nor move farther. The time passed slowly, the sun sank, the wind ceased; after an interminable time the stars appeared, and still he could not sleep. He had chosen a spot under an oak on the green slope. The night was warm, and even sultry, so that he did not miss his covering, but there was no rest in him. Towards the dawn, which comes very early at that season, he at last slept, with his back to the tree. He awoke with a start in broad daylight, to see a man standing in front of him armed with a long spear.

But no such path could be found; he walked on and on until he was tired, and still the cliff stood like a wall on his left. After resting for an hour, he started again; as the sun was setting, he suddenly came to a gap in the cliff where a grassy area sloped down to the shore. It was now too late, and he was too exhausted, to think about going back for his things that evening. He made a meager meal and tried to rest. But the stress of losing the canoe, the long walk since then, and the lack of decent food all kept him on edge. Though he was tired, he couldn’t find rest or move any farther. Time dragged on, the sun went down, the wind died down; after what felt like forever, the stars came out, and he still couldn’t sleep. He had picked a spot under an oak tree on the green slope. The night was warm and even a bit stuffy, so he didn’t miss having cover, but he couldn’t find any peace. As dawn approached, which comes early at that time of year, he finally fell asleep against the tree. He woke up suddenly in broad daylight to see a man standing in front of him, armed with a long spear.

Felix sprang to his feet, instinctively feeling for his hunting-knife; but he saw in an instant that no injury was meant, for the man was leaning on the shaft of his weapon, and, of course, could, if so he had wished, have run him through while sleeping. They looked at each other for a moment. The stranger was clad in a tunic, and wore a hat of plaited straw. He was very tall and strongly built; his single weapon, a spear of twice his own length. His beard came down on his chest. He spoke to Felix in a dialect the latter did not understand. Felix held out his hand as a token of amity, which the other took. He spoke again. Felix, on his part, tried to explain his shipwreck, when a word the stranger uttered recalled to Felix's memory the peculiar dialect used by the shepherd race on the hills in the neighbourhood of his home.

Felix jumped to his feet, instinctively reaching for his hunting knife; but he quickly realized that no harm was intended, as the man was resting on the shaft of his weapon and could have easily harmed him while he was sleeping if he wanted to. They exchanged glances for a moment. The stranger was dressed in a tunic and wore a hat made of woven straw. He was very tall and muscular, wielding a spear that was twice his own height. His beard hung down to his chest. He spoke to Felix in a language that Felix didn’t understand. Felix extended his hand as a gesture of friendship, which the stranger accepted. The stranger spoke again. Felix, in turn, tried to explain his shipwreck, when one word the stranger said triggered Felix's memory of the unique dialect used by the shepherds in the hills near his home.

He spoke in this dialect, which the stranger in part at least understood, and the sound of which at once rendered him more friendly. By degrees they comprehended each other's meaning the easier, as the shepherd had come the same way and had seen the wreck of the canoe. Felix learned that the shepherd was a scout sent on ahead to see that the road was clear of enemies. His tribe were on the march with their flocks, and to avoid the steep woods and hills which there blocked their course, they had followed the level and open beach at the foot of the cliff, aware, of course, of the gap which Felix had found. While they were talking, Felix saw the cloud of dust raised by the sheep as the flocks wound round a jutting buttress of cliff.

He spoke in this dialect, which the stranger partly understood, and hearing it immediately made him feel more friendly. Gradually, they started to understand each other more easily, as the shepherd had traveled the same route and had witnessed the wreck of the canoe. Felix found out that the shepherd was a scout sent ahead to make sure the road was clear of enemies. His tribe was on the move with their flocks, and to avoid the steep woods and hills that blocked their path, they had taken the flat and open beach at the base of the cliff, of course aware of the gap that Felix had discovered. While they were talking, Felix noticed the cloud of dust raised by the sheep as the flocks rounded a protruding section of the cliff.

His friend explained that they marched in the night and early morning to avoid the heat of the day. Their proposed halting-place was close at hand; he must go on and see that all was clear. Felix accompanied him, and found within the wood at the summit a grassy coombe, where a spring rose. The shepherd threw down his spear, and began to dam up the channel of the spring with stones, flints, and sods of earth, in order to form a pool at which the sheep might drink. Felix assisted him, and the water speedily began to rise.

His friend explained that they marched at night and in the early morning to avoid the heat of the day. Their planned stopping place was nearby; he needed to go ahead and make sure everything was clear. Felix went with him and discovered a grassy hollow within the wood at the top, where a spring bubbled up. The shepherd dropped his spear and started to block the channel of the spring with stones, flints, and clumps of earth to create a pool for the sheep to drink from. Felix helped him, and the water quickly started to rise.

The flocks were not allowed to rush tumultuously to the water; they came in about fifty at a time, each division with its shepherds and their dogs, so that confusion was avoided and all had their share. There were about twenty of these divisions, besides eighty cows and a few goats. They had no horses; their baggage came on the backs of asses.

The flocks weren’t allowed to rush chaotically to the water; they arrived in groups of about fifty at a time, each group accompanied by its shepherds and their dogs, which kept things organized and ensured everyone got their share. There were around twenty of these groups, along with eighty cows and a few goats. They didn’t have horses; their luggage was carried on the backs of donkeys.

After the whole of the flocks and herds had been watered several fires were lit by the women, who in stature and hardihood scarcely differed from the men. Not till this work was over did the others gather about Felix to hear his story. Finding that he was hungry they ran to the baggage for food, and pressed on him a little dark bread, plentiful cheese and butter, dried tongue, and horns of mead. He could not devour a fiftieth part of what these hospitable people brought him. Having nothing else to give them, he took from his pocket one of the gold coins he had brought from the site of the ancient city, and offered it.

After all the flocks and herds had been watered, several fires were lit by the women, who were just as sturdy and resilient as the men. Only after this was finished did the others gather around Felix to hear his story. Realizing he was hungry, they rushed to the baggage for food and offered him some dark bread, plenty of cheese and butter, dried meat, and cups of mead. He could barely eat a tiny fraction of what these generous people brought him. With nothing else to give in return, he took a gold coin from his pocket that he had brought from the site of the ancient city and offered it to them.

They laughed, and made him understand that it was of no value to them; but they passed it from hand to hand, and he noticed that they began to look at him curiously. From its blackened appearance they conjectured whence he had obtained it; one, too, pointed to his shoes, which were still blackened, and appeared to have been scorched. The whole camp now pressed on him, their wonder and interest rising to a great height. With some trouble Felix described his journey over the site of the ancient city, interrupted with constant exclamations, questions, and excited conversation. He told them everything, except about the diamond.

They laughed and made it clear that it had no value to them; but they passed it around, and he noticed that they started to look at him curiously. From its burnt appearance, they guessed where he had gotten it; one person even pointed to his shoes, which were still charred and looked like they had been scorched. The whole camp now crowded around him, their wonder and interest peaking. With some effort, Felix described his journey through the ruins of the ancient city, interrupted by constant exclamations, questions, and excited chatter. He told them everything, except about the diamond.

Their manner towards him perceptibly altered. From the first they had been hospitable; they now became respectful, and even reverent. The elders and their chief, not to be distinguished by dress or ornament from the rest, treated him with ceremony and marked deference. The children were brought to see and even to touch him. So great was their amazement that any one should have escaped from these pestilential vapours, that they attributed it to divine interposition, and looked upon him with some of the awe of superstition. He was asked to stay with them altogether, and to take command of the tribe.

Their attitude towards him clearly changed. At first, they had been welcoming; now, they became respectful and even worshipful. The elders and their leader, who looked just like everyone else in their clothes and decorations, treated him with formality and marked respect. The children were brought to see him and even to touch him. They were so amazed that anyone could have escaped from those sickening mists that they believed it was due to a divine miracle, viewing him with a sense of awe that bordered on superstition. He was invited to stay with them permanently and to lead the tribe.

The latter Felix declined; to stay with them for awhile, at least, he was, of course, willing enough. He mentioned his hidden possessions, and got up to return for them, but they would not permit him. Two men started at once. He gave them the bearings of the spot, and they had not the least doubt but that they should find it, especially as, the wind being still, the canoe would not yet have broken up, and would guide them. The tribe remained in the green coombe the whole day, resting from their long journey. They wearied Felix with questions, still he answered them as copiously as he could; he felt too grateful for their kindness not to satisfy them. His bow was handled, his arrows carried about so that the quiver for the time was empty, and the arrows scattered in twenty hands. He astonished them by exhibiting his skill with the weapon, striking a tree with an arrow at nearly three hundred yards.

Felix declined to stay with them for a while, but he was definitely willing. He mentioned his hidden belongings and got up to go back for them, but they wouldn’t let him. Two men set off right away. He pointed out where to find the spot, and they were completely confident they would locate it, especially since the wind was calm, meaning the canoe wouldn’t have broken apart yet and would lead the way. The tribe stayed in the green valley all day, resting from their long journey. They overwhelmed Felix with questions, but he answered them as thoroughly as he could; he felt too grateful for their kindness not to satisfy their curiosity. He handled his bow, and the arrows were carried around so the quiver was empty, with the arrows scattered among twenty hands. He impressed them by demonstrating his skill with the bow, hitting a tree with an arrow from nearly three hundred yards away.

Though familiar, of course, with the bow, they had never seen shooting like that, nor, indeed, any archery except at short quarters. They had no other arms themselves but spears and knives. Seeing one of the women cutting the boughs from a fallen tree, dead and dry, and, therefore, preferable for fuel, Felix naturally went to help her, and, taking the axe, soon made a bundle, which he carried for her. It was his duty as a noble to see than no woman, not a slave, laboured; he had been bred in that idea, and would have felt disgraced had he permitted it. The women looked on with astonishment, for in these rude tribes the labour of the women was considered valuable and appraised like that of a horse.

Though they were definitely familiar with bows, they had never seen shooting like that or really any archery beyond close range. They only had spears and knives as weapons. Noticing one of the women cutting branches from a fallen, dead tree—which was better for fuel—Felix went over to help her. He took the axe and quickly made a bundle, which he carried for her. As a noble, it was his duty to ensure that no woman, not even a slave, had to work; he had been raised with that belief and would have felt ashamed if he allowed it. The women watched in amazement, as in these rough tribes, women's labor was considered valuable and assessed like that of a horse.

Without any conscious design, Felix thus in one day conciliated and won the regard of the two most powerful parties in the camp, the chief and the women. By his refusing the command the chief was flattered, and his possible hostility prevented. The act of cutting the wood and carrying the bundle gave him the hearts of the women. They did not, indeed, think their labour in any degree oppressive; still, to be relieved of it was pleasing.

Without any deliberate plan, Felix managed to win over and gain the favor of the two most influential groups in the camp in just one day: the chief and the women. By turning down the leadership role, he made the chief feel respected and avoided any potential conflict. His efforts in chopping wood and carrying the bundle earned him the affection of the women. They didn’t actually see their work as burdensome; however, having someone else take care of it was definitely a relief.

The two men who had gone for Felix's buried treasure did not return till breakfast next morning. They stepped into the camp, each with his spear reddened and dripping with fresh blood. Felix no sooner saw the blood than he fainted. He quickly recovered, but he could not endure the sight of the spears, which were removed and hidden from his view. He had seen blood enough spilt at the siege of Iwis, but this came upon him in all its horror unrelieved by the excitement of war.

The two men who had gone for Felix's buried treasure didn't come back until breakfast the next morning. They walked into the camp, each with their spears stained and dripping with fresh blood. As soon as Felix saw the blood, he fainted. He quickly got back on his feet, but he couldn't stand the sight of the spears, which were taken away and hidden from him. He had seen plenty of blood spilled during the siege of Iwis, but this hit him with all its horror without the thrill of war.

The two shepherds had been dogged by gipsies, and had been obliged to make a round to escape. They took their revenge by climbing into trees, and as their pursuers passed under thrust them through with their long spears. The shepherds, like all their related tribes, had been at feud with the gipsies for many generations. The gipsies followed them to and from their pastures, cut off stragglers, destroyed or stole their sheep and cattle, and now and then overwhelmed a whole tribe. Of late the contest had become more sanguinary and almost ceaseless.

The two shepherds had been followed by gypsies and had to take a long way around to escape. They got their revenge by climbing trees and, as their pursuers walked underneath, stabbing them with their long spears. The shepherds, like all their related tribes, had been feuding with the gypsies for many generations. The gypsies tracked them to and from their pastures, picked off the stragglers, stole or killed their sheep and cattle, and sometimes even wiped out entire tribes. Recently, the conflict had become more violent and almost constant.

Mounted on swift, though small, horses, the gipsies had the advantage of the shepherds. On the other hand, the shepherds, being men of great stature and strength, could not be carried away by a rush if they had time to form a circle, as was their custom of battle. They lost many men by the javelins thrown by the gipsies, who rode up to the edge of the circle, cast their darts, and retreated. If the shepherds left their circle they were easily ridden over; while they maintained formation they lost individuals, but saved the mass. Battles were of rare occurrence; the gipsies watched for opportunities and executed raids, the shepherds retaliated, and thus the endless war continued. The shepherds invariably posted sentinels, and sent forward scouts to ascertain if the way were clear. Accustomed to the horrid scenes of war from childhood, they could not understand Felix's sensitiveness.

Mounted on swift, though small, horses, the gypsies had the upper hand over the shepherds. On the flip side, the shepherds, being tall and strong, could withstand a charge if they had time to form a circle, which was their usual battle strategy. They lost many men to the javelins thrown by the gypsies, who rode up to the edge of the circle, threw their darts, and then retreated. If the shepherds left their formation, they were easily trampled; while they held their ground, they lost some individuals but saved the group as a whole. Battles were rare; the gypsies looked for opportunities to raid, while the shepherds retaliated, keeping the cycle of conflict ongoing. The shepherds always posted sentinels and sent out scouts to check if the path was clear. Having been exposed to the brutal realities of war since childhood, they couldn't comprehend Felix's sensitivity.

They laughed, and then petted him like a spoilt child. This galled him exceedingly; he felt humiliated, and eager to reassert his manhood. He was willing to stay with them there for awhile, nothing would have induced him to leave them now till he had vindicated himself in their sight. The incident happened soon after sunrise, which is very early at the end of June. The camp had only waited for the return of these men, and on their appearance began to move. The march that morning was not a long one, as the sky was clear and the heat soon wearied the flocks. Felix accompanied the scout in advance, armed with his bow, eager to encounter the gipsies.

They laughed and then petted him like a spoiled child. This upset him a lot; he felt humiliated and wanted to prove his manhood. He was willing to stay with them for a while; nothing would have made him leave until he had redeemed himself in their eyes. The incident happened soon after sunrise, which is very early at the end of June. The camp had only been waiting for these men to return, and once they appeared, they started to move. The march that morning wasn’t long, as the sky was clear, and the heat quickly tired out the flocks. Felix went ahead with the scout, armed with his bow, eager to confront the gypsies.


CHAPTER XXVI
BOW AND ARROW


Three mornings the shepherds marched in the same manner, when they came in view of a range of hills so high that to Felix they appeared mountains. The home of the tribe was in these hills, and once there they were comparatively safe from attack. In early spring when the herbage on the downs was scarce, the flocks moved to the meadowlike lands far in the valleys; in summer they returned to the hills; in autumn they went to the vales again. Soon after noon on the third day the scouts reported that a large body of gipsies were moving in a direction which would cut off their course to the hills on the morrow.

Three mornings in a row, the shepherds marched the same way until they saw a range of hills that looked like mountains to Felix. The tribe's home was in these hills, and once they got there, they were relatively safe from attacks. In early spring, when the grass was sparse on the downs, the flocks moved to the meadow-like lands deep in the valleys; in summer, they returned to the hills, and in autumn, they went back to the valleys. Shortly after noon on the third day, the scouts reported that a large group of gypsies was heading in a direction that would block their path to the hills the next day.

The chief held a council, and it was determined that a forced march should be made at once by another route, more to the left, and it was thought that in this way they might reach the base of the slopes by evening. The distance was not great, and could easily have been traversed by the men; the flocks and herds, however, could not be hurried much. A messenger was despatched to the hills for assistance, and the march began. It was a tedious movement. Felix was wearied, and walked in a drowsy state. Towards six o'clock, as he guessed, the trees began to thin, and the column reached the first slopes of the hills. Here about thirty shepherds joined them, a contingent from the nearest camp. It was considered that the danger was now past, and that the gipsies would not attack them on the hill; but it was a mistake.

The chief called a meeting, and they decided to take a different route immediately, veering more to the left. They believed that this way they could reach the base of the hills by evening. The distance wasn't far and the men could handle it easily; however, the flocks and herds couldn't be rushed. A messenger was sent to the hills for help, and the march began. It was a slow journey. Felix was exhausted and walked in a daze. Around six o'clock, as he estimated, the trees started to thin out, and the group reached the first slopes of the hills. Here, about thirty shepherds joined them, coming from the nearest camp. They thought the danger was gone and that the gipsies wouldn't attack them on the hill, but that turned out to be a mistake.

A large body almost immediately appeared, coming along the slope on the right, not less than two hundred; and from their open movements and numbers it was evident that they intended battle. The flocks and herds were driven hastily into a coombe, or narrow valley, and there left to their fate. All the armed men formed in a circle; the women occupied the centre. Felix took his stand outside the circle by a gnarled and decayed oak. There was just there a slight rise in the ground, which he knew would give him some advantage in discharging his arrows, and would also allow him a clear view. His friends earnestly entreated him to enter the circle, and even sought to bring him within it by force, till he explained to them that he could not shoot if so surrounded, and promised if the gipsies charged to rush inside.

A large group quickly appeared, coming down the slope on the right, not less than two hundred; and from their open movements and numbers, it was clear they intended to fight. The flocks and herds were hurriedly driven into a hollow, or narrow valley, and left there to fend for themselves. All the armed men formed a circle; the women were in the center. Felix stood outside the circle by a twisted and decaying oak. There was a slight rise in the ground right there, which he knew would give him an advantage for shooting his arrows and allow him a clear view. His friends urged him to come into the circle and even tried to pull him in by force until he explained that he couldn't shoot if he was surrounded and promised that if the gipsies charged, he would rush inside.

Felix unslung his quiver, and placed it on the ground before him; a second quiver he put beside it; four or five arrows he stuck upright in the sward, so that he could catch hold of them quickly; two arrows he held in his left hand, another he fitted to the string. Thus prepared, he watched the gipsies advance. They came walking their short wiry horses to within half a mile, when they began to trot down the slope; they could not surround the shepherds because of the steep-sided coombe and some brushwood, and could advance only on two fronts. Felix rapidly became so excited that his sight was affected, and his head whirled. His heart beat with such speed that his breath seemed going. His limbs tottered, and he dreaded lest he should faint.

Felix took off his quiver and set it on the ground in front of him; he placed a second quiver next to it. He stuck four or five arrows upright in the grass so he could grab them quickly, held two arrows in his left hand, and fitted another to the bowstring. Ready now, he watched the gypsies approach. They rode their small, sturdy horses to within half a mile before starting to trot down the slope. The steep-sided gully and some brush prevented them from surrounding the shepherds, so they could only advance from two directions. Felix quickly became so excited that his vision blurred, and his head spun. His heart raced so fast that it felt like he could hardly breathe. His limbs shook, and he feared he might faint.

His intensely nervous organization, strung up to its highest pitch, shook him in its grasp, and his will was powerless to control it. He felt that he should disgrace himself once more before these rugged but brave shepherds, who betrayed not the slightest symptom of agitation. For one hour of Oliver's calm courage and utter absence of nervousness he would have given years of his life. His friends in the circle observed his agitation, and renewed their entreaties to him to come inside it. This only was needed to complete his discomfiture. He lost his head altogether; he saw nothing but a confused mass of yellow and red rushing towards him, for each of the gipsies wore a yellow or red scarf, some about the body, some over the shoulder, others round the head. They were now within three hundred yards.

His extremely anxious state, pushed to its limit, shook him to the core, and he felt powerless to control it. He was afraid he would embarrass himself again in front of these tough yet brave shepherds, who showed no signs of nervousness. He would have given years of his life for just one hour of Oliver's calm bravery and complete lack of anxiety. His friends in the circle noticed his distress and kept urging him to join them. This was all it took to make him feel even more flustered. He completely lost his composure; all he could see was a hazy blur of yellow and red rushing toward him, as each of the gypsies wore a yellow or red scarf—some around their waists, some draped over their shoulders, and others wrapped around their heads. They were now within three hundred yards.

A murmur from the shepherd spearmen. Felix had discharged an arrow. It stuck in the ground about twenty paces from him. He shot again; it flew wild and quivering, and dropped harmlessly. Another murmur; they expressed to each other their contempt for the bow. This immediately restored Felix; he forgot the enemy as an enemy, he forgot himself; he thought only of his skill as an archer, now in question. Pride upheld him. The third arrow he fitted properly to the string, he planted his left foot slightly in advance, and looked steadfastly at the horsemen before he drew his bow.

A low murmur from the shepherd spearmen. Felix had fired an arrow. It landed in the ground about twenty paces away. He shot again; it flew off target and fell harmlessly. Another murmur; they shared their disdain for the bow. This immediately boosted Felix's confidence; he forgot about the enemy and even forgot himself; he focused solely on proving his skill as an archer, which was now being questioned. Pride lifted him up. For the third arrow, he properly fitted it to the string, positioned his left foot slightly forward, and gazed intently at the horsemen before he pulled back his bow.

At a distance of one hundred and fifty yards they had paused, and were widening out so as to advance in loose open rank and allow each man to throw his javelin. They shouted; the spearmen in the circle replied, and levelled their spears. Felix fixed his eye on one of the gipsies who was ordering and marshalling the rest, a chief. He drew the arrow swiftly but quietly, the string hummed, the pliant yew obeyed, and the long arrow shot forward in a steady swift flight like a line of gossamer drawn through the air. It missed the chief, but pierced the horse he rode just in front of the rider's thigh. The maddened horse reared and fell backwards on his rider.

At a distance of one hundred and fifty yards, they stopped to spread out, moving into a loose formation so each man could throw his javelin. They shouted, and the spearmen in the circle responded, leveling their spears. Felix focused on one of the gypsies who was organizing and directing the others, a chief. He pulled back the arrow quickly but quietly; the string hummed, the flexible yew obeyed, and the long arrow flew forward in a smooth, swift motion like a strand of gossamer cutting through the air. It missed the chief but struck the horse he was riding, hitting just in front of the rider's thigh. The frantic horse reared up and fell backward onto its rider.

The spearmen shouted. Before the sound could leave their lips another arrow had sped; a gipsy threw up his arms with a shriek; the arrow had gone through his body. A third, a fourth, a fifth—six gipsies rolled on the sward. Shout upon shout rent the air from the spearmen. Utterly unused to this mode of fighting, the gipsies fell back. Still the fatal arrows pursued them, and ere they were out of range three others fell. Now the rage of battle burned in Felix; his eyes gleamed, his lips were open, his nostrils wide like a horse running a race. He shouted to the spearmen to follow him, and snatching up his quiver ran forward. Gathered together in a group, the gipsy band consulted.

The spearmen yelled. Before the sound left their mouths, another arrow flew; a gypsy threw up his arms with a scream; the arrow had struck him. A third, a fourth, a fifth—six gypsies fell to the ground. The spearmen's shouts echoed through the air. Completely unaccustomed to this kind of fighting, the gypsies retreated. Still, the deadly arrows chased them, and before they were out of range, three more fell. Now the fury of battle ignited in Felix; his eyes shone, his lips parted, his nostrils flared like a horse racing. He yelled for the spearmen to follow him and grabbed his quiver, rushing forward. The group of gypsies gathered together to discuss their next move.

Felix ran at full speed; swift of foot, he left the heavy spearmen behind. Alone he approached the horsemen; all the Aquila courage was up within him. He kept the higher ground as he ran, and stopped suddenly on a little knoll or tumulus. His arrow flew, a gipsy fell. Again, and a third. Their anger gave them fresh courage; to be repulsed by one only! Twenty of them started to charge and run him down. The keen arrows flew faster than their horses' feet. Now the horse and now the man met those sharp points. Six fell; the rest returned. The shepherds came running; Felix ordered them to charge the gipsies. His success gave him authority; they obeyed; and as they charged, he shot nine more arrows; nine more deadly wounds. Suddenly the gipsy band turned and fled into the brushwood on the lower slopes.

Felix sprinted at full speed; quick on his feet, he left the heavily armored spearmen behind. Alone, he approached the horsemen; all the courage of the Aquila surged within him. He kept the high ground as he ran and suddenly stopped on a small hill. His arrow flew, and a gypsy fell. Again, and a third time. Their anger gave them renewed bravery; to be taken down by just one person! Twenty of them charged to try to overpower him. The sharp arrows flew faster than their horses could run. Now horse and man met those deadly points. Six fell; the rest turned back. The shepherds came running; Felix commanded them to charge the gypsies. His success gave him authority; they obeyed, and as they charged, he shot nine more arrows; nine more fatal wounds. Suddenly, the gypsy band turned and fled into the underbrush on the lower slopes.

Breathless, Felix sat down on the knoll, and the spearmen swarmed around him. Hardly had they begun to speak to him than there was a shout, and they saw a body of shepherds descending the hill. There were three hundred of them; warned by the messenger, the whole country had risen to repel the gipsies. Too late to join in the fight, they had seen the last of it. They examined the field. There were ten dead and six wounded, who were taken prisoners; the rest escaped, though hurt. In many cases the arrow had gone clean through the body. Then, for the first time, they understood the immense power of the yew bow in strong and skilful hands.

Breathless, Felix sat down on the hill, and the spearmen crowded around him. Just as they started to talk to him, a shout went up, and they saw a group of shepherds coming down the hill. There were three hundred of them; alerted by the messenger, everyone in the area had come together to fight against the gipsies. They were too late to join the battle and had missed it all. They looked over the battlefield. There were ten dead and six wounded, who were taken prisoner; the rest managed to escape, even though they were injured. In many cases, the arrow had gone straight through the body. Then, for the first time, they realized the incredible power of the yew bow in strong and skilled hands.

Felix was overwhelmed; they almost crushed him with their attentions; the women fell at his feet and kissed them. But the archer could scarcely reply; his intense nervous excitement had left him weak and almost faint; his one idea was to rest. As he walked back to the camp between the chiefs of the shepherd spearmen, his eyes closed, his limbs tottered, and they had to support him. At the camp he threw himself on the sward, under the gnarled oak, and was instantly fast asleep. Immediately the camp was stilled, not to disturb him.

Felix felt overwhelmed; their attention nearly suffocated him. The women were all over him, kissing his feet. But the archer could hardly respond; the intense nervous excitement had left him weak and almost faint. All he could think about was getting some rest. As he walked back to the camp with the leaders of the shepherd spearmen, his eyes were closed, his legs wobbled, and they had to support him. When he reached the camp, he collapsed onto the grass beneath the twisted oak and fell asleep instantly. The camp immediately grew quiet, careful not to disturb him.

His adventures in the marshes of the buried city, his canoe, his archery, were talked of the livelong night. Next morning the camp set out for their home in the mountains, and he was escorted by nearly four hundred spearmen. They had saved for him the ornaments of the gipsies who had fallen, golden earrings and nose-rings. He gave them to the women, except one, a finger-ring, set with turquoise, and evidently of ancient make, which he kept for Aurora. Two marches brought them to the home of the tribe, where the rest of the spearmen left them. The place was called Wolfstead.

His adventures in the swamps of the buried city, his canoe, his archery, were talked about all night long. The next morning, the camp set out for their home in the mountains, and he was accompanied by nearly four hundred spearmen. They had saved for him the ornaments of the gypsies who had fallen, golden earrings and nose rings. He gave these to the women, except for one—a finger ring, set with turquoise and clearly very old—that he kept for Aurora. After two days of travel, they reached the tribe’s home, where the rest of the spearmen left them. The place was called Wolfstead.

Felix saw at once how easily this spot might be fortified. There was a deep and narrow valley like a groove or green trench opening to the south. At the upper end of the valley rose a hill, not very high, but steep, narrow at the ridge, and steep again on the other side. Over it was a broad, wooded, and beautiful vale; beyond that again the higher mountains. Towards the foot of the narrow ridge here, there was a succession of chalk cliffs, so that to climb up on that side in the face of opposition would be extremely difficult. In the gorge of the enclosed narrow valley a spring rose. The shepherds had formed eight pools, one after the other, water being of great importance to them; and farther down, where the valley opened, there were forty or fifty acres of irrigated meadow. The spring then ran into a considerable brook, across which was the forest.

Felix immediately recognized how easily this spot could be defended. There was a deep, narrow valley that resembled a groove or green trench opening to the south. At the upper end of the valley stood a hill that wasn't very high, but was steep, narrow at the top, and steep again on the other side. Above it was a wide, beautiful valley filled with trees; beyond that were the higher mountains. Toward the foot of the narrow ridge, there was a series of chalk cliffs, making it extremely difficult to climb up that side if faced with resistance. In the gorge of the enclosed narrow valley, a spring bubbled up. The shepherds had created eight pools in succession, as water was very important to them; further down, where the valley opened up, there were about forty or fifty acres of irrigated meadow. The spring then flowed into a significant brook, across which lay the forest.

Felix's idea was to run a palisade along the margin of the brook, and up both sides of the valley to the ridge. There he would build a fort. The edges of the chalk cliffs he would connect with a palisade or a wall, and so form a complete enclosure. He mentioned his scheme to the shepherds; they did not greatly care for it, as they had always been secure without it, the rugged nature of the country not permitting horsemen to penetrate. But they were so completely under his influence that to please him they set about the work. He had to show them how to make a palisade; they had never seen one, and he made the first part of it himself. At building a wall with loose stones, without mortar, the shepherds were skilful; the wall along the verge of the cliffs was soon up, and so was the fort on the top of the ridge. The fort consisted merely of a circular wall, breast high, with embrasures or crenellations.

Felix's plan was to construct a fence along the edge of the creek and up both sides of the valley to the ridge. There, he would build a fort. He would connect the edges of the chalk cliffs with a fence or a wall to create a complete enclosure. He shared his idea with the shepherds; they didn’t think much of it, as they had always felt safe without it since the rugged terrain kept horsemen away. However, they were so influenced by him that they decided to help him with the project. He had to show them how to build a fence; they had never seen one before, so he made the first section himself. The shepherds were skilled at building walls with loose stones without using mortar, so the wall along the edge of the cliffs went up quickly, as did the fort on top of the ridge. The fort was simply a circular wall, about chest height, with openings for shooting.

When this was finished, Felix had a sense of mastership, for in this fort he felt as if he could rule the whole country. From day to day shepherds came from the more distant parts to see the famous archer, and to admire the enclosure. Though the idea of it had never occurred to them, now they saw it they fully understood its advantages, and two other chiefs began to erect similar forts and palisades.

When this was done, Felix felt a sense of mastery, as if he could rule the entire country from this fort. Day by day, shepherds traveled from far away to see the famous archer and admire the enclosure. Although they had never thought of it before, now that they saw it, they clearly understood its benefits, prompting two other chiefs to start building similar forts and palisades.


CHAPTER XXVII
SURPRISED


Felix was now anxious to continue his journey, yet he did not like to leave the shepherds, with whom his life was so pleasant. As usual, when deliberating, he wandered about the hills, and then into the forest. The shepherds at first insisted on at least two of their number accompanying him; they were fearful lest the gipsies should seize him, or a Bushman assassinate him. This company was irksome to Felix. In time he convinced them that he was a much better hunter than any of the tribe, and they permitted him to roam alone. During one of these excursions into the forest he discovered a beautiful lake. He looked down on the water from the summit of one of the green mountains.

Felix was eager to continue his journey, but he didn’t want to leave the shepherds, with whom he enjoyed spending time. As usual, when he was deep in thought, he wandered through the hills and into the forest. At first, the shepherds insisted that at least two of them accompany him; they were worried that the gypsies might capture him or that a Bushman might attack him. This company felt burdensome to Felix. Eventually, he convinced them that he was a much better hunter than any of them, so they allowed him to roam alone. During one of his trips into the forest, he discovered a beautiful lake. He looked down at the water from the top of one of the green mountains.

It was, he thought, half a mile across, and the opposite shore was open woodland, grassy and meadow-like, and dotted with fine old oaks. By degrees these closed together, and the forest succeeded; beyond it again, at a distance of two miles, were green hills. A little clearing only was wanted to make the place fit for a castle and enclosure. Through the grass-land opposite he traced the course of a large brook down to the lake; another entered it on the right, and the lake gradually narrowed to a river on his left. Could he erect a tower there, and bring Aurora to it, how happy he would be! A more beautiful spot he had never seen, nor one more suited for every purpose in life.

It was, he thought, about half a mile across, and the far shore was lined with open woods, grassy and meadow-like, scattered with beautiful old oaks. Gradually, the trees became denser, and the forest took over; beyond it, two miles away, were rolling green hills. All it needed was a little clearing to make the place suitable for a castle and enclosure. He followed the course of a large brook through the meadow toward the lake; another brook joined it on the right, and the lake slowly turned into a river on his left. If he could build a tower there and bring Aurora to it, how happy he would be! He had never seen a more beautiful spot, nor one more perfect for every purpose in life.

He followed the course of the stream which left the lake, every now and then disturbing wild goats from the cliffs, and twice he saw deer under the oaks across it. On rounding a spur of down he saw that the river debouched into a much wider lake, which he conjectured must be the Sweet Waters. He went on till he reached the mouth of the river, and had then no doubt that he was standing once more on the shore of the Sweet Water sea. On this, the southern side, the banks were low; on the other, a steep chalky cliff almost overhung the river, and jutted out into the lake, curving somewhat towards him. A fort on that cliff would command the entrance to the river; the cliff was a natural breakwater, so that there was a haven at its base. The river appeared broad and deep enough for navigation, so that vessels could pass from the great Lake to the inland water; about six or seven miles, he supposed.

He followed the stream that flowed out of the lake, occasionally startling wild goats from the cliffs, and he spotted deer under the oaks on the other side twice. As he rounded a hill, he saw that the river opened into a much larger lake, which he guessed must be the Sweet Waters. He continued until he reached the river’s mouth and felt certain he was back on the shore of the Sweet Water sea. On this southern side, the banks were low; on the opposite side, a steep chalk cliff loomed over the river, jutting out into the lake and curving a bit towards him. A fort on that cliff would control the river’s entrance; the cliff served as a natural breakwater, creating a sheltered area at its base. The river seemed wide and deep enough for navigation, allowing vessels to travel from the big Lake to the inland waters; he estimated it was about six or seven miles.

Felix was much taken with this spot; the beauty of the inland lake, the evident richness of the soil, the river communicating with the great Lake, the cliff commanding its entrance; never, in all his wanderings, had he seen a district so well suited for a settlement and the founding of a city. If he had but a thousand men! How soon he would bring Aurora there, and build a tower, and erect a palisade! So occupied was he with the thought that he returned the whole distance to the spot where he had made the discovery. There he remained a long time, designing it all in his mind.

Felix was really impressed with this place; the beauty of the inland lake, the rich soil, the river connecting to the big lake, and the cliff overseeing its entrance. Never, in all his travels, had he encountered a location so perfect for a settlement and the founding of a city. If only he had a thousand men! He could bring Aurora there, build a tower, and put up a palisade in no time! He was so caught up in this thought that he made the entire journey back to where he found the site. There, he stayed for a long time, planning it all out in his head.

The tower he would build yonder, three-quarters of a mile, perhaps a mile, inland from the opposite shore, on a green knoll, at the base of which the brook flowed. It would be even more pleasant there than on the shore of the lake. The forest he would clear back a little, and put up a stout palisade, enclosing at least three miles of grassy land. By the shore of the lake he would build his town, so that his vessels might be able to go forth into the great Sweet Water sea. So strongly did imagination hold him that he did not observe how near it was to sunset, nor did he remark the threatening aspect of the sky. Thunder awoke him from his dream; he looked, and saw a storm rapidly coming from the north-east.

The tower he planned to build over there, three-quarters of a mile, maybe a mile, inland from the opposite shore, on a green hill where the stream flowed. It would be even nicer there than by the lake's edge. He would clear the forest a bit and construct a strong fence, enclosing at least three miles of grassy land. By the lake, he would set up his town so that his boats could head out into the vast Sweet Water sea. He was so caught up in his daydream that he didn't notice how close it was to sunset or the threatening look of the sky. Thunder pulled him out of his thoughts; he looked up and saw a storm quickly approaching from the northeast.

He descended the hill, and sheltered himself as well as possible among some thick fir-trees. After the lightning, the rain poured so heavily that it penetrated the branches, and he unstrung his bow and placed the string in his pocket, that it might not become wet. Instantly there was a whoop on either side, and two gipsies darted from the undergrowth towards him. While the terrible bow was bent they had followed him, tracking his footsteps; the moment he unstrung the bow, they rushed out. Felix crushed through between the firs, by main force getting through, but only opening a passage for them to follow. They could easily have thrust their darts through him, but their object was to take him alive, and gratify the revenge of the tribes with torture.

He came down the hill and tried to find shelter among some thick fir trees. After the lightning, the rain came down so hard that it went through the branches. He took apart his bow and put the string in his pocket to keep it dry. Suddenly, there was a shout on either side, and two gypsies rushed out from the underbrush toward him. They had been tracking him while he had his bow drawn; the moment he unstrung it, they charged out. Felix pushed his way through the firs, forcing his way but only creating a path for them to follow. They could have easily pierced him with their darts, but their goal was to capture him alive and satisfy the tribes' desire for revenge with torture.

Felix doubled from the firs, and made towards the far-distant camp; but he was faced by three more gipsies. He turned again and made for the steep hill he had descended. With all his strength he raced up it; his lightness of foot carried him in advance, and he reached the summit a hundred yards ahead; but he knew he must be overtaken presently, unless he could hit upon some stratagem. In the instant that he paused to breathe on the summit a thought struck him. Like the wind he raced along the ridge, making for the great Sweet Water, the same path he had followed in the morning. Once on the ridge the five pursuers shouted; they knew they should have him now there were no more hills to breast. It was not so easy as they imagined.

Felix darted away from the fir trees and headed toward the distant camp, but he was confronted by three more gypsies. He turned again and ran back up the steep hill he had just come down. Using all his strength, he raced up it, his nimbleness propelling him ahead, and he reached the top a hundred yards in front of them. However, he knew he would be caught soon unless he could come up with a clever plan. As he paused to catch his breath at the summit, an idea struck him. Like the wind, he sprinted along the ridge, aiming for the great Sweet Water, the same path he had taken in the morning. Once on the ridge, the five pursuers shouted; they thought they would finally catch him since there were no more hills to climb. But it wasn’t as easy as they had hoped.

Felix was in splendid training; he kept his lead, and even drew a little on them. Still he knew in time he must succumb, just as the stag, though swifter of foot, ultimately succumbs to the hounds. They would track him till they had him. If only he could gain enough to have time to string and bend his bow! But with all his efforts he could not get away more than the hundred yards, and that was not far enough. It could be traversed in ten seconds, they would have him before he could string it and fit an arrow. If only he had been fresh as in the morning! But he had had a long walk during the day and not much food. He knew that his burst of speed must soon slacken, but he had a stratagem yet.

Felix was in great shape; he maintained his lead and even pulled ahead a bit. Still, he realized that eventually he would have to give in, just like a stag, despite being faster, ultimately falls prey to the hounds. They would track him down until they caught him. If only he could put enough distance between them to have time to string and draw his bow! But despite all his efforts, he couldn’t get more than a hundred yards ahead, and that wasn’t far enough. They could cover that distance in ten seconds; they would catch him before he could string it and fit an arrow. If only he had been as fresh as he was in the morning! But he had walked a long way that day and hadn’t eaten much. He knew his burst of speed would soon fade, but he still had a plan.

Keeping along the ridge till he reached the place where the lake narrowed to the river, suddenly he rushed down the hill towards the water. The edge was encumbered with brushwood and fallen trees; he scrambled over and through anyhow; he tore a path through the bushes and plunged in. But his jacket caught in a branch; he had his knife out and cut off the shred of cloth. Then with the bow and knife in one hand he struck out for the opposite shore. His hope was that the gipsies, being horsemen, and passing all their lives on their horses, might not know how to swim. His conjecture was right; they stopped on the brink, and yelled their loudest. When he had passed the middle of the slow stream their rage rose to a shriek, startling a heron far down the water.

Keeping along the ridge until he reached the spot where the lake narrowed into the river, he suddenly rushed down the hill towards the water. The edge was crowded with brush and fallen trees; he scrambled over and through it all. He pushed through the bushes and jumped in. But his jacket got caught on a branch; he took out his knife and cut off the piece of cloth. Then, with the bow and knife in one hand, he swam towards the opposite shore. He hoped that the gypsies, being horsemen and spending all their lives on horseback, might not know how to swim. His guess was correct; they stopped at the edge and yelled as loudly as they could. When he reached the middle of the slow stream, their rage escalated to a shriek, startling a heron far down the water.

Felix reached the opposite shore in safety, but the bow-string was now wet and useless. He struck off at once straight across the grass-lands, past the oaks he had admired, past the green knoll where in imagination he had built his castle and brought Aurora, through the brook, which he found was larger than it appeared at a distance, and required two or three strokes to cross. A few more paces and the forest sheltered him. Under the trees he rested, and considered what course to pursue. The gipsies would expect him to endeavour to regain his friends, and would watch to cut off his return. Felix determined to make, instead, for another camp farther east, and to get even there by a detour.

Felix safely reached the opposite shore, but his bowstring was now wet and useless. He immediately set off straight across the grasslands, past the oaks he had admired, past the green hill where he had imagined building his castle and welcoming Aurora, and across the brook, which turned out to be larger than it looked from a distance and took two or three strokes to cross. A few more steps and he was sheltered by the forest. Under the trees, he rested and thought about what to do next. The gypsies would expect him to try to get back to his friends and would be ready to cut him off. Felix decided instead to head towards another camp farther east and find a way to get there by taking a detour.

Bitterly he reproached himself for his folly in leaving the camp, knowing that gipsies were about, with no other weapon than the bow. The knife at his belt was practically no weapon at all, useful only in the last extremity. Had he a short sword, or javelin, he would have faced the two gipsies who first sprang towards him. Worse than this was the folly of wandering without the least precaution into a territory at that time full of gipsies, who had every reason to desire his capture. If he had used the ordinary precautions of woodcraft, he would have noticed their traces, and he would not have exposed himself in full view on the ridges of the hills, where a man was visible for miles. If he perished through his carelessness, how bitter it would be! To lose Aurora by the merest folly would, indeed, be humiliating.

Bitterly, he blamed himself for being foolish and leaving the camp, especially knowing that gypsies were around and he only had a bow for protection. The knife at his belt wasn’t much of a weapon, only useful in a dire situation. If he had a short sword or javelin, he would have stood a chance against the two gypsies who rushed at him. Even worse was his foolishness in wandering carelessly into an area full of gypsies who had every reason to want to capture him. If he had taken the usual precautions for being in the woods, he would have noticed their signs and wouldn’t have exposed himself on the hilltops, where a person could be seen from miles away. If he were to die because of his carelessness, it would be so regrettable! Losing Aurora over such a simple mistake would truly be humiliating.

He braced himself to the journey before him, and set off at a good swinging hunter's pace, as it is called, that is, a pace rather more than a walk and less than a run, with the limbs somewhat bent, and long springy steps. The forest was in the worst possible condition for movement; the rain had damped the fern and undergrowth, and every branch showered raindrops upon him. It was now past sunset and the dusk was increasing; this he welcomed as hiding him. He travelled on till nearly dawn, and then, turning to the right, swept round, and regained the line of the mountainous hills after sunrise. There he rested, and reached a camp about nine in the morning, having walked altogether since the preceding morning fully fifty miles. This camp was about fifteen miles distant from that of his friends; the shepherds knew him, and one of them started with the news of his safety. In the afternoon ten of his friends came over to see him, and to reproach him.

He prepared himself for the journey ahead and set off at a good, steady pace, which is faster than a walk but slower than a run, with slightly bent limbs and long, springy strides. The forest was in terrible shape for moving; the rain had soaked the ferns and undergrowth, and every branch dripped water onto him. It was already past sunset, and the darkness was deepening; he welcomed it as it concealed him. He traveled on until nearly dawn, then turned right, circled around, and got back to the line of the mountainous hills after sunrise. There, he rested and reached a camp around nine in the morning, having walked a total of nearly fifty miles since the previous morning. This camp was about fifteen miles away from where his friends were; the shepherds recognized him, and one of them set off to deliver the news of his safety. In the afternoon, ten of his friends came over to see him and to scold him.

His weariness was so great that for three days he scarcely moved from the hut, during which time the weather was wet and stormy, as is often the case in summer after a thunderstorm. On the fourth morning it was fine, and Felix, now quite restored to his usual strength, went out with the shepherds. He found some of them engaged in throwing up a heap of stones, flint, and chalk lumps near an oak-tree in a plain at the foot of the hill. They told him that during the thunderstorm two cows and ten sheep had been killed there by lightning, which had scarcely injured the oak.

His exhaustion was so intense that for three days he barely moved from the hut, during which the weather was wet and stormy, as often happens in summer after a thunderstorm. On the fourth morning, it was nice out, and Felix, now fully back to his usual strength, went out with the shepherds. He found some of them busy piling up a heap of stones, flint, and chalk near an oak tree on a flat area at the foot of the hill. They told him that during the thunderstorm, two cows and ten sheep had been killed by lightning, which hardly affected the oak.

It was their custom to pile up a heap of stones wherever such an event occurred, to warn others from staying themselves, or allowing their sheep or cattle to stay, near the spot in thunder, as it was observed that where lightning struck once it was sure to strike again, sooner or later. "Then," said Felix, "you may be sure there is water there!" He knew from his study of the knowledge of the ancients that lightning frequently leaped from trees or buildings to concealed water, but he had no intention of indicating water in that particular spot. He meant the remark in a general sense.

It was their tradition to stack stones in a pile whenever such an event happened, to warn others against lingering there, or letting their sheep or cattle linger, especially during a thunderstorm, since it was noted that where lightning struck once, it was likely to strike again eventually. "Then," Felix said, "you can bet there's water there!" He knew from his studies of ancient knowledge that lightning often jumped from trees or buildings to hidden water sources, but he didn't mean to suggest there was water in that specific spot. He was making a general statement.

But the shepherds, ever desirous of water, and looking on Felix as a being of a different order to themselves, took his casual observation in its literal sense. They brought their tools and dug, and, as it chanced, found a copious spring. The water gushed forth and formed a streamlet. Upon this the whole tribe gathered, and they saluted Felix as one almost divine. It was in vain that he endeavoured to repel this homage, and to explain the reason of his remark, and that it was only in a general way that he intended it. Facts were too strong for him. They had heard his words, which they considered an inspiration, and there was the water. It was no use; there was the spring, the very thing they most wanted. Perforce Felix was invested with attributes beyond nature.

But the shepherds, always eager for water, and seeing Felix as someone from a different realm, took his casual remark literally. They brought their tools and dug, and by chance, they found a plentiful spring. The water burst forth and created a streamlet. The entire tribe gathered around, honoring Felix as if he were something almost divine. It was useless for him to try to downplay this admiration and to clarify that he meant it only in a general sense. The evidence was too compelling. They had heard his words, which they saw as a sign, and there was the water. It didn't matter; there was the spring, exactly what they needed most. As a result, Felix was attributed with powers beyond the ordinary.

The report spread; his own old friends came in a crowd to see the new spring, others journeyed from afar. In a week, Felix having meanwhile returned to Wolfstead, his fame had for the second time spread all over the district. Some came a hundred miles to see him. Nothing he could say was listened to; these simple, straightforward people understood nothing but facts, and the defeat of the gipsies and the discovery of the spring seemed to them little less than supernatural. Besides which, in innumerable little ways Felix's superior knowledge had told upon them. His very manners spoke of high training. His persuasive voice won them. His constructive skill and power of planning, as shown in the palisades and enclosure, showed a grasp of circumstances new to them. This was a man such as they had never before seen.

The news spread quickly; his old friends flocked in to see the new spring, and others traveled from far away. Within a week, after Felix returned to Wolfstead, his fame once again spread throughout the area. Some came from a hundred miles away to see him. Nothing he said was really heard; these simple, honest people understood only facts, and the defeat of the gypsies and the discovery of the spring seemed almost supernatural to them. Additionally, in many small ways, Felix's superior knowledge had an impact on them. His very mannerisms showed he had received a good education. His persuasive voice captivated them. His talent for building and planning, demonstrated through the palisades and enclosure, revealed a level of understanding they were not used to. He was a man unlike any they had encountered before.

They began to bring him disputes to settle; he shrank from this position of judge, but it was useless to struggle; they would wait as long as he liked, but his decision they would have, and no other. Next came the sick begging to be cured. Here Felix was firm; he would not attempt to be a physician, and they went away. But, unfortunately, it happened that he let out his knowledge of plants, and back they came. Felix did not know what course to pursue; if by chance he did any one good, crowds would beset him; if injury resulted, perhaps he would be assassinated. This fear was quite unfounded; he really had not the smallest idea of how high he stood in their estimation.

They started bringing him disputes to resolve; he was uncomfortable with the role of judge, but it was pointless to resist; they said they would wait as long as he wanted, but they would demand his decision and no other. Then the sick came asking to be healed. Felix stood his ground; he refused to try being a doctor, and they left. But, unfortunately, he revealed his knowledge of plants, and they returned. Felix didn't know what to do; if he happened to help someone, a crowd would swarm him; if something went wrong, he might be attacked. This worry was totally unfounded; he had no idea how highly they regarded him.

After much consideration, Felix hit upon a method which would save him from many inconveniences. He announced his intention of forming a herb-garden in which to grow the best kind of herbs, and at the same time said he would not administer any medicine himself, but would tell their own native physicians and nurses all he knew, so that they could use his knowledge. The herb-garden was at once begun in the valley; it could not contain much till next year, and meantime if any diseased persons came Felix saw them, expressed his opinion to the old shepherd who was the doctor of the tribe, and the latter carried out his instructions. Felix did succeed in relieving some small ailments, and thereby added to his reputation.

After thinking it over, Felix came up with a way to avoid a lot of troubles. He announced that he would create a herb garden to grow the best herbs, and at the same time, he said he wouldn’t give any medicine himself but would share all his knowledge with the local doctors and nurses so they could use it. The herb garden was quickly started in the valley; it wouldn’t yield much until the following year, and in the meantime, if any sick people arrived, Felix would see them, share his opinions with the old shepherd who was the tribe’s doctor, and the shepherd would follow his advice. Felix was able to help with a few minor ailments, which boosted his reputation.


CHAPTER XXVIII
FOR AURORA


Felix now began to find out for himself the ancient truth, that difficulties always confront man. Success only changes them, and increases their number. Difficulties faced him in every direction; at home it had seemed impossible for him to do anything. Now that success seemed to smile on him and he had become a power, instead of everything being smooth and easy, new difficulties sprang up for solution at every point. He wished to continue his journey, but he feared that he would not be permitted to depart. He would have to start away in the night, in which case he could hardly return to them again, and yet he wished to return to these, the first friends he had had, and amongst whom he hoped to found a city.

Felix was starting to realize the age-old truth that challenges are always a part of life. Success just changes the nature of those challenges and often makes them more numerous. He faced obstacles everywhere; at home, it felt impossible for him to accomplish anything. Now that success seemed to be on his side and he had gained some influence, instead of things being easy, new challenges arose at every turn. He wanted to continue on his journey, but he worried he might not be allowed to leave. If he set out at night, he might not have the chance to return to them again, yet he wanted to go back to these, his first friends, among whom he dreamed of building a city.

Another week slipped away, and Felix was meditating his escape, when one afternoon a deputation of ten spearmen arrived from a distant tribe, who had nominated him their king, and sent their principal men to convey the intelligence. Fame is always greatest at a distance, and this tribe in the mountains of the east had actually chosen him as king, and declared that they would obey him whether he took up his residence with them or not. Felix was naturally greatly pleased; how delighted Aurora would be! but he was in perplexity what to do, for he could not tell whether the Wolfstead people would be favourably inclined or would resent his selection.

Another week went by, and Felix was thinking about his escape when one afternoon a group of ten spearmen came from a distant tribe. They had named him their king and sent their leaders to deliver the news. Fame is often greatest from afar, and this tribe in the eastern mountains had indeed chosen him as their king, stating they would follow him whether he lived with them or not. Felix was obviously thrilled; how happy Aurora would be! But he was puzzled about what to do, as he couldn’t tell if the Wolfstead people would support him or be angry about his selection.

He had not long to consider. There was an assembly of the tribe, and they, too, chose him by common consent as their king. Secretly they were annoyed that another tribe had been more forward than themselves, and were anxious that Felix should not leave them. Felix declined the honour; in spite of his refusal, he was treated as if he were the most despotic monarch. Four days afterwards two other tribes joined the movement, and sent their acceptance of him as their monarch. Others followed, and so quickly now that a day never passed without another tribe sending a deputation.

He didn't have much time to think about it. The tribe had a gathering, and they all agreed to choose him as their king. Deep down, they were annoyed that another tribe had acted faster than they had and were eager for Felix to stay with them. Felix turned down the honor; despite his refusal, he was treated like the most tyrannical ruler. Four days later, two more tribes joined in and sent their acceptance of him as their king. Others quickly followed, to the point that not a day went by without another tribe sending a delegation.

Felix thought deeply on the matter. He was, of course, flattered, and ready to accept the dignity, but he was alive to considerations of policy. He resolved that he would not use the title, nor exercise the functions of a king as usually understood. He explained his plan to the chiefs; it was that he should be called simply "Leader", the Leader of the War; that he should only assume royal authority in time of war; that the present chiefs should retain their authority, and each govern as before, in accordance with ancient custom. He proposed to be king only during war-time. He would, if they liked, write out their laws for them in a book, and so give their customs cohesion and shape. To this plan the tribes readily agreed; it retained all the former customs, it left the chiefs their simple patriarchal authority, and it gave all of them the advantage of combination in war. As the Leader, Felix was henceforth known.

Felix thought hard about the situation. He felt flattered and was ready to accept the title, but he was mindful of political strategy. He decided that he wouldn't use the title or act in the way a typical king would. He shared his idea with the chiefs; he suggested that he be called simply "Leader," the Leader of the War; that he would only take on royal authority during wartime; and that the current chiefs would keep their power and each govern as they had before, in line with traditional customs. He proposed to be king only in times of war. If they wanted, he would write their laws down in a book to give their customs structure and coherence. The tribes agreed to this plan easily; it preserved all the old customs, kept the chiefs' straightforward authority intact, and provided them all the benefit of unity in conflict. From then on, Felix was known as the Leader.

In the course of a fortnight, upwards of six thousand men had joined the Confederacy, and Felix wrote down the names of twenty tribes on a sheet of parchment which he took from his chest. A hut had long since been built for him; but he received all the deputations, and held the assemblies which were necessary, in the circular fort. He was so pressed to visit the tribes that he could not refuse to go to the nearest, and thus his journey was again postponed. During this progress from tribal camp to tribal camp, Felix gained the adhesion of twelve more, making a total of thirty-two names of camps, representing about eight thousand spearmen. With pride Felix reflected that he commanded a far larger army than the Prince of Ponze. But he was not happy.

In the course of two weeks, over six thousand men had joined the Confederacy, and Felix wrote down the names of twenty tribes on a piece of parchment he took from his chest. A hut had been built for him a while ago; however, he received all the delegations and held the necessary meetings in the circular fort. He was so urged to visit the tribes that he couldn’t turn down the nearest one, causing his journey to be postponed once again. During this trek from tribal camp to tribal camp, Felix won the support of twelve more, bringing the total to thirty-two camps, representing about eight thousand spearmen. With pride, Felix thought about how he commanded a much larger army than the Prince of Ponze. But he wasn’t happy.

Months had now elapsed since he had parted from Aurora. There were no means of communicating with her. A letter could be conveyed only by a special messenger; he could not get a messenger, and even if one had been forthcoming, he could not instruct him how to reach Thyma Castle. He did not know himself; the country was entirely unexplored. Except that the direction was west, he had no knowledge whatever. He had often inquired of the shepherds, but they were perfectly ignorant. Anker's Gate was the most westerly of all their settlements, which chiefly extended eastwards. Beyond Anker's Gate was the trackless forest, of which none but the Bushmen knew anything. They did not understand what he meant by a map; all they could tell him was that the range of mountainous hills continued westerly and southerly for an unascertained distance, and that the country was uninhabited except by wandering gipsy tribes.

Months had passed since he last saw Aurora. There was no way to contact her. A letter could only be delivered by a special messenger; he couldn't find a messenger, and even if he did, he wouldn’t know how to tell him to get to Thyma Castle. He didn’t know the route himself; the area was completely unexplored. Aside from the fact that it was west, he had no information at all. He had asked the shepherds many times, but they were completely clueless. Anker's Gate was the farthest west of their settlements, which mostly stretched to the east. Beyond Anker's Gate was an uncharted forest, known only to the Bushmen. They didn't understand what he meant by a map; all they could tell him was that the range of hills continued west and south for an unknown distance, and that the land was uninhabited except for some wandering gypsy tribes.

South was the sea, the salt water; but they never went down to it, or near it, because there was no sustenance for their flocks and herds. Till now, Felix did not know that he was near the sea; he resolved at once to visit it. As nearly as he could discover, the great fresh water Lake did not reach any farther south; Wolfstead was not far from its southern margin. He concluded, therefore, that the shore of the Lake must run continually westward, and that if he followed it he should ultimately reach the very creek from which he had started in his canoe. How far it was he could not reckon.

South was the sea, the saltwater; but they never went down to it or near it because there was no food for their flocks and herds. Until now, Felix didn’t realize he was close to the sea; he immediately decided to visit it. As far as he could tell, the great freshwater lake didn't extend any further south; Wolfstead was not far from its southern edge. He concluded that the lake’s shore must continue westward, and if he followed it, he would eventually reach the very creek where he had started in his canoe. He couldn't estimate how far it was.

There were none of the shepherds who could be sent with a letter; they were not hunters, and were unused to woodcraft; there was not one capable of the journey. Unless he went himself he could not communicate with Aurora. Two routes were open to him; one straight through the forest on foot, the other by water, which latter entailed the construction of another canoe. Journey by water, too, he had found was subject to unforeseen risks. Till he could train some of the younger men to row a galley, he decided not to attempt the voyage. There was but the forest route left, and that he resolved to attempt; but when? And how, without offending his friends?

None of the shepherds could be sent with a letter; they weren't hunters and had no experience in navigating the woods. Not one of them was capable of making the journey. Unless he went himself, he couldn't communicate with Aurora. He had two options: one was to go straight through the forest on foot, and the other was by water, which would require building another canoe. He had also found that traveling by water came with unexpected risks. Until he could train some of the younger guys to row a boat, he decided against attempting that route. So, he was left with only the forest path, and he resolved to take it; but when? And how could he do it without upsetting his friends?

Meantime, while he revolved the subject in his mind, he visited the river and the shore of the great Lake, this time accompanied by ten spears. The second visit only increased his admiration of the place and his desire to take possession of it. He ascended a tall larch, from whose boughs he had a view out over the Lake; the shore seemed to go almost directly west. There were no islands, and no land in sight; the water was open and clear. Next day he started for the sea; he wished to see it for its own sake, and, secondly, because if he could trace the trend of the shore, he would perhaps be able to put together a mental map of the country, and so assure himself of the right route to pursue when he started for Thyma Castle.

Meantime, while he pondered the subject, he visited the river and the shore of the great Lake, this time with ten spears. The second visit only deepened his admiration for the place and his desire to claim it. He climbed a tall larch, from whose branches he could see out over the Lake; the shore appeared to stretch almost directly west. There were no islands and no land in sight; the water was open and clear. The next day he set out for the sea; he wanted to see it for its own sake, and also because if he could follow the shoreline, he might be able to piece together a mental map of the area and ensure he chose the right route when heading for Thyma Castle.

His guides took him directly south, and in three marches (three days) brought him to the strand. This journey was not in a straight line; they considered it was about five-and-thirty or forty miles to the sea, but the country was covered with almost impenetrable forests, which compelled a circuitous path. They had also to avoid a great ridge of hills, and to slip through a pass or river valley, because these hills were frequently traversed by the gipsies who were said, indeed, to travel along them for hundreds of miles. Through the river valley, therefore, which wound between the hills, they approached the sea, so much on a level with it that Felix did not catch a distant glimpse.

His guides took him straight south, and after three days of walking, they reached the shore. The journey wasn’t a straight path; they estimated it was around thirty-five or forty miles to the sea, but the land was covered in nearly impenetrable forests, forcing them to take a winding route. They also had to steer clear of a large ridge of hills and navigate through a pass or river valley, as these hills were often crossed by gypsies who were said to travel them for hundreds of miles. So, through the river valley that wound between the hills, they made their way to the sea, which was so level with them that Felix didn’t even get a distant glimpse of it.

In the afternoon of the third day they heard a low murmur, and soon afterwards came out from the forest itself upon a wide bed of shingle, thinly bordered with scattered bushes on the inland side. Climbing over this, Felix saw the green line of the sea rise and extend itself on either hand; in the glory of the scene he forgot his anxieties and his hopes, they fell from him together, leaving the mind alone with itself and love. For the memory of Aurora rendered the beauty before him still more beautiful; love, like the sunshine, threw a glamour over the waves. His old and highest thoughts returned to him in all their strength. He must follow them, he could not help himself. Standing where the foam came nearly to his feet, the resolution to pursue his aspirations took possession of him as strong as the sea. When he turned from it, he said to himself, "This is the first step homewards to her; this is the first step of my renewed labour." To fulfil his love and his ambition was one and the same thing. He must see her, and then again endeavour with all his abilities to make himself a position which she could share.

In the afternoon of the third day, they heard a soft murmur, and soon after, they emerged from the forest onto a broad stretch of pebbles, lightly fringed with scattered bushes on the inland side. Climbing over this, Felix noticed the green line of the sea stretching out on either side; in the splendor of the scene, he forgot his worries and hopes, both falling away from him, leaving his mind alone with itself and love. The memory of Aurora made the beauty in front of him even more stunning; love, like sunshine, cast a glow over the waves. His old and highest thoughts returned to him in full force. He needed to follow them; he couldn’t resist. Standing where the foam nearly touched his feet, the determination to pursue his dreams engulfed him as powerfully as the sea. As he turned away from it, he told himself, "This is the first step back to her; this is the beginning of my renewed efforts." To fulfill his love and his ambition was one and the same. He had to see her and then, once more, strive with all his might to create a position that she could share.

Towards the evening, leaving his escort, he partly ascended the nearest slope of the hills to ascertain more perfectly than was possible at a lower level the direction in which the shore trended. It was nearly east and west, and as the shore of the inland lake ran west, it appeared that between them there was a broad belt of forest. Through this he must pass, and he thought if he continued due west he should cross an imaginary line drawn south from his own home through Thyma Castle; then by turning to the north he should presently reach that settlement. But when he should cross this line, how many days' travelling it would need to reach it, was a matter of conjecture, and he must be guided by circumstances, the appearance of the country, and his hunter's instinct.

Towards evening, after leaving his escort, he climbed the nearest slope of the hills to get a clearer view of the direction of the shore. It stretched almost east to west, and since the shore of the inland lake ran west, there seemed to be a wide area of forest between them. He had to go through this forest, and he thought that if he continued straight west, he would cross an imaginary line drawn south from his home through Thyma Castle; then by turning north, he would eventually reach that settlement. However, once he crossed this line, how many days of traveling it would take to get there was anyone’s guess, and he would have to rely on circumstances, the lay of the land, and his instinct as a hunter.

On the way back to Wolfstead Felix was occupied in considering how he could leave his friends, and yet be able to return to them and resume his position. His general idea was to build a fortified house or castle at the spot which had so pleased him, and to bring Aurora to it. He could then devote himself to increasing and consolidating his rule over these people, and perhaps in time organize a kingdom. But without Aurora the time it would require would be unendurable; by some means he must bring her. The whole day long as he walked he thought and thought, trying to discover some means by which he could accomplish these things; yet the more he considered the more difficult they appeared to him. There seemed no plan that promised success; all he could do would be to risk the attempt.

On the way back to Wolfstead, Felix was deep in thought about how he could leave his friends yet still return to them and reclaim his place. His main idea was to build a fortified house or castle at the location that had delighted him, and to bring Aurora there. He could then focus on strengthening and solidifying his leadership over these people, maybe even organize a kingdom over time. But without Aurora, the wait would be unbearable; he had to find a way to bring her. All day as he walked, he pondered and pondered, trying to figure out how to achieve these goals; yet the more he thought, the harder they seemed. There didn't seem to be any plan that guaranteed success; all he could do was take a risk and try.

But two days after returning from the sea it chanced towards the afternoon he fell asleep, and on awakening found his mind full of ideas which he felt sure would succeed if anything would. The question had solved itself during sleep; the mind, like a wearied limb, strained by too much effort, had recovered its elasticity and freshness, and he saw clearly what he ought to do.

But two days after getting back from the sea, he happened to fall asleep in the afternoon. When he woke up, his mind was buzzing with ideas that he was sure would work if anything could. The question had resolved itself while he slept; his mind, like a tired muscle that had been overworked, had regained its flexibility and freshness, and he clearly saw what he needed to do.

He convened an assembly of the chief men of the nearest tribes, and addressed them in the circular fort. He asked them if they could place sufficient confidence in him to assist him in carrying out certain plans, although he should not be able to altogether disclose the object he had in view.

He called together the leaders of the nearby tribes and spoke to them in the round fort. He asked if they could trust him enough to help him with some plans, even though he couldn’t fully reveal his goals.

They replied as one man that they had perfect confidence in him, and would implicitly obey.

They all responded together that they had complete trust in him and would follow his instructions without question.

He then said that the first thing he wished was the clearing of the land by the river in order that he might erect a fortified dwelling suitable to his position as their Leader in war. Next he desired their permission to leave them for two months, at the end of which he would return. He could not at that time explain the reasons, but until his journey had been made he could not finally settle among them.

He then said that the first thing he wanted was to clear the land by the river so he could build a strong house fit for his role as their leader in battle. Next, he asked for their permission to leave for two months, promising to come back afterward. He couldn't explain why at that moment, but he needed to take this journey before he could commit to staying with them for good.

To this announcement they listened in profound silence. It was evident that they disliked him leaving them, yet did not wish to seem distrustful by expressing the feeling.

To this announcement, they listened in deep silence. It was clear that they didn’t want him to leave, yet they didn’t want to show their distrust by saying so.

Thirdly, he continued, he wanted them to clear a path through the forest, commencing at Anker's Gate and proceeding exactly west. The track to be thirty yards wide in order that the undergrowth might not encroach upon it, and to be carried on straight to the westward until his return. The distance to which this path was cleared he should take as the measure of their loyalty to him.

Thirdly, he went on, he wanted them to create a path through the forest, starting at Anker's Gate and going directly west. The path should be thirty yards wide so that the underbrush wouldn't invade it, and it should continue straight to the west until he got back. The distance they cleared this path would be how he measured their loyalty to him.

They immediately promised to fulfil this desire, but added that there was no necessity to wait till he left them, it should be commenced the very next morning. To his reiterated request for leave of absence they preserved an ominous silence, and as he had no more to say, the assembly then broke up.

They quickly promised to fulfill this wish, but added that there was no need to wait until he left, it would start the very next morning. When he repeatedly asked for time off, they responded with a heavy silence, and since he had nothing more to say, the meeting then ended.

It was afternoon, and Felix, as he watched the departing chiefs, reflected that these men would certainly set a watch upon him to prevent his escape. Without another moment's delay he entered his hut, and took from their hiding-place the diamond bracelet, the turquoise ring, and other presents for Aurora. He also secured some provisions, and put two spare bowstrings in his pocket. His bow of course he carried.

It was afternoon, and Felix, watching the chiefs leave, realized that these men would definitely keep an eye on him to stop him from escaping. Without wasting any time, he went into his hut and took out the diamond bracelet, the turquoise ring, and other gifts for Aurora. He also grabbed some food and put two extra bowstrings in his pocket. He, of course, carried his bow.

Telling the people about that he was going to the next settlement, Bedeston, and was anxious to overtake the chief from that place who had attended the assembly, he started. So soon as he knew he could not be seen from the settlement he quitted the trail, and made a wide circuit till he faced westwards. Anker's Gate was a small outlying post, the most westerly from Wolfstead; he went near it to get a true direction, but not sufficiently near to be observed. This was on the fourth of September. The sun was declining as he finally left the country of his friends, and entered the immense forest which lay between him and Aurora. Not only was there no track, but no one had ever traversed it, unless, indeed, it were Bushmen, who to all intents might be confused with the wild animals which it contained.

Telling everyone he was heading to the next settlement, Bedeston, and eager to catch up with the chief from there who had attended the meeting, he set off. As soon as he realized he couldn't be seen from the settlement, he left the trail and made a wide loop until he was facing west. Anker's Gate was a small outpost, the furthest west from Wolfstead; he approached it to get his bearings, but stayed far enough away not to be noticed. This was on September 4th. The sun was setting as he finally left the land of his friends and entered the vast forest that lay between him and Aurora. There was no path, and no one had ever crossed it, except possibly the Bushmen, who could easily be mistaken for the wild animals living there.

Yet his heart rose as he walked rapidly among the oaks; already he saw her, he felt the welcoming touch of her hand; the danger of Bushman or gipsy was nothing. The forest at the commencement consisted chiefly of oaks, trees which do not grow close together, and so permitted of quick walking. Felix pushed on, absorbed in thought. The sun sank; still onward; and as the dusk fell he was still moving rapidly westwards.

Yet his heart lifted as he walked quickly among the oaks; he could already see her, he felt the warm touch of her hand; the threat of a Bushman or gypsy didn't matter. The forest at first mainly had oaks, trees that don’t grow too close together, allowing for quick walking. Felix pressed on, lost in thought. The sun was setting; still he moved forward; and as dusk fell, he continued heading swiftly west.




The End




Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!